1775. Per Mare Per Terram 'By Sea By Land' Per Mare Per Terram: Signifies the Corps' service both by sea and land. It is not known exactly when this motto was adopted, but it was worn on their caps by Marines at the Battle of Bunkers Hill in 1775. The Lion and Crown: The original badge of the Marines. The Crown also denotes that the Marines are a Royal Corps, an honour which King George III bestowed upon them in 1802, in token of their many gallant actions against the French. (This applies also to the Crown above the Foul Anchor at the bottom.) The Globe: Awarded by King George IV in 1827. Owing to the impossibility of inscribing on the Colours all of the 109 Battle Honours to which the Royal Marines are entitled the King personally chose 'The Great Globe itself' as a fitting emblem to describe the Corps' worldwide service. (The Globe displays the continents of the Eastern Hemisphere.) The Laurel: Awarded in commemoration of gallantry displayed by the Royal Marines at the Battle of Belle Isle in 1761. Gibraltar: The Battle Honour carried on the Royal Marines' Colours. This was awarded to commemorate the outstanding services performed by the Corps in the capture and siege of Gibraltar in 1704. The Foul Anchor: Is the badge of the Lord High Admiral and denotes that the Corps is part of the Royal Navy. It was first used during 1747. Royal Marines History & Traditional Facts © Copyright Royal Marines.) 1775. Tuesday 24th May. A reinforcement arrived at Boston from Ireland; and on the 26th, Major-Generals Howe, Clinton, and Burgoyne in the Cerberus from England. 1775. Thursday 8th of June the American congress resolved, " That the compact between the crown and the people of Massachusetts bay is dissolved." A proclamation was issued by general Gage establishing martial law and offering pardon to all who should return to their allegiance excepting Samuel Adams and John Handcock. Matters were thus fast approaching to a crisis, and both parties prepared in right earnest for the struggle. At this moment, the town of Charlestown was not occupied by either party; and the rebels, anticipating the movement of the king's troops, sent a large body of men on the 16th of June to erect works upon Bunker's-hill, and during the night they raised entrenchments, and constructed a formidable redoubt. On the 17th at day-break the garrison of Boston was alarmed by a heavy cannonade from his Majesty's ship Lively, directed against the working-party on the hill; but as the Americans persevered in their labours with great firmness, general Gage considered it highly necessary to dislodge them from so important a position, and therefore resolved on an immediate attack. The Lively, Falcon, and Spitfire, having anchored abreast of and below Charlestown for covering the landing of the troops, at nine in the morning the Glasgow, lying off Newpoint, and a battery of six guns and some howitzers, opened upon the rebels; but they perseveringly continued their work, nothing daunted by the heavy fire which was poured upon them. The Americans on the heights were in great force, and strongly posted in a redoubt, besides other works, on which they had mounted cannon. In the houses of Charlestown, which covered their right flank, they had also posted a large body of troops, while their centre and left flank were protected by a breastwork partly cannon proof; and these works reached from the left of the redoubt to the Mystic, or Medford, river. Ten companies of grenadiers and ten of light infantry, with the 5th, 38th, 43rd, and 52nd regiments under maj or-general Howe and brigadier-general Pigot, were embarked with great expedition, a & nd landed about noon on Charlestown Point, under the protection of the ships of war, whose well-directed fire kept the insurgents within their works. The troops formed in perfect order, the light infantry under brigadier Pigot posted on the right, and the grenadiers on the left; in rear of these the 5th and 38th regiments, and the 43rd and 52nd in a third line. Major-general Howe, on examining the state of the enemy's defences, and observing fresh columns pouring in to their assistance, solicited a reinforcement, which soon joined him, consisting of some companies of grenadiers and light infantry, the 47th regiment, and the battalions of marines, who were led by majors Pitcairne, Tupper, and Short. The major-general then formed the corps under his command into two lines, and immediately advanced towards the enemy's works. About half-past three o'clock a smart fire was opened from the field-pieces and howitzers of the British as the troops slowly advanced, and occasionally halting to allow the artillery to fire with greater effect. The light infantry was directed to force the left point of the breast-work and take the enemy in flank; whilst the grenadiers were to attack in front, supported by the 5th and 52nd regiments. Not a shot was returned by the enemy until our troops were close upon them, when they opened a destructive fire, which was so well maintained, that it somewhat staggered the assailants. For some time, the British withstood this opposition, but their loss of officers and men was so great, that they recoiled a little and fell into disorder, until the animating presence of general Howe restored confidence, when the soldiers rallied, and again advanced upon the enemy. At this time the left wing, from being much exposed to the enemy's fire from the houses of Charlestown, sustained considerable loss; orders were therefore sent to destroy the place, which was speedily effected by red-hot shot from the ships, and by Cape's-hill battery throwing carcasses. General Howe now renewed his attack, and overcoming the various impediments thrown in their way, the british soldiers rushed into the enrenchments with the bayonet and drove the gallant enemy from every part of the works across the peninsula, leaving five pieces of cannon in our possession. At the commencement of the action the rebels had above 5000 men, and their loss must have been considerable; but only 30 of the killed remained in the redoubt. In this hardly-earned victory, the loss on the part of the British amounted to 1 lieutenant-colonel, 2 majors, 7 captains, 9 lieutenants, 15 Serjeants, one drummer, and 191 rank and file killed; 3 majors, 27 captains, 32 lieute- nants, 8 ensigns, and 758 privates wounded, — making a total of 1054 in killed and wounded. The marine battalions sustained more than its proportionate share of casualties. "The commander-in-chief returns his most grateful thanks to major-general Howe for the xtraordinary exertion of his military abilities on the 17th instant. He returns his thanks also to major-general Clinton, and brigadier Pigot, for the share they took in the success of the day, as well as to lieutenant-colonels Nesbitt, Abercromby, Gunning, and Clarke; majors Butler, Williams, Bruce, Tupper, Spenlove, Small, and Mitchel, and the rest of the officers and soldiers ; who by remarkable efforts of courage and gallantry overcame every disadvantage, and drove the rebels from the redoubt and strong-holds on the heights of Charlestown, and gained a complete victory."
1775. Thursday 22nd June. The following interesting letter is from lieutenant J Waller, adjutant of the first marine battalion, dated, " Camp of Charles- town Heights, 22nd of June. "Two companies of the first battalion of marines, and part of the 47th regiment, were the first that mounted the breast- and you will not be displeased when I tell.you that I was with those two companies, who drove their bayonets into all that op- posed them. Nothing could be more shocking than the carnage that followed the storming this work. We tumbled over the dead to get at the living, who were crowding out of the gorge of the redoubt, in order to form under the defences which, they had prepared to cover their retreat. In these breast-works they had artillery, which did so much mischief; but these they were obliged to abandon, being followed closely by the light infantry, who suffered exceedingly in the pursuit. The rebels had 5000 to 7000 men, covered by a redoubt, breast-works, walls, hedges, trees, and the like; and the number of the corps under general Howe, (who performed this gallant business,) did not amount to 1500. We gained a complete victory, and entrenched ourselves that night, where we lay under arms, in the front of the field of battle. We lay the next night on the ground, and the following- day encamped. The officers have not their marquees, but are obliged to lie in soldiers' tents, they being more portable in case of our advancing. " We had of our corps one major, 2 captains, and 3 lieutenants killed; 4 captains, and 3 lieutenants wounded: 2 Serjeants, and 21 rank and file killed; and 3 Serjeants and 79 privates wounded: and I suppose, upon the whole, we lost, killed and wounded, from 800 to 1000 men. We killed a number of the rebels, but the cover they fought under made their loss less considerable than it would otherwise have been. The army is in great spirits, and full of rage and ferocity at the rebellious rascals, who both poisoned and chewed the musket balls, in order to make them the more fatal. Many officers have died of their wounds, and others very ill: 'tis astonishing what a number of officers were hit on this occasion; but the officers were particularly aimed at. " I will just give you a short account of the part of the action where I was particularly concerned. We landed close under Charlestown and formed with the 47th regiment close under the natural defences of the redoubt, which we drove the enemy from, climbing over rails and hedges. So, we closed upon them; but when we came immediately under the work, we were checked by the severe fire of the enemy but did not retreat an inch. We were now in confusion, after being broke several times in getting over the rails, &c. I did all I could to form the two companies on our right, which at last I effected, losing many of them while it was performing. Major Pitcairne was killed close by me, with a captain and a subaltern. Also, a Serjeant, and his majesty's thanks. 89 many of the privates; and had we stopped there much longer, the enemy would have picked us all off. I saw this, and begged colonel Nesbitt of the 47th to form on our left, in order that we might advance with our bayonets to the parapet. I ran from right to left and stopped our men from firing; while this was doing, and when we had got in tolerable order, we rushed on, leaped the ditch, and climbed the parapet, under a most sore and heavy fire. Colonel Nesbitt has spoken very favourably of my conduct, and both our majors have mentioned me to lord Sandwich in consequence of it. One capTain and one subaltern fell in getting up, and one captain and one subaltern was wounded of our corps: three captains of the 52nd were killed on the parapet, and others that I know nothing of. God bless you! I did not think, at one time, that I should ever have been able to write this, though in the heat of the action I thought nothing of the matter. Adieu, dear Jacob, your's, a complete victory." The provincials constructed works on an eminence on the continental side of the Charlestown-neck, directly opposite to the british troops on Bunker's-hill, and by their frequent nightly incursions on the different islands, where the live-stock for the British was kept, they added much to the distress of the army. In one of those daring enterprises they burnt the light-houses at the entrance of Boston harbour; and when the principal one was under repair, protected by a detachment of marines, they surprised the party, and carried them all off to the continent. In the orders of the 27 th of September, the royal thanks were tendered to the forces in the following terms: " The King has been pleased to order the commander-in-chief to express his Majesty's thanks, both to the officers and soldiers, for the resolution and gallantry with which they attacked and defeated the rebels on the 17th of June last, who had every advantage of numbers and situation ; and more especially to express to generals Howe and Clinton, and to brigadier-general Pigot, the sense his Majesty entertains of the spirit, resolution, and conduct by which they distinguished themselves, to their honour, upon that day." sense his Majesty entertains of the spirit, resolution, and conduct by which they distinguished themselves, to their honour, upon that day." The battalion-orders of that day also contained a notification that, the King had been pleased to make the following promotions in his marine forces serving in North America: — Captain W. Souter to be major, vice Short, killed in action. Capt.-lieut. Fras. Lindsay to be captain, v. Campbell, ditto. Robt. Ross to be captain, v. Ellis, ditto. „ David Johnstone to be capt., v. Souter, promoted. First-lieut. Jessie Adair to be capt-lieut., v. Lindsay, ditto. 1775. Thursday 12th October. General Gage obtained his Majesty's permission to return to England, and on the 12th of ctober the command of the british land forces in America devolved on major-general Howe. The disaffected Americans, encouraged by their increasing strength, looked boldly forward to a successful struggle in establishing an independent government of their own; and animated by these hopes, they no longer confined their operations to defensive measures, but availed themselves of every opportunity of assailing their enemies. In this state of enduring firmness on the part of the Americans, the distressed army at Boston looked anxiously for reinforcements and supplies of provisions. On the 2nd of March, general Washington opened a battery at Phipps-farm, and on the 5th some works were erected on Dorchester-point, from which a fire was opened from a twenty-four pounder and a mortar with such effect, that the town was soon in a blaze. Finding it impracticable to dislodge the enemy from their new position, major-general Howe was compelled to abandon the town, and the troops were consequently conveyed on board the ships. The embarkation rather resembled the emigration of a nation than the breaking up of a camp: 1500 of the inhabitants, attached to the royal cause, encumbered the transports with their families, which, together with the scarcity of provisions, occasioned much discontent, and increased the jealous feeling that prevailed between the army and navy. As the British were unable to carry off their stores and heavy artillery, the cannon on BunkerVhill and Bostonneck fell into the hands of the Americans, who reaped great advantage by our hasty departure. On the 17th of March, general Washington entered Boston in great triumph, and the british armament, amounting to 1 50 sail, proceeded to Halifax. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1776. Monday 1st
January. Liverpool and consorts burnt Norfolk Virginia.
1776. Thursday 4th April. Amongst the augmentations to the british forces voted for the year 1776, 2378 men were added to the marines, making their total establishment 6665 men. The fleet, with the army from Boston, reached Halifax on the 4th of April, where they continued in expectation of succours from England until the 12th of June, and arrived at Sandy Hook on the 29th. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1776. Saturday 6th
April. HMS Glasgow engaged American Squadron.
1776. Wednesday 17th
April. Halifax (Uniform).The O.C. desires the Captains will take care to have
the Arms, Accoutrements and Appointments of their men, in perfect order on
Tuesday next, as the General intend to see both Battalions on that day. When
it’s expected that every man will have a Clean Shirt with a Frill to it, a good
Black Stock, and a pair of half Gaiters. The Pouches to be slung and polished
as soon as possible.
1776. Sunday 21st
April. Halifax (Uniform). The Officers of the 1st battalion to wear White Roses
in their Gorgets and to provide themselves with them immediately. They are like
wise to wear their hair (when under arms or on Duty) in a short Club.
1776. Tuesday 30th April. It is a tribute meritedly due to the Battalions of Marines who acted so gallantly in the field, to take a retrospective view of their general good conduct at Halifax, and the series of events connected with them. "Lord Percy being well pleased with the appearance and performance of the Marine Battalions yesterday (April 30, 1776), desires his thanks to the Officers (in particular) and the men, for their steadiness and attention in their several movements." "The Lords of the Admiralty are pleased to allow the Captains of Marines the pay of an additional man per Company, which will increase their present allowance to 1s. 6d. per day, for paying their Companies, providing necessaries, repairing arms, and burying their dead, in like manner as is practised in the Army, and still on shore in North America. The Deputy Paymaster will issue the same. The additional man per day to commence from the time the Army in America was allowed the same." If the enemy had attempted Halifax, the line of battle directed by Major General Massey was, "That Lieutenant Colonel Collins, with the 1st Battalion of Marines, should draw up his right at the house this side of Pedley's Hill. The Royal Highland Emigrants, Royal Americans, Loyal Nova Scotia Volunteers, and 2d Battalion of Marines, under Major Tupper, on the left; the whole to form on the road. Lieutenant Gillespie, with the field-pieces, in the centre; Captain Ramsay, with his detachment of the 14th Regiment, to form on the grand parade, and wait for orders from the Governor or General. The faithful well-tried old Soldiers left here for garrison-duty, under command of Lieutenant Needham, and the other Overseers of the works to form on the Citadel Hill. Lieutenant Lindsay, with his troops, to form at the Dutch Church, where General Massey will have two mortars, with two howitzers fixed for his Corps; and he makes not the least doubt of their readiness to assist in crushing rebellion." "The Commanding Officer begs leave to assure the two Battalions of Marines, that it is necessity, not inclination, which forces him from hence. His highest ambition would have been to have conducted them to England, when this distempered state of America was settled. He begs leave to return the Officers thanks for their constant attention and flatters himself the service will be carried on in the same uniform line it has hitherto been, and if the change of climate permits the re-establishment of his health, he will join them as soon after as possible." As a just compliment to the discipline established by Lieutenant Colonel Collins, Major Souter, who succeeded him, gave out these orders, to both battalions of Marines, on the 18th of September. "Major Souter desiring that the orders Lieut. Colonel Collins has issued for the regulation and management of both battalions be uniformly and invariably pursued; particularly those of an Officer of a Company seeing that the men are properly dressed and appointed, when ordered on duty, before they are brought to the parade, and that no drunken men are allowed to fall into the ranks at roll-calling. The Captains are likewise to keep up the necessaries and appointments that have been ordered." The gallant conduct of the Light Infantry Companies of Marines on a preceding occasion, drew forth the encomium of Major General Massey, upon the 19th of December, in these handsome words: That gallant and good Officer, now Lord Clarina, ever ready to attend to suppliant merit, and the Soldiers wants, in general orders of the 24th of February 1777, thus answers the Petition of the 1st Battalion of Marines: Early in April the two Battalions were consolidated into one, by orders of the Board of Admiralty, addressed to Major Souter, to the following effect: 1776. May. The loss of
Actacon (?)
1776. May. The Bombardment of Charleston.
1776. Friday 12th July.
The voyage of HMS Resolution and HMS Discovery. Captain Cook set sail in a
repaired HMS Resolution along with HMS Discovery Commanded by Charles Clerke,
in search of the ‘North West Passage’. On the way to Cape Town South Africa HMS
Resolution stopped at Tenerife to top up on supplies, eventually arriving on
the 17th October. Immediately upon arrival HMS Resolution had it re-caulked
because it had been leaking badly, especially through the main deck. Mean time
HMS Discovery had been delayed in London, and did not follow Cook until 1st
August. When HMS Discovery finally arrived on 10th November she was also found
to be in need of re-caulking. The HMS Discovery was the smallest of Cook’s
ships and was manned by a crew of sixty-nine. The two ships were repaired and
restocked with a large number of livestock. They then sailed in company on 1st
December and on 13th December located and named the Prince Edward Islands.
Twelve days later Cook found the Kerguelen Islands which he failed to find on
his second voyage. Driven by strong westerly winds they reached Van Diemen's
Land on 26th January 1777.
1776. Saturday 27th July. After several encounters with the rebel force, the Americans were routed from the island on the 27th, with loss of five pieces of cannon, 2000 killed, wounded, or drowned, and 997 prisoners; whilst the loss of the British did not exceed 300 in killed and wounded. Captain Logan, 2nd battalion of marines, was killed; lieutenant Nugent, 1st battalion, wounded; and lieutenant Ragg, 2nd battalion, made prisoner. In the month of July, general Howe passed over with the army to Staten Island, and preparations were made for an attack on Philadelphia. On the 23rd, the armament, consisting of thirty six battalions, and a powerful artillery, sailed from Sandy Hook, and on the 31st arrived off the entrance of the Delaware; but finding that the rebels obstructed the navigation of that river, the fleet proceeded up the Chesapeake on the 14th of August, and the troops were landed at Elk ferry on the 25th. On the 3rd of September our troops began their march, whilst Washington, who had returned from the Jerseys to the defence of Philadelphia with 13,000 men, lost no opportunity of harassing them in their progress, without bringing on a general engagement; but several actions took place before our army entered Philadelphia, of which city they took possession on the 26th of September. Lord Cornwallis immediately gave directions for the erection of three batteries for 6 twelve-pounders and 4 howitzers, to act upon the enemy's shipping that might approach the town ; but before these batteries could be completed, two frigates, a number of galleys, gondolas, and other armed vessels, came up from Mud Island, and attacked the lower battery of two guns and two howitzers, the largest frigate, the Delaware, anchoring within 500 yards, and the other frigate somewhat more distant, whilst the other vessels took suitable stations. About ten in the morning they commenced a heavy cannonade, but the tide ebbing, the Delaware took the ground; upon which, the four battalion guns of the grenadiers did such execution, that in a short time she struck her colours, and was taken possession of by captain Thomas Avarne with his company of marines. The grenadiers of both marine battalions had been incorporated with those of the army previous to leaving Halifax and formed part of the force which entered Philadelphia. Lord Howe, on being apprised of the progress of the army, proceeded with the fleet to co-operate with the land forces, and anchored on the western or Pennsylvania shore. The passage to Philadelphia was however rendered still impracticable by the Amei'icans, who had constructed numerous works to interrupt the navigation of the river. The principal of these were strongbatteries on a low and marshy island, at the junction of the Delaware and Schuylkill, and a considerable fort at Red Bank, on the opposite shore of New Jersey. In the deepest part of the channel between these forts, they had sunk several ranges of frames, composed of transverse beams firmly united, and of great weight and strength. About three miles lower down the river were similar machines, commanded by guns on the Jersey shore, and both were supported by floating batteries, a number of armed vessels, and some fire-ships. At the suggestion of captain Hammond of the Roebuck, two regiments were detached to dislodge the enemy from Billing's Point, the principal place of strength on the Jersey side. This service was effectually performed, whilst captain Hammond, after a sharp contest with the enemy's marine force, removed the chevauz de frise, and opened a narrow passage through the lower barrier. General Howe now ordered batteries to be thrown up on the Pennsylvania shore to assist in dislodging the rebels from Mud Island and detached a strong body of Hessians to carry the redoubt at Red Bank; at the same time his lordship moved the men-of-war near Mud island, which was the main object of attack. Both these operations were unsuccessful: the Hessians were repulsed with great slaughter, and the ships, unable to produce any effect upon the island, were compelled to quit their position. The obstructions placed in the river by the Americans had so materially altered the channel, that Augusta of 64-guns, and Merlin sloop, unfortunately grounded, and both were destroyed. ????. Those untoward events did not deter the British from making another attempt, and the Americans were equally persevering in strengthening their points of defence. The Isis and Somerset passed up the east channel and attacked the enemy's works in front; whilst several frigates drew up against a newly erected fort near Manto creek, and two vessels, mounting 20 four-pounders, having made their way through a narrow channel, enfiladed the principal works. The cannonade continued the whole of the 15th of November, but towards evening the fire from the fort began to slacken, and the enemy perceiving that measures were taking for assaulting their works, set fire to everything that could be destroyed, and escaped under favour of the night. The forts on the main land were also silenced, and their capture afforded a considerable quantity of artillery and military stores to the victors. The enemy's shipping retreated up the river, but on being closely pursued they were burnt by their crews. These successes enabled the squadron to forward the supplies required by the troops and secured them good winter-quarters in Philadelphia. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1776. Tuesday 27th
August. Long Island. In this action 1 Officer and 20 Marine Grenadiers were
captured from having mistaken the blue uniforms of the Americans for those of
the Hessians. There were 2 battalions of Marines totalling 1172 men in General
Howe’s Army at New York at the time.
1776. September. The
Bombardment of New York.
1776. Friday 11th
October. Action on lake Champlain.
1776. Friday 6th
December. Fire in portsmouth Dockyard.
1776. HMS Repulse lost
with all hands off Bermuda.
1776. Corps Strength at
that time was 10,129 men. It included six field-officers with their companies,
three Lieutenant Colonels and three Majors, but on the formation of the
expedition for Botany Bay, whilst four companies were added, those of the field
officers remained reduced. On the retirement of Lord Howe, the Earl of Chatham
became first Lord of the Admiralty, and in consequence of the presentation of a
memorial from the three divisions the field-officers and their companies were
restored.
1776. November. Martha’s Vineyard. Taken from Beatson’s M. & N. Memoires: “The Diamond, Captained Fielding, having been driven by the weather into Martha’s Vineyard, sent a boat ashore under a flag of truce. The inhabitants suffered the boat to come within gun shot, and then fired upon her and one man was wounded. To punish this treachery the Diamond’s Marines were landed, and at once attacked and routed a party of the enemy, though strongly posted on a hill and sheltered by rocks and bushes, from behind which they kept up a brisk fire. One Marine was killed and one wounded, while the rebels lost 4 killed and many wounded. The Marines then set fire to their houses and barns and brought off as many oxen, sheep and poultry as they could.” (Sic) 1776 - 1783. During the American War of Independence, the following advertisement appeared in the Ipswich Journal of Saturday 26th February 1780. This newspaper, now defunct, had had a wide circulation in Suffolk and Essex. 1776. Pattern 1776
infantry rifle was designed. One thousand are made and issued to British
soldiers fighting in the War of American Independence.
1776. From very early
times 'Press Gangs' had functioned in order to provide seamen. It was an
Admiralty rule, founded upon the believe, that every British male subject was
eligible to be pressed into service. However, the principal raids by press
gangs were usually on experienced seafarers, particularly those serving aboard
merchant vessels. There is little doubt that pressing for the naval service was
legal provided the press gangs held a warrant issued in the county and was
accompanied by a commissioned officer. There was also lawful protection
documents that barred press gangs from taking the person. These were of short
tenure and only for necessary skilled craftsmen, men with connections. It’s
interesting to note that to this day it has never been repealed.
1777. Thursday 13th March. The news of the defeat of general Bourgoyne's army produced such a change in the conduct of the court of Versailles with regard to the Americans, that it determined on the 16th of December 1777, to acknowledge the independence of the United States; and his christian Majesty was resolved to support that policy, even at a risk of producing a war with England. On the 13th of March 1778, the marquis de Noailles, the french ambassador, delivered a message from his court, expressive of its determination to maintain their commercial relations with America, and that measures had been taken in concert with the United States to maintain the dignity of the french flag, and effectually to protect the lawful commerce of their subjects. While these preparations were going forward in Europe, nothing decisive occurred in America, and both armies continued in their winter-quarters. As the spring approached, general Howe sent detachments to open a communication by which provisions might be obtained for the army ; and on the 7th of May, major Maitland, with the 2nd battalion of light infantry, embarked in flat boats, protected by some armed vessels, to destroy the american ships lying in the river between (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1777. Sunday 18th May.
Beaver took Oliver Cromwell.
1777. Saturday 7th June. An action was fought off the banks of Newfoundland, between the american frigates Handcock and Boston, of 32-guns, and the british 32-gun frigate Fox, captain Patrick Fotheringham. After engaging two hours, the Fox was so much disabled that she could no longer contend against such superior force; and having sustained a considerable loss, she struck her colours. Among the killed was the honourable James John Napier, lieutenant of marines. The province of Nova Scotia being threatened with an invasion from the eastern parts of New England, sir George Collier, with the Rainbow, Blonde, and Mermaid frigates, and Hope sloop, sailed from Halifax, and arrived at Machias on the 13th of August. On the following morning, finding that the enemy had assembled in force on each side of the river, whence they kept up a galling fire of musquetry, and also from the fort, it was found desirable to land the marines, who, after some resistance, routed the enemy; and the port, together with some stores and several small vessels, were destroyed. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1777. July. Fox taken
by Hancock and Boston.
1777. Monday 18th
August. The Rainbow took the Hancock.
1777. Tuesday 19th
August. The Flora took the Fox.
1777. Thursday 4th September. A very gallant defence was made by the Druid sloop, mounting 14-guns, against the american frigate Raleigh, of 32-guns, in which captain Carteret of the Druid and 5 men were killed; lieutenant James Nicolson of the marines and 20 men wounded. The Druid formed part of the escort of the West India convoy, under the Camel of 20 guns and Weazel of 16 guns; but being five miles astern, she sustained the action without any support from her consorts. The Raleigh withdrew from this unequal contest, after having suffered severely. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1777. Monday 22nd
September. The Albert took the Lexington.
1777. Wednesday 22nd
October. The Augusta and the Merlin blown up.
1777. Friday 26th
September. The Capture of Philadelphia. The two Marine Grenadier Companies
present with the rest of the Grenadiers belonging to the Army. During the
advance on the city the US rebel frigate Delaware ran aground and was taken
possession of by a company of Marines under command of Captain Avarne.
1777. Corps strength at
that time was 11,829 men.
1777. Stephen Davenports time in
the Corps 1777 - 1785. Little is known of Stephen Davenport other than brief
references in, the muster rolls of various ships and divisional records, yet
his brief 6 years in the Corps give an, insight not only into daily life of the
18th century marine but the hardships they suffered.
First mention as a Private Marine in HMS Augusta in 1777,
engaged in the assault on Mud Island in the Delaware River in support of Sir
William Howe's land attack on Philadelphia, where we have him dirty and tense
as the ships guns roared all around him, and the Augusta went aground as she
tried to squeeze through a narrow channel made narrower by the enemy batteries.
The ship lay quiet all night, with the men busy lightening her to catch the
morning tide, but the wind was unfavorable and at daylight the shore batteries
began firing again. At mid-morning an odd crackling was heard, and the ship was
on fire, started by fire rafts floated down stream by the American, or as the
Captain believed by burning wads from her own guns igniting cattle fodder on
board.
The crew scrambled to safety and the Augusta, a 64-gun ship of
the line blew up. Her crew including Steven Davenport were distributed amongst
the other ships of the fleet, Davenport to HMS Somerset doing duty out of New
York & Rhode Island. A year later, on the 2nd of November 1778 guarding the
entrance to Boston Harbour, Somerset was driven ashore on the Peak Hill Bars,
by Provincetown, some of the crew were saved by a boat engaged in a prisoner
exchange, but the captain and four hundred of his crew managed to get to shore
where they were taken by the Americans. No record has been found in the muster
lists of those saved who were dispersed into the other ships of the fleet, so
it must be assumed that Davenport was among the prisoners taken by the
Americans. These were exchanged by cartel the following year, and Stephen
Davenport next appears promoted to Corporal in the newly raised 129th Coy of
Plymouth Division, embarking on the 9th November into HMS Dublin whose log records
"come on from Head Quarters 110 marines 1 Captain 2 Subalterns 4 Sargent's
2 Droomers". Here occurred the only blemish found on his record. On the
27th December 1779 an 'R' was placed against his name on the muster list (R is
the mark of a man deserted), but Dublin was Portugal bound and was anchored in
the Sound on the 25th "getting ready for sea", "employed
unmooring on the 26th", and "under way" on the 27th. Fourteen
men were so marked between those dates, possibly caught ashore when the winds
came up and filled the sails, the 'R' would normally be removed on reporting to
their Divisional Office, with a plausible reason, it was not an uncommon occurrence,
when sailing time was decided by the wind. (sic)
At the end of March 1780, he is noted in the muster list of HMS
Diligence at Portsmouth without the 'R', and in June was discharged into HMS
Monarch, serving aboard until the end of September. In the December he embarked
in HMS Cormorant for passage to Plymouth. On the 5th October 1781 he was
mustered into HMS Nymph, where on the 28th June 1783 at Tortola in the West
Indies she caught fire, the Admiralty was informed "the fire ragged so
violently, the Greatest exertions of the officers and company proved
ineffectual". Only three men were lost, but a subscription had to be
raised to clothe the survivors. Davenport returned to England aboard the Caton
and was discharged to Headquarters at Plymouth on the 4th November 1783. Caught
in the reduction of the Corps strength because of the end of hostilities he was
discharged from the Corps on the 17th of February 1784, his pay being recorded
as 9.1s.1½d for service in HMS Nymph and 2.8s.6d for HMS Caton.
His last appearance is recorded in the Lent Assizes held in
Exeter on the 14th February 1785 charged with Robbery on the King's Highway,
together with three others, two former marines, and a servant. On the 17th, the
Exeter Flying Post announced the names of the eleven prisoners who had received
the death sentence, Stephen Davenport among them.
In the pages of the Devon Goal Book can still be seen the
dreaded black asterisk against his name. Before he left Exeter, the Justice,
Sir Francis Buller pleaded the King's Mercy about seven of the condemned, six
having their sentence commuted to "transportation beyond the seas for seven
years" and for Stephen Davenport, a Free Pardon. (sic)
1778. Eleven thousand Marines constituted the establishment of 1778. 1778. Monday 9th March.
The Ariadine and the Cores took the Alfred.
1778. Friday 24th
April. King George visited Chatham and Sheerness.
1778. Thursday 7th May.
The Capture of Borden town and the destruction of rebel shipping. Carried out
by the Marine Light Infantry under command of Major Hon. John Maitland of the
Marines.
1778. Friday 8th May. Philadelphia and Trenton: two frigates and some smaller vessels were burnt, together with various magazines and storehouses. Sir William Howe having obtained his Majesty's permission to return to England, sir Henry Clinton arrived at Philadelphia on the 8th of May, and having assumed the command of the army, the first operation was to evacuate Philadelphia, pursuant to his instructions. This measure was deemed necessary, to enable the british forces to resist the united efforts of the Americans and their new and powerful allies. On the 18th the army proceeded to Gloucester Point, and having crossed the Delaware in safety, it continued its march to New York without interruption, until the 28th but from that period the rebel force kept close to the royal troops, continually harassing their retreat. On the 5th of July the army crossed the Navisink, over a bridge of boats, to Sandy Hook, and then moved up to New York, while the fleet anchored at Staten Island. The french admiral d'Estaing, with twelve ships of the line, sailed from Toulon on the 13th of April, and pursuing their course to America, arrived on the coast of Virginia on the 5th of July. On the 11th, they appeared off the northern shore of New Jersey, and anchored off Shrewsbury-inlet on the following day. To oppose this formidable force, lord Howe had only six sail of 64-gun ships, three of 50, and two of 44 guns; yet, notwithstanding this inferiority of strength, there was such an earnest desire to meet the enemy, that 1000 volunteers from the transports presented themselves to man the fleet, and the troops were equally zealous to embark as marines, where their services might be required. Lord Howe made the necessary disposition of his fleet to resist any attack of the enemy, and on the 21st of July the movement of the french admiral seemed to indicate an immediate battle; when, to the astonishment of the British, M. d'Estaing bore away to the southward. On the 8th of August the french fleet anchored at Rhode Island, after cannonading the town and batteries as they passed. Advice having reached lord Howe of the enemy's position, he proceeded with a determination to save the garrison in Rhode Island, and on the 9th the british squadron made their appearance. On the morning of the 10th, the french fleet stood out to sea, followed by the english squadron; and after remaining two days in sight of each other without any opportunity of engaging, the fleets were dispersed by a violent gale of wind, in which several ships were dismasted. The french fleet, after again appearing off Rhode Island, took refuge in Boston bay, where they were followed by lord Howe ; but as no attempt could be made upon the enemy in their then situation with a prospect of success, the british admiral returned to Sandy Hook Vice-admiral Byron, with two of his crippled ships, which were the only ones of his scattered fleet of eleven sail of the line that reached their rendezvous in America, arrived at Sandy Hook from Halifax on the 26th of September ; and after refitting his ships, that officer sailed for Boston on the 1 8th of October, in search of M. d'Estaing. A few days after he had put to sea, his squadron was greatly injured by a violent storm, when the Somerset was wrecked on Cape Cod, and the Culloden, from being dismasted, was forced to bear away for England. Commodore Hotham, who had been detached from Staten Island with a small squadron, conveying 5000 troops under major-general Grant to afford reinforcements to our colonies, reached Barbadoes on the 10th of December, where he joined rear-admiral Barrington. It having been determined to make an immediate attack upon St. Lucia, the army landed without much opposition on the 12th and 13th, and on the 14th gained entire possession of the island. Just as this was accomplished, admiral d'Estaing's fleet of twelve sail of the line, and several frigates, made their appearance, and found the british squadron placed in line across the entrance of the bay, protected by heavy batteries on either point of land at the entrance of the cul-de-sac, where they were twice attacked by the french squadron on the 15th ; and on the following day the enemy disembarked about 8000 troops in Choc bay, but were repulsed by brigadier-general Medows, with the loss of 500 killed, and 1100 wounded. M. d'Estaing made no further attempts on the island, nor did he renew his attack on the british squadron; but on the 28th, having re-embarked his troops, the fleet returned to Martinique. The arrival of admiral Byron just after the repulse of M. d'Estaing, enabled the british fleet to assume a superiority over that of the enemy; and although means were adopted to draw them to an engagement, they remained in the security which the harbour of Port Royal afforded them. The marines serving with the army at Halifax were formed into one battalion, by an Admiralty order dated January 1777, under majors Souter and Maitland, with the undermentioned officers — Captains, — Avarne, Elliott, McDonald, Pitcairne, D. John- son, and Griffiths. Lieutenants, — Ragg, Vevers, Stewart, Saul, Ewing, Moore, J. Lewis, Bowman, F. Lewis, Jacobs, Shea, Gilbert, Dyer, Short, Howe, Simins, Kempe, M'Donald, Tantum, Trollope, Eustace, Carey, Meredith, and Creswell. Dr. Boyles, chaplain. John Waller, adjutant. Thomas Smith, quarter-master. Charles Hill, surgeon; James Silver, surgeon's-mate. In consequence of a petition from the lieutenant-governor in council of the province of Nova Scotia, requesting that the battalion might be continued on shore, the commander-in-chief was pleased to intimate his compliance with their wishes in public orders of the 7th, when the thanks of the council were conveyed to major Souter in the following letter: — "Sir, "Halifax, 10M Septembe, 1778. " I have singular pleasure in obeying the request of the members of his Majesty's council, by conveying to you and the rest of the officers our acknowledgments and thanks for the good order and discipline observed by the battalion of marines under your command, during the whole time they have been on duty in this town. I have the honour to be, sir, " Your most obedient humble servant, 1778. Saturday 30th May. James Weir was commissioned into The Marine Corps as a second lieutenant on 30th May 1778 At this time it was customary for an officer, upon promotion, to be posted to another company, and 2nd lieutenant Weir was no exception. On his promotion to full lieutenant on Friday 25th August 1780, he was drafted from 56 Company to 60 Company Division, which was then quartered round the Barbican, Plymouth. After three years in The Marine Corps, however, Lieutenant Weir suddenly found his service career cut short. With the lifting of the siege of Gibraltar 1779 - 1783, and the end of the American War of Independence 1775 - 1783, The Marine Corps was drastically reduced. As a result, Lieutenant Weir found himself on half pay. His retirement was only for a brief period, as on Thursday 15th May 1783 he was reinstated and appointed to 7 Company, Chatham Division. For the next ten years 1783 - 1793 peace existed between England and France. But during that period the Prime Minister, William Pitt, to save money, neglected the defence of the country. Consequently, when the newly formed French Republic declared war on England in February 17931) it was found that the Navy had been reduced to 16,000 men, of whom only 4,500 were Marines. Due to this shortage of men, it was found necessary for The Marine Corps to be reinforced by a number of Army regiments, who were sent to serve at sea on ships-of-the-line. The situation was slightly improved, however, when an Order-in-Council in April 1795 voted for the recruitment of 15,000 men for The Marine Corps. With this increase in The Marine Corps, orders soon followed to supply all ships-of-the-line with detachments when they came into port without Marines or soldiers. This move caused a lot of drafts between Divisions. It also led to the long awaited promotions among Marine officers. James Weir was one of them. After twelve year's service as a Lieutenant he was promoted to Captain on 4th May 1795, with a pay increase from £3.1Os.0d to £5.12s.Od per month. Shortly afterwards he was given command of the Marine detachment on board HMS Audacious, a two-decker 74-gun ship-of-the-line which had been operating out of Gibraltar since 1795. But in 1796 with the British position weakened by the loss of the Coalition partners, Austria and Italy, the British fleet was withdrawn to the Atlantic. From that station Audacious began to visit ports along the coast of Portugal until early December 1796, when orders were given for her to return to Spithead. On 7th December Audacious arrived at that port before being ordered round to Plymouth, where most of her crew were paid off. Thereafter, Audacious spent the first quarter of the year 1797 refitting and recommissioning. In May 1798 eight ships-of-the-line joined St-Vincent's fleet off Cadiz, with orders from the Admiralty to the C-in-C to send into the Mediterranean a squadron to report on intelligence received in London of large French force fitting out along the south coast of France. Captain Weir was to learn of this news three days later when orders were received for Audacious to sail in company with ten other 74-gun ships the Cuioden, Bellerophon, Minotaur, Defence, Zealous, Goliath, Majestic, Swiftsure, Theseus, and the 50-gun ship Leander, to join Rear Admiral Sir Horatio Nelson off Toulon. Nelson in his 74-gun flagship, the Vanguard, had been detached from the C-in-C's fleet on 2nd May and sent with two other 74-gun ships and two 32-gun frigates to find out the object of Napoleon's expedition assembling off Toulon, but on 19th May had been driven off that station by a strong gale. As a result when the British squadron found Nelson off the coast of Corsica on 7th June with new orders from St. Vincent to destroy the French force, the thirteen French ships-of-the-line, and 280 transports carrying some 50,000 men had already sailed for an unknown destination. Nelson aware that Napoleon had left Toulon, but not where he had gone, went in search with his force which now, up to fleet strength, could challenge the French. While Nelson sailed back and forth among the Italian islands and along the north-west coast of Italy, Napoleon had arrived off the island of Malta. Malta was Napoleon's first military destination. By a decree dated Thursday 12th April 1798, given by the French Directory, Napoleon had been instructed to seize the island. Although Malta was under the sovereignty of the Order of St. John of Jerusalem, and at peace, Napoleon soon found a pretext to land his troops. With few knights and troops to resist the invaders the Grand Master von Hompesch himself with no heart for a fight, the Order soon capitulated to the French. The articles of surrender were signed on board the 120gun flagship L 'Orient in the early hours of the morning of the Tuesday 12th June 1798, Thus brought to an end 268 years of rule in Malta by the Knights of the Order of St. John. Napoleon himself only remained in Malta for one week. On Monday 18th June he re-embarked on board L'Orient with treasure plundered from the churches and government buildings, and sailed on the following day for Egypt. The French force Napoleon left behind, under General Vaubois, consisted of 3053 infantry and five companies of artillery which in all amounted to 3350 officers and men who during the following weeks began a campaign of rape and pillage throughout the islands. While these atrocities were being carried out by the French on the island, Nelson in pursuit of Napoleon continued to miss the French armada, which arrived at Alexandria on 1st July, and where the troops were immediately put ashore by Napoleon. The French fleet, however, unable to moor in the shallow harbour was ordered to go to Corfu or to Malta, but Vice-Admiral Brueys, aboard L 'Orient, instead sailed fifteen miles along the coast to Aboukir Bay, where Nelson on 1St August found the enemy fleet anchored across the bay close inshore. Nelson ordered action stations at 6.20 p.m. Weir's ship was fifth in line, in front of Nelson's flagship Vanguard, when the British fleet entered the bay, but when Goliath went round to landward side of the French fleet, Audacious followed and attacked that end of the enemy's ships. The first was Le Guerrier 74, which Audacious raked with a broadside on passing, and then engaged the next ship, Le Conquerant 74. This action soon developed into a murderous upper deck battle. The Audacious forecastle men turned their guns which were loaded with grape and almost swept clear the upper deck men on the enemy ship, while the Marines fired their muskets up into the riggings to dislodge the French seamen who with small arms were firing down onto the British gunners. It only took twelve minutes of ferocious fighting for Le Conquerant to be reduced to a wreck, compelling it to surrender to Audacious. During the battle, a note sent by David Gould, the Captain of Audacious, to Nelson on board the Vanguard, said: The battle raged all night. The flagship, L 'Orient became the most severe casualty in the fight. First engaged by the Bellerophon, which was forced to withdraw when dismasted, the attack was taken up by Swiftsure and Alexander. At about 10 p.m., the flagship, her commander Admiral Brueys, already killed early in the engagement, was set alight. The ship continued to burn until the fire reached the magazine, and with a deafening roar L'Orient blew up. So tremendous was the explosion that for several minutes there was silence amongst the other ships, and then the battle commenced again until daylight when only three French ships remained from the thirteen ships-of-the-line which had sailed from Toulon. One ran aground and was burned by her crew. The other two Guillaurne Tell 80 bearing the flag of Rear Admiral Villeneuve, and Le Genereux 74, with two frigates, La Diane and La Justice made sail and escaped into the Mediterranean. The battle over, work immediately was put in hand to refit and jury rig the captured French prizes. This took up to twelve days to complete. This time allowed Captain Weir to complete a number of drawings of the battle as seen through his eyes. His artistic hobby was, however, cut short on 14th August when orders were received for his ship to make ready for sea. On that day, Tuesday, instructions were given by Nelson to Sir James Saumarez of the Orion, to take under his command the Bellerophon, Minotaur, Defence, Theseus, Majestic, and Audacious and escort the prizes Le Franklin, Le Tonnani L 'Aquilon, Le Souverain Peuple, Le Spartiate, and Le Conqiierant, to Gibraltar. (Sic) (From Brian N. Tarpey from his book ‘Nelson’s Marines at Malta’ – RMHS 1995) 1778. Wednesday 17th
June. The Milford took the Licorue.
1778. Thursday 18th
June. The Foudreyant and consorts captured the Pallas.
1778. Wednesday 8th
July. The Lively taken by French Squadron.
1778. Wednesday 8th
July. The Ostrich took a French privateer.
1778. Monday 27th July.
Keppel and d'Orvilliers off Brest.
1778. Wednesday 29th
July. HMS Kingfisher was captured by a French Squadron.
1778. Sunday 9th
August. Lord Howe and d'Estaing off Rhode Island.
1778. Monday 10th
August. The Siege of Pondicherry was the first military action on the Indian
subcontinent following the declaration of war between Great Britain and France
in the American War of Independence. A British force besieged the French
controlled port of Puducherry, which capitulated after ten weeks of siege.
1778. Sunday 16th
August. The Lois engaged the Cesar.
1778. Sunday 16th
August. The Vernon and Tranjolly off Coromandel Coast.
1778. Friday 21st
August. Pondicherry captured by the Vernon.
1778. Sunday 23rd
August. Sartine taken by a British Squadron.
1778. Tuesday 20th
October. Jupiter and Medea engaged a french ship.
1778. Wednesday 4th
November. Maidstone took Lion.
1778. Tuesday 15th
December. Barrington and d'Estaing at St. Lucia.
1778. Corps Strength at
that time 17,389 men.
1778. The Fox was taken
by the Junon.
1778. The Helena was
taken by the Sensible.
1778. The Arehusa
engaged the Belle Poule.
1778. The Zephyr was
captured by a french frigate.
1778. Eleven thousand Marines constituted the establishment of 1778. Until the close of the last year France stood in awe and continued to cherish the flames of rebellion by assurances only of support. To circumvent its effects, our natural enemy closed with these States a treaty of commerce and defensive alliance upon the 6th of February, which inspired them with a well-timed hope of rising superior to all their pressures. Never did Mercy appear in such odious colours, as when she went forth to the Colonists. Her good offices were everywhere rejected with contempt and disdain, of which the American Congress gave a conspicuous example. The British Army too, could not recognize Her, and doubted much whether She was of true English origin. Winter had suspended every active essay on the part of both armies, excepting in the case of some detachments that were from necessity pushed into the country for supplying our numerous forces in Philadelphia; to afford a protection to the suffering Loyalists, and to annihilate the ships and vessels of the rebels, which still remained higher up the Delaware river. In conjunction with Captain Henry, of the Royal Navy, who commanded a force of three gallies and other armed small craft, the Major embarked in some flat-bottomed boats, with the 2d Battalion of Light troops, upon the 7th of May. Agreeably to his instructions, he proceeded to destroy the rebel Marine between Philadelphia and Trenton. The enemy began to collect in great numbers at Trenton, where they looked for this flying detachment; but its leader, after indulging them in this idea, suddenly struck off towards the river, re-embarked, and took post on the Pennsylvania shore. The Navy very justly were entitled to their share in these honourable transactions. The preparations of France had preceded her hostile avowals. Advice having been sent to Lord Howe, at New York, of the enemy's motions, his Lordship hastened to relieve the Garrison, and arrived in sight of it on the morning of the 9th. D'Estaing, seizing a favourable wind, pushed out again, and formed in line, with the evident resolution of hazarding a battle. After two days of able manœuvring on the part of Lord Howe to gain the wind, which was thwarted by adverse circumstances, he quietly awaited the enemy's attack. Just on the eve of conflict, Neptune interposed, and scattered the hostile fleets. This produced some single actions, in which English valour uniformly triumphed against powerful superiority, but was rendered unavailing in every instance, by the contingencies of fortune. The French Fleet, after recovering from the storm, again peeped into Rhode Island, from whence the rebels had retreated in confusion. It gladly took refuge in Boston, whither Lord Howe followed it, but durst not attempt so strong a position. The appearance of a new and natural foe seemed to revive in every breast the flame of patriotism. At no period of our national existence did the English character appear more great. The Commercial Sailor vied with his Majesty's servants in the Fleet and Army in this noble and emulous zeal. Admiral Byron having sailed from England in the beginning of June, reached the American coast with his fleet, but in a detached and shattered state. An evil planet seemed to rule over all his destinies, and his good fortune fell much short of his merit. Thither Commodore Hotham was detached with ten regiments, under General Grant, who joined Admiral Barrington at Barbadoes on the 10th of December, and on the 12th proceeded against St. Lucia. Here the army landed, while the squadron anchored in the Cul de Sac, where some Seamen and Marines were disembarked to man the batteries on each side of the harbour. D'Estaing, who had reached Martinique, sailed also to realize his plans of conquest; but hearing of the descent upon St. Lucia, he resolved upon relieving it. The attempt was fruitless, but it yielded the display of much obstinate valour on both sides. The French were completely beaten, and the island fell. It would carry me beyond my purposed bounds to dwell upon the many events of this year. The Marine Soldier was almost entirely limited to Naval duties, which were, in a detached sense, both numerous and brilliant upon the coasts of America. 1778. Monday 9th March.
The Ariadine and the Cores took the Alfred.
1778. Friday 24th
April. King George visited Chatham and Sheerness.
1778. Thursday 7th May.
The Capture of Borden town and the destruction of rebel shipping. Carried out
by the Marine Light Infantry under command of Major Hon. John Maitland of the
Marines.
1778. Saturday 30th May. James Weir was commissioned into The Marine Corps as a second lieutenant on 30th May 1778 At this time it was customary for an officer, upon promotion, to be posted to another company, and 2nd lieutenant Weir was no exception. On his promotion to full lieutenant on Friday 25th August 1780, he was drafted from 56 Company to 60 Company Division, which was then quartered round the Barbican, Plymouth. After three years in The Marine Corps, however, Lieutenant Weir suddenly found his service career cut short. With the lifting of the siege of Gibraltar 1779 - 1783, and the end of the American War of Independence 1775 - 1783, The Marine Corps was drastically reduced. As a result, Lieutenant Weir found himself on half pay. His retirement was only for a brief period, as on Thursday 15th May 1783 he was reinstated and appointed to 7 Company, Chatham Division. For the next ten years 1783 - 1793 peace existed between England and France. But during that period the Prime Minister, William Pitt, to save money, neglected the defence of the country. Consequently, when the newly formed French Republic declared war on England in February 17931) it was found that the Navy had been reduced to 16,000 men, of whom only 4,500 were Marines. Due to this shortage of men, it was found necessary for The Marine Corps to be reinforced by a number of Army regiments, who were sent to serve at sea on ships-of-the-line. The situation was slightly improved, however, when an Order-in-Council in April 1795 voted for the recruitment of 15,000 men for The Marine Corps. With this increase in The Marine Corps, orders soon followed to supply all ships-of-the-line with detachments when they came into port without Marines or soldiers. This move caused a lot of drafts between Divisions. It also led to the long awaited promotions among Marine officers. James Weir was one of them. After twelve year's service as a Lieutenant he was promoted to Captain on 4th May 1795, with a pay increase from £3.1Os.0d to £5.12s.Od per month. Battle of the Nile: Nelson in his 74-gun flagship, the Vanguard, had been detached from the C-in-C's fleet on 2nd May and sent with two other 74-gun ships and two 32-gun frigates to find out the object of Napoleon's expedition assembling off Toulon, but on 19th May had been driven off that station by a strong gale. As a result when the British squadron found Nelson off the coast of Corsica on 7th June with new orders from St. Vincent to destroy the French force, the thirteen French ships-of-the-line, and 280 transports carrying some 50,000 men had already sailed for an unknown destination. Nelson aware that Napoleon had left Toulon, but not where he had gone, went in search with his force which now, up to fleet strength, could challenge the French. While Nelson sailed back and forth among the Italian islands and along the north-west coast of Italy, Napoleon had arrived off the island of Malta. Malta was Napoleon's first military destination. By a decree dated Thursday 12th April 1798, given by the French Directory, Napoleon had been instructed to seize the island. Although Malta was under the sovereignty of the Order of St. John of Jerusalem, and at peace, Napoleon soon found a pretext to land his troops. With few knights and troops to resist the invaders the Grand Master von Hompesch himself with no heart for a fight, the Order soon capitulated to the French. The articles of surrender were signed on board the 120gun flagship L 'Orient in the early hours of the morning of the Tuesday 12th June 1798, Thus brought to an end 268 years of rule in Malta by the Knights of the Order of St. John. Napoleon himself only remained in Malta for one week. On Monday 18th June he re-embarked on board L'Orient with treasure plundered from the churches and government buildings, and sailed on the following day for Egypt. The French force Napoleon left behind, under General Vaubois, consisted of 3053 infantry and five companies of artillery which in all amounted to 3350 officers and men who during the following weeks began a campaign of rape and pillage throughout the islands. While these atrocities were being carried out by the French on the island, Nelson in pursuit of Napoleon continued to miss the French armada, which arrived at Alexandria on 1st July, and where the troops were immediately put ashore by Napoleon. The French fleet, however, unable to moor in the shallow harbour was ordered to go to Corfu or to Malta, but Vice-Admiral Brueys, aboard L 'Orient, instead sailed fifteen miles along the coast to Aboukir Bay, where Nelson on 1St August found the enemy fleet anchored across the bay close inshore. Nelson ordered action stations at 6.20 p.m. Weir's ship was fifth in line, in front of Nelson's flagship Vanguard, when the British fleet entered the bay, but when Goliath went round to landward side of the French fleet, Audacious followed and attacked that end of the enemy's ships. The first was Le Guerrier 74, which Audacious raked with a broadside on passing, and then engaged the next ship, Le Conquerant 74. This action soon developed into a murderous upper deck battle. The Audacious forecastle men turned their guns which were loaded with grape and almost swept clear the upper deck men on the enemy ship, while the Marines fired their muskets up into the riggings to dislodge the French seamen who with small arms were firing down onto the British gunners. It only took twelve minutes of ferocious fighting for Le Conquerant to be reduced to a wreck, compelling it to surrender to Audacious. During the battle, a note sent by David Gould, the Captain of Audacious, to Nelson on board the Vanguard, said: The battle raged all night. The flagship, L 'Orient became the most severe casualty in the fight. First engaged by the Bellerophon, which was forced to withdraw when dismasted, the attack was taken up by Swiftsure and Alexander. At about 10 p.m., the flagship, her commander Admiral Brueys, already killed early in the engagement, was set alight. The ship continued to burn until the fire reached the magazine, and with a deafening roar L'Orient blew up. So tremendous was the explosion that for several minutes there was silence amongst the other ships, and then the battle commenced again until daylight when only three French ships remained from the thirteen ships-of-the-line which had sailed from Toulon. One ran aground and was burned by her crew. The other two Guillaurne Tell 80 bearing the flag of Rear Admiral Villeneuve, and Le Genereux 74, with two frigates, La Diane and La Justice made sail and escaped into the Mediterranean. The battle over, work immediately was put in hand to refit and jury rig the captured French prizes. This took up to twelve days to complete. This time allowed Captain Weir to complete a number of drawings of the battle as seen through his eyes. His artistic hobby was, however, cut short on 14th August when orders were received for his ship to make ready for sea. On that day, Tuesday, instructions were given by Nelson to Sir James Saumarez of the Orion, to take under his command the Bellerophon, Minotaur, Defence, Theseus, Majestic, and Audacious and escort the prizes Le Franklin, Le Tonnani L 'Aquilon, Le Souverain Peuple, Le Spartiate, and Le Conqiierant, to Gibraltar. (Sic) (From Brian N. Tarpey from his book ‘Nelson’s Marines at Malta’ – RMHS 1995) 1778. Wednesday 17th
June. The Milford took the Licorue.
1778. Thursday 18th
June. The Foudreyant and consorts captured the Pallas.
1778. Wednesday 8th
July. The Lively taken by French Squadron.
1778. Wednesday 8th
July. The Ostrich took a French privateer.
1778. Monday 27th July.
Keppel and d'Orvilliers off Brest.
1778. Wednesday 29th
July. HMS Kingfisher was captured by a French Squadron.
1778. Sunday 9th
August. Lord Howe and d'Estaing off Rhode Island.
1778. Monday 10th
August. The Siege of Pondicherry was the first military action on the Indian
subcontinent following the declaration of war between Great Britain and France
in the American War of Independence. A British force besieged the French
controlled port of Puducherry, which capitulated after ten weeks of siege.
1778. Sunday 16th
August. The Lois engaged the Cesar.
1778. Sunday 16th
August. The Vernon and Tranjolly off Coromandel Coast.
1778. Friday 21st
August. Pondicherry captured by the Vernon.
1778. Sunday 23rd
August. Sartine taken by a British Squadron.
1778. Tuesday 20th
October. Jupiter and Medea engaged a french ship.
1778. Wednesday 4th
November. Maidstone took Lion.
1778. Tuesday 15th
December. Barrington and d'Estaing at St. Lucia.
1778. Corps Strength at
that time 17,389 men.
1778. The Fox was taken
by the Junon.
1778. The Helena was
taken by the Sensible.
1778. The Arehusa
engaged the Belle Poule.
1778. The Zephyr was
captured by a french frigate.
1779. The public emergencies called for a very considerable addition to the Corps of Marines in 1779. Seventeen thousand three hundred and eighty-nine were voted, being an effective augmentation of 5560 Early in the year accounts were received of the capture of Pondicherry, by the united efforts of the Navy under Sir Edward Vernon, and a large force of European and Company's troops under Sir Hector Monro. After more than two months of very fatiguing duties, owing to the heavy rains, the siege was brought to that issue, which invited a general assault. The works having been much battered in every quarter of approach, three different attacks were meditated; against L'Hospital Bastion to the southward, the East face of the North West Bastion, and from the sea to the northward. These arrangements having been made, nearly 200 Seamen, and all the Marines of the squadron were landed on the 15th of October 1778, in order to have joined in the storm, which was to have taken place on the 17th. But Monsieur Bellecomb, who had hitherto defended himself with much obstinacy, dreading this event, proposed terms of surrender, which were accepted. Many were of opinion, that had he withstood the onset, its result would have been fatal to the British Army, from the extensive mines that he might have sprung. Admiral Byron, who arrived in the West Indies in the beginning of 1779, rendered our Naval force in that country superior to the enemy. He was foiled in every attempt to bring D'Estaing to an action, who kept close in Martinique. The English Admiral having gone to leeward, with a view to collect the homeward-bound at St. Kitt's, and to escort them, a small detachment of French troops took St. Vincent, after a very inadequate resistance; and the conquest of Grenada soon after followed, but under circumstances highly honourable to Lord Macartney and our arms. At this, D'Estaing, who united in himself the character of the Soldier and the Seaman, was present, and led a French column in storming the British lines upon Hospital Hill. D'Estaing evinced a total want of Naval enterprise through the day. He returned to Grenada during the following night, while Admiral Byron proceeded to St. Kitt's to repair his damages. General Prevost issued orders to concentrate his detachments and began to add to his works. Captain Henry, of the Royal Navy, commanded that force in the river Savannah with much zeal. During the critical interval of 24 hours, which were allowed, that brave and active Officer, Lieut. Colonel Maitland, whom I have formerly mentioned, reached Savannah with a force of 800 men, after having encountered obstacles and difficulties of the most trying kind. Already, during the campaign of 1779, had he shown himself most consummate in all the requisites of a Soldier, by the stand he made at John's Island with a handful of men, against ten times his numbers, under General Lincoln. That deed alone was enough to fix his military fame, which acquired additional glory by his wading march from Beaufort, to the relief of Prevost. In this, few men could have equalled, and none surpassed his undaunted fortitude and steady perseverance. It was the means of saving Georgia and its Capital. Such were his personal fatigues and anxieties to reach the scene of his future duties, that both struck at the vitals of his existence, which afterwards closed a lifelong valuable to mankind by habitual exercises of the most amiable benevolence, and happy to himself by the approving consciousness of its having never been stained by dishonour. The activity of his spirit, however, buoyed him up under every bodily suffering, while Savannah was besieged by the enemy. My limits will not allow me the extent of detail, which was very creditable to the courage and exertions of all. Two feigned attacks by the American Militia, were planned against the Garrison, to attract its attention to the centre and left, and it was also resolved that, whilst D'Estaing and Lincoln moved against Spring-hill redoubt in front, Count Dillon, with another column, should advance along the edge of a swamp which communicates with the river above the town, silently pass the redoubts and batteries, and thus gain the rear of the British lines. This column losing its way, was embarrassed in the morasses, and after the dawn was exposed to a heavy fire, that threw it into a disorder from which it could not recover. This part of defence was entrusted to Captain Tawse and his little Corps of Provincial Dragoons, who maintained it with enthusiastic bravery. Alternately had the French and American standard been planted on the parapet, when that gallant Chief, defending in person the gate of his redoubt, and his sword still unentangled from the body of an impetuous Frenchman, received his own death-wound. Here there still continued a doubtful contest for possession, when Lieut. Colonel Maitland, commanding the force upon the right of our lines, pushed on the 60th Regiment and the Marines, who, with charged bayonets, soon decided the struggle. The assailants were driven from the ditch, and retreated quickly, with the loss of 901 killed and wounded. Throughout this service the Navy were justly entitled to a great share of merit. Never were the exertions of the Sailors at the great guns more animated or useful. Captain, afterwards Colonel Moncrieffe, of the Engineers, exhibited symptoms of the highest talents in his profession; and a share of honour truly falls to the lot of Captain Charlton, of the Corps of Royal Artillery, which has been eminently and uniformly great upon every service allotted them. Soon after the raising of the siege, Lieut. Colonel Maitland fell a sacrifice to his fatigues, which, producing a bilious fever, deprived his Country of a faithful servant, and the Soldier of a true friend. Sir George Collier was most usefully active during the period of his command in North America. He undertook nothing in which he did not succeed, and in every instance of service exhibited a prompt and decisive mind. The enemy's Commerce and Naval Power suffered much by his spirited measures, in which I cannot follow him. In the month of June, Spain, after having received her treasures in safety, entered the lists against Great Britain, whose situation now seemed desperate to all the surrounding Powers. But the hour of danger is the only occasion in which the native spirit of Englishmen can best be known or appreciated. It called forth that union which should ever constitute the pride, as it can alone secure the independence of a nation. Notwithstanding the immense superiority gained by this accession, still the vigour of our combined enemies was by no means in an adequate proportion. Their fleets soon after appeared on our coasts, in numbers we were unable to oppose; but their exertions against them were at first repressed by discord, and finally averted by disease. The only service upon which the Corps of Marines was employed during the remainder of the present year, was in the capture of Omoa, effected by parties from the Charon, Lowestoff, and Pomona frigates, in conjunction with the Seamen of these ships, who were trained to small arms, and a number of baymen and logwood cutters that were embodied at Truxillo. Commodore Luttrell conducted the naval part of the expedition, and Captain Dalrymple the land force. Disembarking at Porto Cavallo, they sustained great fatigue in a night's march toward the fort, with a view to surprize it, on the 16th of October. Such were their obstacles from morasses filled by the rains, and intervening precipices, that they found themselves nearly six miles distant in the morning, and that they were discovered by the enemy. After giving the men a little respite, Captain Dalrymple pushed on, drove the Spaniards from an ambuscade, secured and established posts on the heights round the town and fort, and having been incommoded by musquetry from the place, he set it in flames, at which time Commodore Luttrell entered the harbour and completed the blockade by sea. After cannon being landed, and the batteries opened during some days, they had produced but little effect upon the enemy's works; on which it was resolved to storm them with 150 Seamen and Marines, united with some loyal Irish, who were to be aided in their approach by a fire from the ships and the heights. Under this cover the assailants advanced at four in the morning, against walls 28 feet in height. To these they applied their scaling ladders, when the storming party, headed by two British Seamen, gained the top, and being instantly seconded, the Spaniards, paralysed at the daring act, begged for quarter. It is to be regretted that the name and local origin of one intrepid Sailor, upon this occasion, should have been lost. Whether from a dislike to the combat, or in gratitude for such generous conduct, the tender, however, was not accepted. Some valuable captures were brought into our ports during the year, and our Commerce was well protected. Lieutenant A. J. Field, of the Marines, still lives an instance of Providence, by an escape from the melancholy fate of too many of his shipmates in the Quebec frigate, which blew up in action with La Surveillante. In this, British valour would have ultimately triumphed; but it was obliged to yield to destiny. The most amiable manners, in union with a cool courage, were the predominant features of Captain Farmer's character. An action was fought between his Majesty's ship Pearl and the Spanish frigate St. Ammonica, which very much signalized Captain, now Admiral George Montague, and in which Lieutenant Fowke, of Marines, was also distinguished. 1779. (Uniform). It
seems that Silver Lace replaced the Gold Lace for the Officer from 1769, since
New Lace is refereed to and Silver Gorgets at the same time. The Lace and
Gorgets were always the same colour.
1779. Monday 4th
January. Savannah capitulated to the British.
1779. Saturday 30th
January. Weazel taken by the Bondeute.
1779. Sunday 31st January. The Apollo frigate of 32 guns, captain Pownall, being on a cruise on the coast of France on the 31st of January, at 1 p.m., when off St. Brieux, captured the french frigate Oiseau of 32 guns, but mounting only 26, after a gallant action of an hour and a half. The Apollo had 6 killed, her captain and 21 men wounded. The combined fleet continued in the Channel until the 31st, when the wind, having veered to the westward, enabled sir Charles Hardy, with thirty-seven sail of the line, to obtain a view of the enemy; but the weather becoming very hazy, the fleets lost sight of each other, and soon afterwards the combined armament took its departure. Shortly after the surrender of Grenada, the french fleet under D'Estaing had been reinforced by a squadron from Europe, augmenting their force to twenty-six sail of the line. On the 6th of July vice-admiral Byron, being off Grenada with twentyone ships of the line, gained sight of the enemy, and immediately made the signal to attack them. The superior sailing of the french ships enabled them to choose their distance, and by preserving their position, they prevented the british rear from getting into action. The firing commenced at seven in the morning and continued till eleven; but it was renewed at half-past three and lasted until sunset. The British had 183 killed, and 346 wounded, whilst the loss of the enemy amounted to 1200 killed, and 3500 wounded. First-lieutenant of the marines, Joseph Veale, was killed on board the Sultan. On quitting the West Indies, admiral d'Estaing, with a powerful fleet, proceeded to the coast of North America. His first object was to destroy the small force under general Prevost, and consequently to relieve the southern colonies from present danger and alarm; but the more important consideration was, a design to act in conjunction with general Washington in an attack upon the british force at New York. With this view the comte d'Estaing anchored off the bar of Tybee, at the mouth of the river Savanna, on the 9th of September; and soon after his arrival the french troops formed a junction with the american forces from Charlestown under general Lincoln. He then sent a haughty summons to the garrison at Savanna, demanding its immediate surrender; but general Prevost, having only a small part of his force with him, requested a short delay before he replied to the message. During this parley, a reinforcement of upwards of 1000 men, under colonel Maitland, arrived from Beaufort; and on the 16th, after overcoming the greatest difficulties, this detachment joined the garrison at Savanna: their junction gave such encouragement to the hesieged, that a message of defiance was sent to the comte d'Estaing. On the 15th, the seamen having completed the landing of the cannon and stores, they were appointed to the different batteries under captains Henry, Brown, and Fisher of the navy, whilst the marines were incorporated with the grenadiers of the 60th regiment. When the town was first summoned, only ten guns were mounted; but by the great exertion of the troops, and the zealous assistance of the navy, nearly 90 pieces of cannon were now ready to oppose the enemy, and several vessels were sunk on the bar to prevent the approach of the enemy's ships. Whilst the French were preparing the batteries, their frigates advanced up the river to Mud-flat, and some ineffectual firing took place on the rear of the british lines. A sortie was made on the 24th, and again on the 27th, the first conducted by major Graham of the 16th, and the other by major Arthur of the 71st regiment, which did the enemy considerable mischief. On the 3rd of October the bombardment commenced from 9 mortars and 37 pieces of cannon on the land side, and 16 from their shipping, which continued several days with little effect. On the 9th, a little before day-break, the enemy made a general assault upon the british lines. The attack was obstinately maintained, particularly at a redoubt on the Ebenezer road, when the greatest bravery was displayed on both sides two stands of colours were actually planted, and several of the assailants killed on the parapet; but the enemy met with such determined resistance, that they could not force an entrance into the works. At this critical moment, major Glacier of the 60th, with the grenadiers of that regiment and the marines, advanced rapidly from the lines, attacked the enemy with the bayonet, and drove them from the ditches of the redoubt, as well as from a battery a little to the right of it: pursuing their success, they compelled the enemy to fly in great confusion over the abatis, and into the swamp. The advance of the british detachment was so rapid, that the three companies of the 71st regiment, posted at a short distance in order to sustain them, could not come in for a share in this brilliant affair. The French were repulsed on all sides, with the loss of above 1000 men in killed and wounded; including among the latter the comte d'Estaing, and several officers of distinction. It was not until the 18th that the enemy had raised the siege; and as the fog cleared up in the morning, it was perceived that the French and Americans had abandoned their camps during the preceding night; and in their retreat they broke down all the bridges in their rear, to prevent pursuit. The troops composing the garrison of Savanna acquired a brilliant reputation for the gallant defence of the place, and for the cheerful, yet determined spirit with which they set the enemy at defiance. On this occasion the greatest unanimity prevailed between the two services, and their heroic conduct gained them the approbation of their king, and country. A squadron, consisting of the Charon of 44 guns, Lowestoffe 28, Pomona 28, Porcupine 16, and Racehorse 10, under commodore Lutterell, proceeded to the attack of the fort and shipping at Omoa, on the Spanish main, and on the 10th of October they arrived in Cavallo bay. In the evening of the 16th, about 500 men, consisting of a small detachment of troops, with a party of seamen and the marines of the squadron, which were landed under the direction of captain Pakenham of the Porcupine, immediately proceeded on their march to surprise and escalade the fort; but the roads were so bad, that the men were sometimes compelled to wade through the sea, in order to avoid the impenetrable thickets of mangroves. At other times they had to pass through lagoons and morasses, and narrow footpaths over the mountains, with precipices rendered dangerous by recent heavy rains. Those difficulties so impeded their march, that at day-break the troops were still two leagues from the fort. Captain Dalrymple ordered a halt for two hours, to refresh the men; and when the march was resumed, they were not only exposed to similar obstacles, but severely annoyed by the enemy's skirmishers: these were driven in, and in the evening captain Dalrymple was enabled from the heights to ascertain that the fort was situated about half a mile from the town. On the 17th the squadron stood into the bay to attack the fort; but the wind falling, the ships became so disabled by the enemy's fire, that they withdrew without producing any result. On the 18th the guns were landed from the Porcupine, and placed on an eminence, from which they opened upon the forts; but so little effect was produced, that it was determined to storm the place. Accordingly, the Pomona was towed close in during the night of the 19th; and on the morning of the 20th, the other ships stood towards the shore, whilst the troops, in four columns, descended the hill, and at about four o'clock they moved forward under fire of their own battery on the eminence. The troops advanced with trailed arms; and in order to animate them for the enterprise, the parole was " bayonet," and the countersign, " Britons, strike home." The columns were at first staggered by the enemy's fire, but instantly recovering, they advanced to the foot of the wall, which was twenty-eight feet high, surmounted by a battery of five guns. The first ladder was broken by the flanking guns of another bastion, by which a midshipman was killed, and five men wounded. Two seamen were the first that ascended, and levelling their muskets at the Spaniards, produced such panic, that their comrades were enabled to follow them to the assault, before the enemy recovered their self-possession. These two gallant fellows were closely followed by the marines and seamen, who, with the " loyal Irish," leaped down the parapet, and drove the Spaniards into their casemates, whilst above 100 escaped over the walls, and out of the sally-port. The governor then came forward, and claiming protection for himself and officers, surrendered the garrison, as well as the register ships. The prisoners amounted to 355 rank and file, exclusive of the officers and inhabitants. Lieutenant Wightman of the marines was wounded on the evening of the 19th, when reconnoitring the fort. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1779. The loss of HMS
Arethusa.
1779. Sunday 14th
February. The death of Captain Cook (7th November 1728 - 14th February 1779)
took place at Kealakakau Bay Hawaii. During his third voyage of exploration in
the pacific. He had just landed with a Marine guard consisting of Lieutenant
Molesworth Phillips along with four men. The Lieutenant protected Cook for as
long as he could from hostile Hawaiians. The Marines were clubbed to death, and
Cook was stabbed as he called to the boats crews to hold their fire. Only
Phillips escaped back to the safety of the ship.
1779. Sunday 28th
February. Apollo took Oiteau.
1779. Monday 21st June.
Spain declared War on Great Britain.
1779. Sunday 7th March.
HMS Yarmouth destroyed the Randolph.
1779. Sunday 14th
March. Rattlesnake took the Fenelon.
1779. Tuseday 6th July.
Byron and d'Estaing,
1779. July. The start
of the Great Siege of Gibraltar (the fourteenth and last military siege). This
was an action by French and Spanish forces to retake control of Gibraltar from
the established British Garrison. The garrison, led by George Augustus Eliott,
later 1st Baron Heathfield of Gibraltar, survived all attacks and a blockade of
supplies.
1779. Sunday 15th
August. The French and Spanish fleets off Plymouth.
1779. Monday 16th
August. HMS Ardent was captured by the French and Spanish fleets off Plymouth.
1779. Monday 30th
August. Boreas took Compas.
1779. Tuesday 14th September. On the 14th of September, The Pearl of 32 guns, captain George Montague, cruising off the Azores, captured the Spanish frigate Santa Monica of 32 guns, after an action of two hours, with the loss of 8 killed, and 45 wounded. The Pearl had 12 killed; lieutenant Fowke of the marines and 18 men wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1779. September. HMS
Experiment taken by French fleet.
1779. Tuesday 14th
September. The Pearl of 32 guns, captain George Montague, cruising off the Azores, captured the Spanish frigate Santa Monica of 32 guns, after an action of two hours, with the loss of 8 killed, and 45 wounded. The Pearl had 12 killed; lieutenant Fowke of the marines and 18 men wounded.
1779. Tuesday 21st
September. HMS Suffolk and squadron took the Fortunie.
1779. Thursday 23rd September. The Serapis taken by Bon Homme Richard.
1779. Saturday 25th September. The Serapis of 44 guns, captain Richard Pearson, in company with the Countess of Scarborough of 20 guns, sustained a very gallant action near Scarborough with the american frigates Bon-Homme Richard of 40 guns, Alliance 40 guns, Pallas 32 guns, and Vengeance of 12 guns, commanded by Paul Jones. Both the british ships were captured, after a gallant defence of two hours. The Serapis had 49 killed, 68 wounded; Scarborough 4 killed, 20 wounded. Lieutenant Samuel Wightman of the marines was among the wounded. The Bon-Homme Richard had 300 men killed and wounded, and she had suffered so severely, that she sunk the next morning. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1779. Wednesday 6th October. The 32-gun frigate Quebec, captain George Farmer, when cruising off Brest, brought to action the french40-gun frigate Surveillante, mounting 28 twelve-pounders and 12 sixes. After a contest of three hours and a half, during which both ships were totally dismasted, the Quebec caught fire by the sails falling on the guns and continued burning until six p.m. when she blew up, with her colours flying. Captain Farmer, who was wounded in the arm, with 150 men perished on this melancholy occasion. Lieutenant Roberts, with lieutenant A.J. Field of the marines, the surgeon, 2 midshipmen, and 63 men were saved. The commencement of this year presented very unfavourable prospects to Great Britain, and the war with her revolted colonies neither promised a speedy nor successful termination. The combined efforts of France and Spain, were eagerly employed in uniting their forces to support the resistance of America; and Holland, our ancient and natural ally, had with equal injustice lent her aid to the cause and intei'ests of these powers. The two principal objects which engaged the attention of the ministry, were the relief of Gibraltar, and the protection of our colonies in the West Indies. Sir George Rodney was appointed to the command of a squadron about to proceed with the trade to the Leeward Islands, and on their way they to succour the garrison of Gibraltar. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1779. Saturday 9th
October. The Defence of Savannah. Seamen and Marines were landed from the men
of war present to assist in the defence against the French and Americans. The
latter were attached to the Grenadier Company of the 60th Regiment, and
occupied a position on the right of the line of entrenchments. The final
assault on the works by the French had almost succeeded, but had been checked
by the fire of the seamen’s guns. The Marines, with the Grenadiers of the 60th,
made such a furious counter attack on a redoubt which had been taken by the
enemy that they were driven out in an instant and a general offensive being
assumed by the garrison, the enemy’s attack totally failed and shortly
afterwards they abandoned the siege.
1779. Thursday 14th October. Chatham Orders. The Non Commissioned Officers and Private Men are never on any occasion in paying the proper Respect to their Officers, or any other Person, to take off their Hats or Caps. They are when without Arms, to put up their Right Hand (in a graceful manner) on the right side of their Hats with the Palm outwards; and when with Arms, to keep Recovered; and in these positions of civility they are to continue during their Business with any Officer, or other Person to whom the same respect may be due. 1779. Saturday 17th
October. The storming of Fort Omoa, was a short siege and battle between
British and Spanish forces just after Spain had entered the American
Revolutionary War on the American side. Following a brief attempt at a siege, a
force of 150 British soldiers and seamen assaulted and captured the
fortifications at San Fernando de Omoa in the Captaincy General of Guatemala
(Honduras) on the Gulf of Honduras. The British forces managed to overwhelm and
capture the Spanish garrison, consisting of 365 men. The British only held the
fort until November. After which they withdrew from the garrison, being badly
affected by tropical diseases that reduced their numbers, and was also under
threat of a strong Spanish counter-attack. An expedition, consisting of
detachments of Loyal Irish, Marines from the HMS Charon, HMS Pomona, HMS
Lowestoft and HMS Porcupine Frigates, and 250 armed slaves, 500 men in all
commanded by Captain Dalrymple sailed from Truxillo Bay on the Sunday 10th
October, arriving at Porto Cavallo Bay on the 11th. During the evening the
troops were landed with the intention of attacking Port Omoa that night. However,
the roads proved so intricate and rugged that they did not arrive until after
day break. After a short halt they again moved forward, but still had to
encounter passes and defiles similar to those which had obstructed their night
march. While having to contend Skirmishes with local Indians as they advanced.
Learning from some prisoners that the enemy were drawn up in a position ready
to resist their attack. It was arranged that the Marines and the Loyal Irish
should over take the column, and then advance rapidly supported by the reserve.
The order was instantly carried out, and the Spaniards, after discharging their
muskets fled, some headed for the fort, while others took to the woods, and the
town. From the heights upon which the troops now stood there was a full view of
the fort, situated about half a mile from the Port Omoa at the bottom of the
hill. The enemy were constantly firing from the town. Captain Dalrymple carried
out his orders to destroying the place. While it was in flames the squadron came
into the bay and endeavoured to get into position to batter the fort, the land
forces seconding their efforts, but the latter were unable to effect very much
owing to the scaling ladders not arriving in time. HMS Lowestoft went aground
and both she and HMS Charon suffered severely from the enemy’s fire. However,
it was determined to continue the attack, and at 3 in the morning of the 20th
the storming party consisting of 150 strong was in position for the assault. It
was arranged in four parallel columns, four guides at the head of each, two of
the columns consisting of seamen and two of Marines with a few Loyal Irish.
Upon an agreed signal from HMS Charon that she was under way, and would attack
in twenty minutes. The columns of assault moved off covered by the fire of the
shipping. It was now 4 am. The Spaniards did not observe the columns movement
but concentrated their fire upon the squadron and the guns which had been
placed in a battery on the hills. In profound silence, with trailed arms, the
English approached the enemy’s sentries undiscovered, but suddenly their drums
beat to arms. Their ladders being quickly planted against the wall, 28 feet
high, surmounted by a battery of 5 guns, the seamen rapidly ascended, and being
reinforced by Marines, the Spaniards fled to the casemates, while about a
hundred escaped by a Sallyport, The Governor and the officers then delivered up
their swords to Captain Dalrymple, and the garrison, along with the ships in
port, surrendered.
(Sic)
1779. Sunday 24th
October. Proserpine took Alcuiene. (?)
1779. Thursday 11th
November. HMS Tartar took Santa Marguritta.
1779. Sunday 21st
November. HMS Hussar took N.S. del Buen Confegio.
1779. Sunday 12th
December. Salisbury took San Carlos.
1779. Saturday 18th
December. Parker and de la Motte off Fort royal.
1779. Monday 27th December The admiral proceeded to sea with twenty sail of the line and nine frigates; and on the 7th of January 1780, he detached the trade for the West Indies under convoy of the Hector of 74 guns, and two frigates. 1779. HMS Glasgow
burnt.
1779. HMS Ariel taken
by the Amazone.
1779. Ruby, Aeolus and
Jamaica took Prudente.
1779. Corps Strength at
that time 18,779 men.
1780 - 1784. The ‘Forth
Anglo Dutch War’ was a conflict between Great Britain and the Dutch Republic.
The conflict was related to the American Revolutionary War, and broke out over
British and Dutch disagreements on the legality and conduct of the Dutch
trading with Britain's enemies during that war.
1780 to 1784. A
conflict between the Kingdom of Mysore in India and the British East India
Company. Mysore’s main ally was France, who at that time was at war with the
British.
1780. Corps Strength was 146 Companies each of 118 Privates and 4 Drummers. Approximately 584 Drummers in the Corps. 1780. In every war it has been evident that state necessity has required an annual increase to the establishment of Marines. Eighteen thousand seven hundred and seventy-nine were the number decreed for the service of 1780. The year of 1780 was ushered in by some well-timed successes of Admiral Rodney. While nature has so clearly pointed out our means of defence, she has also taught our islanders to greet, with tenfold joy, every victory that is gained upon their favourite element. After eighteen months of war against an inveterate foe, nothing had been achieved worthy of being considered as a balance in the scale, of course the taking of Langara in the Phœnix, with three other ships of the line, the explosion of the St. Domingo, and the destruction of the St. Julian and St. Eugenio, of 70 guns, added to the recent capture of one 64, escorting a valuable convoy, so crouded together, filled the Country with general exultation. Admiral Rodney exhibited much enterprize, although he possessed superior numbers, by pursuing and vanquishing an enemy upon his own coasts, during a most dreadful gale, and on a lee shore, which had nearly proved fatal to many of his fleet, who, from their ardour, became entangled amongst the dangerous shoals of St. Lucar. Sir George Rodney was most ably seconded by the vigour and counsel of his Captain, Young, whose talents as an Officer stood meritedly high. Although the Spaniards fought bravely, still they plainly shewed that they were no adepts in the most essential branches of discipline; as the blowing up of the St. Domingo, and a partial explosion in the Princessa, proceeded entirely from a want of internal system. Lieut. Strachan, of Marines, brother to the present Sir Richard, was killed upon the forecastle of the Edgar in this action. Our enemies lost nine sail of the line upon the whole of this expedition, which was suggested by necessity, but terminated with the most signal consequences. Long had our avaricious neighbours, the Dutch, continued to foment the spirit of rebellion in the Western World, by various supplies, without which its virulence, nay its existence must have ceased. With one uniform character for punctuality in dealing, to an extent and nicety rarely known but in our own land, these moral virtues, which can alone give joy to the wealthy, are absorbed in the Hollander by an unceasing pursuit of the same object. The bonds of nature, and all the ties of honour which unite nation to nation, are sacrificed by him to the call of self-interest. This friendly passion, and the repeated injuries sustained by England, brought on a rupture between the two countries, friends by alliance, but enemies in their principles of action. The detention of Count Byland added fuel to the flame, by furnishing means to the emissaries of France, in Holland, who were active in working upon the popular mind. From the beginning of 1780, the cause of these hostilities, which commenced towards the close of the year, may be dated. The conduct of the neutral Powers, at this crisis of accumulating difficulties, was equally ungrateful. At the head of them was Russia, whom we had nurtured in Naval tactics and the arts of civilization, by a long train of friendly good offices. But her early energies were levelled against the life of her Patroness, and in defiance, too, of that maritime code of laws, which had been long recognized by Europe as the fixed standard of commercial intercourse. If ever there was a period of our existence that urged general union it was this. Our Country seemed doomed to destruction, and, like vultures hurried on by instinct to the spot of animal dissolution, every nation crouded against our island to lay claim for its share of our tottering Empire. To prevent the repetition of such a period in our history, a fostering care of our Navy, and every branch attached to it, appears the wisest system, and the most incumbent duty. Sir Henry Clinton having been freed from every fear by the glorious repulse of D'Estaing from Savannah, had it in his power to carry the British arms to any part of the American coast. His first essay was aimed against the province of South Carolina, and his operations commenced on the 1st of April against Charleston, its Capital, after having landed upon John's Island, and from thence advancing by slow steps; which afforded time to the Rebels of fortifying every point of defence. Admiral Arbuthnot, with the squadron, soon after passed Fort Moultrie with trifling loss, and anchored just without the range of shot from the town, which completed its investment towards the sea, though a communication was unavoidably open between the Garrison and the Country, by means of Cooper's River to the North-east. This was soon cut off by a large detachment under Colonel Webster, which General Clinton was enabled to spare, from his access to the sea being kept up by the ships of war. A very brilliant affair took place between the advanced guard of that force and a body of Americans, at Monk's Corner, which reflected much honour upon Colonel Tarleton and Major Fergusson, the former of whom, soon after, very justly secured permanent fame, by beating a Rebel Corps of Cavalry upon the banks of the Santee. Early in May, the besiegers having completed their third parallel, Captain Hudson, of the Navy, was landed with 200 Seamen and Marines on Sullivan's Island, in order to have stormed the important post of Fort Moultrie, at the same time the ships were to attack by sea. Very high commendations were bestowed upon Generals Earl Cornwallis, Leslie, and Paterson; Lieut. Colonels Webster and Tarleton, and Major Moncrieffe, also had their share of applause in Sir Henry Clinton's detail. The services of Captain Elphinstone, now Lord Keith, were also very signal. Much good was anticipated from this happy event, which was not, however, eventually realized. The gallant exertions of Lord Cornwallis in the subsequent progress of the campaign, upon a minute retrospect, must rank him as a great and a zealous Officer. Colonel Tarleton also stands high upon its annals, which will be recognized in terms of eulogium by posterity. Admiral Rodney, who had proceeded to the West Indies from Gibraltar, found himself opposed to a superior force of the enemy. Confiding in the long-tried valour of a British Fleet, he was determined, however, to dispute the palm with them. Monsieur Guichen, previous to his arrival, had paraded before St. Lucia, seemingly with a view of attempting something; but Rear-Admiral Hyde Parker and General Vaughan had evidently made such judicious dispositions, as deterred him from even a partial trial of force. Sir George Rodney soon returned the visit, and offered battle, which was not accepted. Leaving some coppered frigates to watch their motions, he returned to Gros Islet Bay. In the night of the 15th of April, De Guichen put to sea, and was quickly followed, when a general chace ensued. At the close of day on the 16th, the English formed into line, and a series of able manœuvring on both sides took place next morning. At eleven the conflict began, which ended after four, when the enemy bore away. The English Fleet, obliged to repair its damages, could not pursue. Most tremendous was the fire of the Sandwich, Admiral Rodney's ship, upon that day, and so visible were its effects, that it is impossible to calculate what can be achieved by Britons, when their valour is let loose, against any force, however great. Captain Carey, of Marines, was wounded in the Grafton, and Lieut. Herriot, who now so ably conducts a well-known paper entitled The Sun, in the Elizabeth. Regaining sight of the French Fleet, they run for shelter under the guns of Guadaloupe upon the 20th. The talents of Captain Young, of the Sandwich, were peculiarly displayed upon this occasion, and were most auxiliary to the Commander in Chief. Thus, was the Empire of these Seas recovered by an inferior Fleet, which was productive, however, only of a flimsy triumph, as there were no English troops to follow it up by an attack upon their islands. English commerce, however, was protected, while that of the French suffered much. Two other actions of lesser note were fought on the 15th and 19th of May, but equally indecisive. The spirited countenance of Captain, now Admiral Cornwallis, off Monte Christi, in the Lion, of 64 guns, having under him the Bristol of 50, and Janus of 44, which were opposed by Monsieur La Motte Picquet, reputed one of the best Officers in the French Navy, with four 74 gun-ships and two frigates, must ever be noticed as one of the most brilliant incidents of the American war. With his little squadron he resisted, successfully, this united attack, through the night of the 20th of March, and on the following day maintained the unequal combat nearly three hours. On the 22d the English Ruby, of 64 guns, and two frigates appeared, with which he, in turn, became the pursuer of La Motte Picquet, who, by his own account, and in the true spirit of a Frenchman, asserted his claim to two hearts, as being emblematical of his courage. Some single actions were fought during 1780, that would have done honour to any period of our maritime greatness. Amongst these may be noticed the capture of La Capricieuse, of 44 guns, by La Prudente frigate. Captain Waldegrave, now Lord Radsdale. Speaking of the conduct of his Marines on this occasion, he says, "In justice to Lieutenant Banks of the Marines, I must beg leave to observe to their Lordships, that his party behaved with the utmost steadiness and bravery, keeping up a regular and constant fire from the beginning of the action, till necessity called them to the great guns, when they shewed an equal share of spirit and good order." Another terminated in the taking of La Nymphe by the Flora, Captain Peere Williams, which was manned principally by landsmen, and a raw party of Marines. Soon after the conflict began, the Flora's wheel was shot away, when both ships fell on board each other. This afforded some instances of individual gallantry, by repelling the enemy's boarders, and by the British returning the compliment, and eventually striking the flag of La Nymphe. Although complete adepts in the small sword, still it proved unavailing against the cutlass and the axe. Lieutenant, now Captain Busigny of Marines, very much distinguished himself, and his sword bore marks of his valour. The alertness of a British Seaman, whose name cannot be retraced, was the means of developing sufficient matter for reprisals against the Dutch, upon the 20th of December. Never did there appear such a scene of low intrigue, and selfish cunning as in these papers which were saved from the ocean. They betrayed a treaty of commerce, which had existed, in secret, ever since 1778, with the rebel states, which would have been soon cemented by one of alliance, under the same dark cover, if this disaster had not discovered all, and brought down the vengeance of Britain for such perfidy. (Taken from Chapter 34 'An Historical review of the Royal marine corps' by Alexander Gillespie)
1780. Sunday 2nd
January. Captain Fielding exacted the right of search from Couat Bylandt.
1780. Sunday 16th January. The Marines were involved in the Battle of St Vincent against the Spanish off the southern coast of Portugal. A British fleet under Admiral Sir George Rodney commanding 18 ships of the line defeated a Spanish squadron of 11 Ships Commanded by Don Juan de Lángara. The Spanish, who were at war with the British because they had chosen to back the American rebels in the War for Independence. The British suffer 32 killed and 102 wounded, while the Spanish suffered 1 ship destroyed, 4 ships captured, and 2,500 men captured, killed or wounded. 1780. Wednesday 19th January. The fleet arrived at Gibraltar and having landed the reinforcement and supplies for the garrison, the admiral sailed on the 14th of February for the West Indies with part of the fleet, and the remainder, under rear-admiral Digby, returned to England. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1780. Saturday 26th February. The following advertisement appeared in the
Ipswich Journal, this newspaper had a wide circulation in Suffolk and
Essex. A Marines Recruiting Poster used during the American War of
Independence. 1780. Monday 13th
March. Alexander and Courageux took Monsieur.
1780. Monday 20th
March. Cornwallis chased by La Motte Piquet off St. Domingo.
1780. Monday 27th March. Admiral Rodney arrived at St. Lucia, and on the 2nd of April he proceeded to Martinique in quest of the comte de Guichen with twenty-ships of the line; but finding all his endeavours to induce the enemy to come out and give him battle ineffectual, the british fleet repaired to Grosislet bay. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1780. Monday 20th March. The Renown 50, Romulus and Roebuck of 44 guns, being sufficiently lightened of stores and cannon to pass the Charlestown bar, anchored in Five-fathom Hole: at the same time the american commodore Whipple retired to Fort Moultrie, and soon afterwards caused the channel to be blocked by sinking six frigates and several merchant vessels, fitted with chevaux de frise on the decks. A boom, composed of cables and chains, was extended from the shore to the sunken vessels, defended by batteries mounting forty pieces of heavy cannon, and some ships of war were stationed inside the sunken ships ready to resist any attack whilst the crews of the deserted vessels manned the guns, which had been landed and placed on the fortifications of Charlestown. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1780. Wednesday 29th March. The army having landed on Charlestown-neck without opposition, moved forward on the following day, and on the 1st of April the British broke ground within eight hundred yards of the works of Charlestown. By the 9th of April, the batteries were ready to open their fire, and the admiral, having directed the squadron to weigh, entered the harbour in the following order; Roebuck 44, Romulus 44, Richmond 32, Blonde 32, Virginia 28, Raleigh 32; the Sandwich and Renown, 50, bringing up the rear. The ships maintained a well-directed fire upon Fort Moultrie, as well as on the batteries of Sulivan's Island, and in little more than two hours they anchored under James's Island: some spars were shot away, but the killed and wounded did not amount to more than 27. To prevent an approach to the Cooper river, the rebels sank eleven vessels in that channel, and placed the Ranger frigate with some galleys to defend the entrance. An ineffectual summons having been sent to general Lincoln on the 9th, the british batteries opened on the following morning, and they soon acquired a superiority over those of the enemy. Major Moncrieffe, the chief engineer, who had gained so much honour in the defence of Savanna, conducted the offensive operations against Charlestown with equal credit. On the 18th, considerable reinforcements arrived from New York, which enabled sir Henry Clinton to strengthen the corps beyond Cooper river, and lieutenant-general Cornwallis was appointed to that command. On the 23rd, the second parallel was pushed to within 150 yards of the enemy's lines, and on the 24th a sally was made from the town; but the Americans were so effectually repulsed, that they never again quitted thenworks during the siege. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1780. Wednesday 12th
April. HMS Rodneys Victory off Cape St. Vincent.
1780. Saturday 15th April. Admiral de Guichen, with twenty-three sail of the line, put to sea; and on the 16th they were pursued by the fleet under sir George Rodney, who on the 17th brought them to action, notwithstanding all their efforts to avoid it. The engagement began about one o'clock, and the firing continued until four in the afternoon. At the moment of running down to make the attack, the fleets were parallel to and nearly abreast of each other: the Sandwich, bearing the admiral's flag, with several of the centre division, stood for and engaged the ships opposed to them in the enemy's line, and rear-admiral Rowley, with the rear division, engaged the rear of the french fleet; but the van of the British, in its endeavour to reach the advanced ships of the enemy, had separated so much from the main body, that in order to collect the fleet, it became necessary to discontinue the action. The loss sustained by the British was 120 killed, 353 wounded; that of the French being nearly 1000 men, killed and wounded. Among the wounded were captain Carey of the marines on board the Montague, and lieutenant Heriot serving on board the Elizabeth. From the tenour of admiral Rodney's letter, it is evident that he anticipated a more decisive result; and had he been properly supported, it is probable that he would have obtained better success. After the repulse of comte d'Estaing, in his attack on Savanna, sir Henry Clinton was enabled to resume offensive operations; and an expedition, with a powerful armament, was resolved upon for the reduction of the province of South Carolina. Vice-admiral Arbuthnot, with five ships of the line, two fifties, and several frigates, was to co-operate with his squadron; and accordingly, on the 26th of December 1779, he sailed from Sandy Hook, accompanied by transports having the troops on board. The fleet, after receiving considerable damage in its voyage to the southward, did not get sight of the Carolina shore until the 1st of February, and then coasted along to Tybee, where it came to an anchor. The american congress had conferred the command of their troops in the southern provinces on major-general Lincoln, who took every possible measure to strengthen the defences of Charlestown against the threatened attack, by continuing the lines across Charlestown-neck, from Cooper to Ashley river. In front of these lines was a strong abatis and wet ditch, picqueted on the nearest side; and between the abatis and the lines, deep holes were dug at short distances from each other. Eighty pieces of cannon were mounted, and in the centre was a strong work, which might be considered the citadel. On the 9th of February the fleet sailed from Tybee and arrived on the 11th at North Edisto. On the same day a division of the army landed in Jhn's Island, and on the following morning the remainder disembarked. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1780. Monday 17th
April. Rodney engaged de Guichen in the West indies. The Battle of Martinique
in the West Indies took place during the American War of Independence between
the British Royal Navy and the French Navy.
1780. Friday 9th May.
Rodney engaged de Guichen in the West indies.
1780. Friday 12th May.
The Battle and Capture of Charleston was one of the major battles which took
place towards the end of the American Revolutionary War, after the British
began to shift their strategic focus towards the American Southern Colonies.
After six weeks of siege, a continental Army led by Major General Benjamin
Lincoln surrendered his forces numbering about 5,000 to the British.
1780. Saturday 1st
July. HMS Romney took Artois.
1780. Tuesday 4th July.
The French 32 gun frigate La Capricieuse was captured by the British frigates
HMS Prudente and HMS Licorne. After a four hour battle in which the French lost
her Captain and 150 men were killed and wounded. The ship was so knocked about
that her captors had to set her on fire. The British ships lost 20 killed and
28 wounded between them. Captain Waldegrave of HMS Prudente made the following
report on the behaviour of his detachment of Marines: “in justice to Lieutenant
Banks of the Marines, I must beg leave to observe to their Lordships, that his
party behave with upmost steadiness and bravery, keeping up a regular and
constant fire from the beginning of the action, till necessity called them to
the great guns, when they showed an equal share of spirit and good order.”
1780. Thursday 6th
July. HMS Romney took Perle.
1780. Friday 14th July.
Nonsuch destroyed a Frigate and took Belle Foule.
1780. Thursday 10th August.
The fight between the HMS Flora and the Nymphe. Every one of HMS Floras Marine
detachment were killed in the capture of the French ship Nymphe. With two masts
gone, Monmouth’s wounded Captain was one of only five left alive on the quarter
and poop deck. All including the senior Lieutenant of Marines had been killed.
The same fate had befell all below on the gun deck.
1780. Saturday 12th August. Rienfaisant took Comte d' Artois. 1780. Tuesday 15th August. Copy of a letter from Captain Pere Williams of his Majesty's Ship FLORA to Mr Stephens at Falmouth. 1780. Tuesday 12
September. Vestal took Phoenix.
1780. Saturday 30th
September. Pearl took Esperrance.
1780. Monday 2nd
October. Stirling Castle, Thunderer, Phoenix, Deal Castle and Endeavour were
lost.
1780. Tuesday 10th
October. Laurel, Scarborough, Andromeda, and Blanche were lso in the West
Indies.
1780. Thursday 2nd
November. Zephyr took Senigal, late Racehorse.
1780. November. Sartine
lost off Mangalore.
1780. Wednesday 20th
December. A ‘Fourth Anglo-Dutch War’ took place from 1780 to 1784 over secret
Dutch trade and negotiations with the American colonies, then in revolt against
England.
1780. Wednesday 20th
December. The English quickly took advantage off the newly declared Dutch war
and captured key Dutch possessions in the West and East Indies, while imposing
a powerful blockade of the Dutch coast.
1780. December. Bellona
took Princess Caroline.
1781. 2370 marines were voted for service. 1781. Twenty thousand three hundred and seventeen Marines were voted for the service of 1781. Gibraltar attracted the early attention of our Ministry, by an effort to relieve it, which was accomplished by Admiral Darby, with the Grand Fleet, under circumstances of apparent difficulty, but of eventual good fortune. If the Combined Forces had been united, which was their annual policy and within their power, such an attempt must have been abortive, or performed at an unwarrantable risk. That fortress persevered in a system of defence, peculiarly destructive to the enemy, and of a kind the most honorable to General Elliot and his garrison. Captain Hervey in the Panther, with his small squadron, also gave proofs of wonderful courage, in frustrating the aim of some fire vessels that were employed to burn it. France always intent upon her own interests, embraced this occasion of reinforcing her West India fleets by a powerful detachment under the Compte De Grasse. This became necessary, from the return of De Guichen to Europe, who, after having joined Don Solano's fleet, went down to Hispaniola, with an evident purpose of attacking Jamaica, but from whom he separated without a stroke. Although the battles of Admiral Rodney afforded no signal marks of victory in captures, still their effects had a strong influence in the conduct of De Guichen for proceeding homewards with those shattered ships, from amongst his fleet, that could be refitted only in Europe. Holland soon felt the consequences of its baseness, by the loss of all its West India possessions, and some valuable convoys. The free port of St. Eustatius, hitherto the depot of America, and of every adventurer who had money, fell early in February without firing a gun. Demerara, Issequibo, and the Dutch Settlements on the Spanish main were successively taken, together with the Mars of 60 guns, Admiral Krowl, with 28 sail of merchantmen under his protection, who was killed by a musquet ball, in a short action with the Monarch, Captain Reynolds. Sir Samuel, now Lord Hood, having been soon after sent to windward to cruize for De Grasse, was limited to a station, which gave little hope of ultimate success. The British Admiral continued off Fort Royal, Martinique, until the 28th of April, when a signal was made for the enemy's approach. De Grasse was immediately strengthened by 4 ships of the line, from the Bay, which authorized him to have followed up the most decisive views. Sir Samuel Hood formed his fleet into close order and was joined by the Prince William of 64 guns, Captain Stair Douglas, who then watered at St. Lucia, but had weighed with an unexampled dispatch to share in the conflict, and who continued to cheer along the British Line, until he fell into his station. De Grasse opened his fire, but at a distance little calculated to balance the scale of victory. He had the option of it though he never availed himself of his fortune. Three hours cannonade was kept up, during which it appeared that the French powder was much stronger than ours, when the British Admiral seeing the unavailing expenditure ceased to waste it. This period could not boast of that liberal attention to the seaman's wants, which has characterized our Country, during the late war, towards her naval servants. Scurvy, at that time, was the prevalent disease in our fleet, and this had reached an alarming height in many of the ships attached to Sir Samuel Hood. The world too generally ground their opinions upon external circumstances, without examining minutely into inferior details, which, when known, will be considered, by the judicious, as often constituting the solid merits of human action. To a great superiority of fresh ships and healthy crews, as yet unbraced by the climate, Admiral Hood was opposed with 7 sail less in number, reduced in effective strength by scurvy, and against an enemy, whose naval confidence had never arrived at a greater summit. That steady countenance which he evinced in their presence, was yet surpassed by a noble effort, on the following day, which shewed the invincible spirit of his mind, and these resources so usually annexed to magnanimity and talents. Observing the scattered order of the French, and catching a change of wind in his favour, not common in that Country, he directed a general chace, and levelled all his force against their most vulnerable point. But the elements were fickle, and disappointed his manly views, after which he bore up for Antigua to refit, and land his wounded. Sir George Rodney, having assumed the command, reached Barbadoes on the 23d of May, where he learned the attack upon that island. In this summer the total reduction of West Florida was effected by the Spaniards, who persevered in recovering the possessions, formerly wrested from them. The combined fleets, after covering a debarkation at Minorca, towards the close of August, proceeded in triumph to the mouth of the British Channel, while Admiral Darby retired to Torbay. Discord and sickness were again the agents of heaven to counteract their menaces, and a kind Providence wafted home our commerce in safety, soon after those powerful enemies had each returned to his own ports. The 5th of August exhibited a display of obstinate bravery not unworthy of former times, when the Empire of the Seas was so strenuously disputed by Great Britain and Holland. Two squadrons headed by Officers, who were animated by the same stern spirit, met on the Dogger Bank, each with a convoy under his protection. Having secured their safety, Admiral Parker bore down against his rival, Zoutman, who coolly awaited his approach until he reached the good old measure for deciding their Country's differences and prowess. After a close conflict of three hours and a half, the Dutch resigned the palm by bearing up for the Texel. Captain Campbell of Marines, in the Berwick, and Lieut. Stewart of the same ship, During this unfortunate war, the similarity of language and of manners, had introduced into the bosom of our Country many an American Incendiary, who, without suspicion, were either the immediate Emissaries or maintained a correspondence with those of France. Inviolable secrecy must ever be the life of foreign expeditions, but it unhappily did not exist at this era, and more particularly in that which was set on foot against the Dutch Settlement at the Cape of Good Hope. This was undertaken under the joint auspices of Commodore Johnstone and General Meadowes, who departed from England on the 13th of March, and reached Port Praya Bay, in St. Jago, one of the Cape de Verd islands, on the 10th of April. Anchored in a scattered form, which a little time could not entirely remedy, our squadron was unexpectedly assailed by Admiral Suffrein, one of the few of his countrymen who met Englishmen on their favourite plan of close fighting, and whom the early intelligence of his court had detached with a force sufficient to counteract the schemes of our Cabinet. After a most spirited attack which strongly attested his enterprise and courage, he was repulsed by British valour, and his ships so much shattered as to hold out to the Commodore the prospect of an ultimate triumph. The enemy were afterwards chaced, but more imperious and future views put an end to the pursuit. That good and gallant Officer Capt. now Sir Thomas Pasley, of the Jupiter, Capt. Alms, of the Monmouth, and Captain Hawker, of the Hero, were particularly noticed by their Chief, for their conduct through the day. Great and animated were the exertions of some of the East Indiamen, and the steady countenance of Capt. Jenkinson and his detachment of the 98th Regiment, in repelling the enemy's boarders from the Fortitude, attracted much deserved praise. Suffrein having anticipated Commodore Johnstone, in reaching the Cape, threw into the garrison every necessary supply, which precluded all hopes of succeeding against it, and changed the future plan of the expedition. Having received notice of five Dutch East Indiamen being in Saldahna Bay, forty miles north from the Cape, the squadron shaped its course thither, and made prizes of four, the other having been set on fire. This was a deep cut upon our avaricious foe. The French Admiral went on to India, and General Meadows proceeded under a proper escort to the same quarter, while the Commodore returned to England. Notwithstanding the diminished territories of France in the East, still the zeal and ability of her Agents, well versed in intrigue, had the address, not only to reconcile the existing contentions between Hyder Ally and the Mahrattas, but to direct their united power against our wide possessions in that part of the world. The apathy of the Presidency at Madras, at this momentous crisis, was highly criminal. No steps were taken to concentrate their troops, although they were long apprised of Hyder's views, who, like a torrent, came down from the mountains and entered the Carnatic with an army of 100,000 men. Sir Hector Monro, at last, took the field against this host, and having raised the siege of Arcot, fixed his post at Conjeverane, where he awaited his expected reinforcements from the Tanjore Country in the South, and those from the Guntaz Circar in the North. This being merely introductory matter to future discussion, in which my corps was called forth, my detail of these movements must be concise. The world well knows the sad disaster of Colonel Baillie's detachment from the latter Country, in which was also involved that of Colonel Fletcher from the Main Army, after having exhibited the most extraordinary feats of European valour. From unaccountable causes, no effort, worthy of the occasion, was made to alienate the doom of those brave, but unfortunate men. The immediate consequences were the retreat of General Monro to the Mount, and the Carnatic being overrun by Hyder and his savage legions. Rapid were his successes, and Madras itself anticipated the horrors of a siege from this relentless invader. The energies of the Council of Bengal were patriotically great under these perilous events. Casting an eye towards that distinguished Veteran, Sir Eyre Coote, he was with one general voice called forth to retrieve these calamities. He accordingly embarked from Calcutta, with a force, while some seapoy battalions marched from Bengal to the Carnatic. General Goddard was directed to transport a detachment from his army acting against the Mahrattas, and Sir Edward Hughes, with his fleet, was solicited to block up the ports of Hyder, on the coast of Malabar. The Government of Bombay was likewise ordered to alarm his dominions. Preparatory for this object a number of the Company's troops reached Nagore on the 21st of October, which were soon headed by General Monro, who landed from the Superbe. Sir Edward Hughes disembarked his Marines, consisting of 443, on the same day, and a battalion of 827 seamen upon the 22d. The looked for shift of the Monsoon, and lateness of the season prompted the most active measures. Owing to a heavy surf the cannon and all necessary implements were conveyed by rafts to the shore, in which the zeal of our Sailors, under the superintendance of Captain Ball, was most praiseworthy. The enemy having thrown up strong lines flanked by redoubts, to defend the approaches to Negapatam, they were stormed and carried on the night of the 29th; much of the success and glory of which very justly attached to the Seamen and Marines, whose intrepidity was never more conspicuous. They also evinced an unrelaxed zeal in prosecuting the necessary works of labour. During the siege two sorties were attempted by the garrison, which originally consisted of 8000 men, but in each they were quickly repulsed. After a severe and well-aimed fire, from the 3d to the 12th of November, the Dutch proposed terms which were accepted. The happy results of this conquest were the immediate evacuation of every post in the Tanjore by Hyder's troops, and the return to allegiance of all those petty Princes who had been seduced, by him, from their obedience to the Nabob of the Carnatic. Early in the succeeding morning the Marines, to whom two field pieces were attached, were again put on shore, and they were soon joined by a body of Seamen, who, with some Seapoy pioneers, instantly formed and marched towards the fort of Trincomale. While its Governor was employed in framing terms of capitulation, Lieut. Samuel Orr, at the head of the Marine Grenadier Company, intrepidly rushed through the gateway, and saved him the trouble of such a discussion--taking prisoners three Officers and 40 men. This bold exploit led to the most important consequences, as the fort commanded, with 10 pieces of cannon, the only place where the requisite stores could be landed for the Army. The enemy's defences now became limited to Fort Ostenburgh, situated on the top of a hill which swept the harbour, and on the summit of another above it, where there was posted an Officer's guard. From this they were driven by a detachment of Seamen and Marines, who in every essay were entrusted to execute those hazardous and honorable duties. A summons was then tendered to the Governor, whose reply was firm. Finding that he was not to be intimidated by threats, a general storm was planned and executed on the 11th by 450 Seamen and Marines, who, in column, and their flanks covered by pioneers, followed by 20 Sailors with scaling ladders, and supported by a reserve of six companies of both descriptions, advanced against the fort early on the morning of that day. These were farther strengthened by some native troops in the rear. A Serjeant's party of Marines, in front of the whole, most promptly got into the embrasures, unperceived by the enemy, who, being seconded with much alacrity, the Dutch were finally driven from their works, the fort gained, and with it all the ships in the harbour. Much do I regret in not being able to give the name of this gallant Serjeant, who seemed to have combined talents with spirit. To commemorate the worthy deeds of the meanest Soldier, is a tribute justly due to him. The extensive observance of it would tend to rouse emulation, and the jealous pride of character. He who knows that he stands on the page of record, will be loth to forfeit so honorable a distinction. It is a conscious dignity which will accompany him into society, when his Country no longer wants his services; would diffuse its loyal influence amongst the private walks of life and reanimate the possessor to become a ready Volunteer under every public emergency. If disabled by years, he may, perhaps, have an offspring, whom he cheerfully sends forth to battle, not the obdurate and callous victims to injured laws, not the mercenary and wretched auxiliaries of necessitous expedient, but the manly and independent assertors of Britain's rights and freedom. In resigned confidence, most willingly would he entrust their destinies to a corps, where courage and conduct never remain unnoticed, and are neither forgotten or pass away without recompence. Fort Ostenburgh was not gained, however, without a contest and loss; Lieutenant Long, who commanded a company of Seamen, was slain, besides 20 non-commissioned and private Sailors and Marines; Lieutenant Wolseley of the Royal Navy, and Lieutenant Orr, of the Marine Grenadier Company, who officiated as Brigade Major with much credit to himself throughout this service, were wounded, as well as 40 of both descriptions. Humanity, the brightest gem in the cap of a Soldier, became the property of each assaulter; who, when resistance ceased, spared, in every instance, his suppliant foe. Thus, were our unnatural enemies expelled from the coast of Coromandel. Unanimity, the sure presage of success, was early apparent, and uniformly prevailed. After a most active campaign to the southward, during the progress of which Earl Cornwallis appeared in his wonted attitudes of a great and zealous Officer, the affairs of America were much on the decline, and it was not from their own energies alone they could now hope for that independence which had been their sanguine avowal, and the summit of all their aims. Every military resource began to fail in the summer of 1781, and it was only by one bold effort, or an instantaneous appeal for foreign aid, that their desponding troops could be longer kept together, or their expiring prospects be rekindled. At this awful period the genius of Washington was exerted as a Politician as well as a General. Mons. Barras had arrived at Rhode Island to assume the command of the French squadron there, whither the Rebel Chief hastened to impart the secrets of his anxious heart. In a conference with General Rochambeau a joint attack upon New York was designed; for which future purpose, Washington in a formal demand urged the immediate completion of every battalion in his Army, as well as a strong levy from New England. The bearer of these dispatches, with all his papers, fell into the hands of the British, under Sir H. Clinton, who considered it his duty to prepare against the meditated blow. Orders were accordingly transmitted to Earl Cornwallis to detach from his Army in Virginia, when mutual discussions betwixt those distinguished Commanders ensued, upon which I feel no authority to enlarge, that finally limited his Lordship to the defence of York Town and Gloucester, in the River Chesapeak, upon the 22d of August. Sir Samuel Hood reached Sandy Hook on the 28th of August, when the command devolving upon Rear Admiral Greaves, he put to sea on the 31st with 19 sail of the line, the day after De Grasse had anchored in the Chesapeak with 28. The French Admiral immediately commenced the blockade of York River, having detached four of these to carry on different services in James River, and with the rest bringing up in Lynn-haven-bay. Sir Henry Clinton attempted a diversion in Connecticut, but nothing could attract General Washington from his main object. United to Rochambeau they pushed on to the head of Elk River, where their troops were received on board of French transports, and soon joined those at Williamsburgh under Generals La Fayette and St. Simon. 1781. January. Warwick
took Rotterdam.
1781. Thursday 4th
January. Courageux and Alexander took Minerve.
1781. Tuesday 23rd
January. HMS Culloden lost on Long Island.
1781. Sunday 29th January.
Wilmington surrendered to the Blonde and consorts.
1781. Saturday 3rd February. On the arrival of admiral sir George Rodney in the West Indies from New York, he received information of the commencement of hostilities against the Dutch, and therefore determined on attacking their West India possessions. On the 3rd of February the admiral, accompanied by a considerable military force under major-general Vaughan, appeared before the island of St. Eustatius, and having summoned the governor, the colony surrendered, as did the small islands of St. Martin and Saba; but these possessions were soon recovered by a division of french troops from Martinique, when 68 pieces of cannon, and the garrison, composed of 670 men under lieutenant-colonel Cockburn, fell into the enemy's hands. While sir George Rodney was at St. Eustatius, he learned the approach of the fleet under the comte de Grasse, and immediately despatched sir Samuel Hood and rear-admiral Drake to windward with eighteen sail of the line, to intercept the enemy's fleet before they could form a junction with their squadron at Martinique. The british fleet proceeded off Fort Royal bay, and continued to cruise there until the 28th, when the approach of the French was announced by the advanced ships. A general chase was immediately ordered in line of battle a-head, and the pursuit continued during the night. On the following day the french squadron came out from Fort Royal bay, and formed a junction with comte de Grasse, making their force twenty-four ships of the line, whilst our fleet was only eighteen; nevertheless, they avoided a close engagement. The van and some of the centre of the British were enabled to bring the enemy to action, but the attacking ships were exposed to very superior numbers of the enemy, and consequently sustained much damage. The Fuissell had suffered so severely, that she was obliged to bear away for St. Eustatius to refit; and the Shrewsbury, Centaur, Torbay, and Intrepid, were also much cut up. The next day sir Samuel Hood endeavoured again to bring the enemy to action, but the comte de Grasse withdrew his ships, and returned to Martinique. In the month of May the French made an attempt to reduce the island of St. Lucia, a division of 2000 troops, under the marquis de Bouille, having effected a landing without opposition. On the following morning they attacked Pigeon Island, which was bravely defended by its little garrison, consisting of a company of the 87th regiment under captain Campbell, and some seamen under lieutenant Ralph Miller of the navy, who resisted the summons of the french general, and resolved to defend their post to the last extremity. The fortunate arrival of the Thetis, Santa Monica, Sybille, and Scourge, off the Carenage, contributed greatly to the preservation of the island, by landing the marines and a party of seamen, who were stationed in the batteries of the Vigie, whilst another detachment went to the assistance of the troops posted on Morne Fortunee. On the 12th the comte de Grasse anchored in Gros-islet bay with twenty-five sail of the line, and several frigates; but the fire from the batteries on Pigeon Island had so severely damaged seven of his line of battle ships, that the french fleet put to sea, and after anchoring in the bay of Trou Gascon, they re-embarked the troops, and returned to Fort Royal, Martinique. On the 2nd of September rear-admiral Graves, with nineteen sail of the line, discovered the french fleet under comte de Grasse lying anchored in Lynhaven bay, in the Chesapeake, consisting of twenty-four ships of the line, which got under weigh on perceiving the British. As the fleets neared each other, the British wore round and brought themselves parallel with their opponents; and at 4 p. m. the firing commenced in the rear and centre and continued until dark. The rear-admiral kept close to the enemy during the night, intending to renew the contest in the morning; but finding that several of his ships were much disabled, he was compelled to relinquish the idea. The fleets continued in sight of each other for the space of five days; but the French, who had the weather-gage, showed no disposition to close, and the british admiral, from the crippled state of his ships, had no opportunity to resume the offensive. On the 10th of the month the comte de Grasse bore away for the Chesapeake, and on the following day anchored within the Capes. The following is a statement of the killed and wounded, showing the officers of marines: — Resolution, 74 guns, 3 killed, 16 wounded. First-lieutenant William Patten, second-lieutenant William Daws. Bedford, 74 guns, 8 killed, 14 wounded. Captain David Cuming, first-lieutenant George Vinter. London, 98 guns, 4 killed, 18 wounded. Second-lieutenant Ralph Clark, second-lieutenant Charles Reynolds. Royal Oak, 74 guns, 4 killed, 5 wounded. Captain Wm. Bird, lieutenant Thomas Thomas. Montagu, 74 guns, 8 killed, 22 wounded. Second-lieutenant William Buchan, second-lieutenant James Breedon. Europe, 64 guns, 9 killed, 18 wounded. Captain Alexander Macdonald, first-lieutenant Hugh Mitchell, second-lieutenant William Minto. Terrible, 74 guns, 4 killed, 21 wounded. First-lieutenant Carlton Atkinson, second-lieutenant Charles Hogan. Ajax, 74 guns, 7 killed, 16 wounded. Captain Henry Tantum, first-lieutenant Charles Green, second-lieutenant Richard J. Squire. Princessa, 70 guns, 6 killed, 11 wounded. Captain William Foster, second-lieutenant Randal Myers, second-lieutenant Samuel Laban. 1781. HMS Monarch took
Mars and Dutch convoy.
1781. March. Cerberus
took Grana.
1781. Thursday 16th
March. Arbuthnot engaged de Terney.
1781. Monday 16th
April. Johnstone attacked by Suffren in Porto Praya Bay.
1781. Friday 20th
April. Resource re-took Unicorn.
1781. Sunday 29th
April. Hood engaged De Grasse off Martinique.
1781. Wednesday 2nd
May. Canada took Santa Leocadia.
1781. Tuesday 8th May.
Mentor and Port Royal captured by the Spaniards.
1781. Monday 14th May.
Nonsuch, 64, engaged Actif, 74.
1781. Wednesday 23rd
May. Sir George Rodney, having assumed the command, reached Barbadoes where he
learned of the attack upon the island. Lieutenant Johnstone of Marines was sent
in an Advice Boat in order to gain intelligence, and other information of a
secret nature. His ability and zeal fully qualified him for the task, but
nothing could avert its surrender, after two fruitless attempts to relieve it.
This may be said to have ended the campaign of 1781, in the West Indies.
1781. Monday 28th May.
Atalanta and Trepassey taken by American frigate USS Alliance.
1781. Wednesday 30th
May. Crescent taken by Brielle, but re-taken by Flora.
1781. Wednesday 30th
May. Flora took Castor.
1781. Wednesday 20th
June. Castor and Crescent taken by the Dutch.
1781. Monday 16th July.
Charleston, Allegiance, and Vulture engaged Astree and Hermione.
1781. Sunday 5th August. Shortly after the commencement of hostilities with Holland, the Dutch fitted out a squadron under rear-admiral Zoutman, consisting of one ship of 74 guns, one of 68, one of 64, two of 54, one of 50, one of 44, five of 36, one of 40, and two of 24 guns, for the protection of their trade in the Baltic. They were proceeding to the northward with a convoy under their protection, and when near the Dogger-bank, on the 5th of August, they fell in with the british squadron of seven ships of the line and six frigates, under vice-admiral Parker, who had likewise a large fleet of merchant vessels under convoy. The Tamar frigate was directed to proceed with the trade, and the british squadron made sail in chase of the enemy. Rear-admiral Zoutman formed his ships in order of battle on the larboard tack, under easy sail, whilst the convoy lay a very little way to leeward; and the dutch squadron thus resolutely awaited the attack, not firing a gun until their opponents were fairly alongside. British squadron on the 5th of September 1781, showing the names of the officers of marines — Fortitude, 74 guns, vice-admiral H. Parker, captain George Robertson, 20 killed, 67 wounded. Captain Francis Loighlin, second-lieutenants Charles B. Mosley, and William Thomas Chaters. With six frigates and six smaller vessels, mounting altogether 716 guns; whilst the total of guns mounted on board the dutch squadron amounted to 670. An expedition against the dutch possessions at the Cape of Good Hope, under the orders of commodore Johnstone, consisting of two ships of the line, three of 50 guns, three frigates, and two sloops, with several Indiamen and transports conveying between 2 and 3000 troops, sailed from St. Helen's on the 13th of March, and arrived in Port Praya bay, St. Jago, on the 10th of April. Whilst lying there, in the security of a neutral port, they were attacked by a french squadron, under M. de Suffren, of five sail of the line, several frigates, with transports, having on board a number of troops and a formidable train of artillery. When this armament made its appearance, a considerable portion of the british crews were on shore, watering and embarking stock; but the commodore, on perceiving the designs of the enemy, called everybody on board, and made the signal to unmoor and prepare for action. M. de Suffren, seeing the confused state of the british squadron, left his convoy in the offing, immediately entered the bay with his five ships of the line, and firing at the Isis as they passed her, three of the enemy brought up in favourable positions to engage the Monmouth and Hero; whilst the other two ships kept under weigh, firing at every ship as they passed. The action was maintained with so much spirit by the British, that they were soon enabled to make the enemy repent their treaeherous attack, and to withdraw from the contest in a disabled state, pursued by the english squadron, whose total loss in this gallant defence was only 43 killed, and 130 wounded. M. de Suffren proceeded on to the Cape, where he arrived on the 25th of June, and after landing 500 men to reinforce the garrison, bent his course for the East Indies. Commodore Johnstone, finding that an attempt on the Cape was rendered impracticable, conducted his fleet to Saldanha bay, where he captured four dutch Indiamen; and having accompanied the vessels destined for the East Indies to a certain degree of longitude, general Meadows proceeded on to India with a proper escort, and the commodore returned to England. In October an attack was made upon Negapatam by 3200 Company's troops, under the command of major-general sir Hector Munro, K.B., assisted by the squadron of five ships of the line under vice-admiral sir Edward Hughes. On the 21st the marines disembarked from the ships, amounting to 443 men, officers included; and immediately joined the army at Nagore, on the sea coast. On the following day 800 seamen, under captains Mackenzie, M'Coy, and H. Reynolds, were also put under the orders of sir Hector Munro, and the artillery, with stores necessary for the siege, were with much difficulty landed through the surf. The loss sustained by the British during the siege of Negapatam was 28 killed, and about 1 00 wounded. The marines and seamen were re-embarked on the 24th, and on the 25th of Oc- tober the squadron prepared for an attack of the dutch settlement of Trincomale, which however did not take place until the following year. A severe action was fought by the Nonsuch of 64 guns, captain sir James Wallace, near the English Channel, on the 14th of May, with the french 74-gun ship Actif. The Nonsuch had chased from the squadron of vice-admiral Darby and brought the enemy's ship to action at lOh. 30m. p.m., and after engaging an hour and a half close alongside, the enemy made off, pursued by her antagonist. At 5 a.m. on the 15th the Nonsuch renewed the action, which continued until the british ship was so much disabled, that the Actif made her escape. The Nonsuch had 26 men killed, and 64 wounded; and the french ship 15 killed, and 38 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1781. August.
Southampton engaged Surveillante.
1781. Wednesday 1st
August. Pelican lost off Morant Keys.
1781. Sunday 5th August. Shortly after the commencement of hostilities with Holland, the Dutch fitted out a squadron under rear-admiral Zoutman, consisting of one ship of 74 guns, one of 68, one of 64, two of 54, one of 50, one of 44, five of 36, one of 40, and two of 24 guns, for the protection of their trade in the Baltic. They were proceeding to the northward with a convoy under their protection, and when near the Dogger-bank, on the 5th of August, they fell in with the british squadron of seven ships of the line and six frigates, under vice-admiral Parker, who had likewise a large fleet of merchant vessels under convoy. The Tamar frigate was directed to proceed with the trade, and the british squadron made sail in chase of the enemy. Rear-admiral Zoutman formed his ships in order of battle on the larboard tack, under easy sail, whilst the convoy lay a very little way to leeward; and the dutch squadron thus resolutely awaited the attack, not firing a gun until their opponents were fairly alongside. The morning was perfectly clear, with a slight breeze from the N. E., as the British bore down to the attack; and at about 8 a.m., when within pistol shot, hauled their wind together, and the action became general, After the battle had lasted three hours and forty minutes, the Dutch bore away to the southward, leaving their opponents in such a disabled condition as to be incapable of pursuit, with a loss of 104 men killed, and 339 wounded. From the best accounts that could be obtained, the Dutch had 142 men killed and 400 wounded. The Hollandia, of 68 guns, was so much shattered, that she sank on the same night. British squadron on the 5th of September 1781, showing the names of the officers of marines — Fortitude, 74 guns, vice-admiral H. Parker, captain George Robertson, 20 killed, 67 wounded. Captain Francis Loighlin, second-lieutenants Charles B. Mosley, and William Thomas Chaters. Princess Amelia, 80 guns, captain J. Macartney, 19 killed, 56 wounded. Captain Alexander Malcolmbe, lieutenant Thomas Thompson. An expedition against the dutch possessions at the Cape of Good Hope, under the orders of commodore Johnstone, consisting of two ships of the line, three of 50 guns, three frigates, and two sloops, with several Indiamen and transports conveying between 2 and 3000 troops, sailed from St. Helen's on the 13th of March, and arrived in Port Praya bay, St. Jago, on the 10th of April. Whilst lying there, in the security of a neutral port, they were attacked by a french squadron, under M. de Suffren, of five sail of the line, several frigates, with transports, having on board a number of troops and a formidable train of artillery. When this armament made its appearance, a considerable portion of the british crews were on shore, watering and embarking stock; but the commodore, on perceiving the designs of the enemy, called everybody on board, and made the signal to unmoor and prepare for action. M. de Suffren, seeing the confused state of the british squadron, left his convoy in the offing, immediately entered the bay with his five ships of the line, and firing at the Isis as they passed her, three of the enemy brought up in favourable positions to engage the Monmouth and Hero; whilst the other two ships kept under weigh, firing at every ship as they passed. The action was maintained with so much spirit by the British, that they were soon enabled to make the enemy repent their treaeherous attack, and to withdraw from the contest in a disabled state, pursued by the english squadron, whose total loss in this gallant defence was only 43 killed, and 130 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1781. Sunday 5th
August. Hyde Parker engaged Zoutman on the Dogger Bank. Marines were involved
in the only significant engagement of the war, when a small Dutch force won a
victory off Dogger Bank in the English Channel.
A letter of the engagement from H. Parker:
"Yesterday we fell in with the Dutch squadron, with a large convoy, on the
Dogger bank. I was happy to find I had the wind of them, as the great number of
their large frigates might otherwise have endangered my convoy. Having
separated the men of war from the merchant ships, and made the signal to the
last to keep their wind, I bore away with the general signal to chase. The
enemy formed their line, consisting of eight two decked ships; ours, including
the HMS Dolphin, consisting of seven. Not a gun was fired on either side until
within the distance of half musket shot, the Fortitude being then abreast of
the Dutch Admiral, the action began and continued with unceasing fire for three
hours and forty minutes, by this time our ships were unmanageable. I made an
effort to form the line, in order to renew the action, but found it
impracticable, the Bienfaisant had lost her fore topmast, and the HMS Buffalo
her fore yard, the rest of the ships were not less shattered in their masts,
rigging, and sails. The enemy appeared to be in as bad a condition; both
squadrons lay a considerable time near each other, when the Dutch with their
convoy bore away for Texel. We were not in a condition to follow them. His
Majesty's officers and men behaved with great bravery, nor did the enemy show
less gallantry. The Fortitude was extremely well seconded by Captain McCartney
in HMS Princess Amelia, but he was unfortunately killed early in the action,
Lieutenant Hill has great merit in so well supporting the conduct of his brave
Captain. As there was great probability of our coming into action again,
Captain MacBride very readily obliged me by taking command of that ship, and I
have appointed Mr. Waghorne, my first Lieutenant, to the command of HMS Artois.
This gentleman, although much hurt in the action, refused to leave my side
while it lasted. Captain Graeme, of HMS Preston has lost an arm. (In closed) I
transmit a list of the killed and wounded, and an account of the damage
sustained by the ships. "The enemy's force was, I believe, much superior
to what their Lordships apprehended; and I flatter myself they will be
satisfied that we have done all that was possible with ours. The frigates this
morning discovered one of the Dutch men of war sunk in twenty two fathoms
water, her top gallant masts were above the surface, which Captain Patton has
struck and brought to me on board. I believe she was the second ship of the
line of 74 guns."(Sic)
1781. Tuesday 7th
August. Medea took Belisarius.
1781. Thursday 9th
August. Isis took Trumbull.
1781. Friday 17th
August. George III. visited the fleet at the Nore.
1781. Sunday 19th
August - 4th February 1782. The defence of Fort St. Philip Minorca was
conducted by a small Corps of 430 Marines and Sailors when the Spanish blocked
the harbour.
Beatson’s M. & N. Memoirs: “A small Corps of Marines and Sailors belonging to such of His Majesty’s ships as chanced to be here when the Spaniards blocked up the harbour, were of great service during the siege, and being more accustomed to live on salted provisions, they kept their health much better than the other troops in the garrison.” (sic) One of the charges against General Murray the Governor
of the Island, when called to account for Its loss, was that in order to make
out that he had a garrison weaker than it really was, he suppressed in his
report to the Secretary of State: “The mention of the Marines Corps, which
alone consisted of 430 fit for duty, with 125 Artillery men, besides Greeks,
Algerines and Corsicans.” Lieutenants Davis and Crew, 3 Sergeants and 54
Privates were killed in the defence, and Captain Harman and Lieutenant Hodges
were wounded. (sic)
1781. Sunday 26th
August. Richmond and Isis taken by the French.
1781. Wednesday 5th
September. Graves engaged De Grasse off the Chesapeake.
1781. Thursday 6th
September. Savage, 14, taken by Congress, 20.
1781. Chatham took
Magicienne.
1781. Saturday 6th October. Chatham Division. Conformable to the orders of 1758, the Orderly Sergeant is to bring all letters from the Post Office that are directed to the Officers of the Division. The C.O's letters to be carried to his quarters and the rest delivered to the Orderly Room, where they will be given to those who the officers choose to send for them, or otherwise delivered by the sergeants and corporals of the respective squads at the officers' quarters, with their orders. 1781. Friday 26th
October. Hannibal took Neckar.
1781. Monday 8th
October. The first reference to a Marine Band at Chatham (the 1st Grand Division)
although it is believed that a Fife Drum Band was formed there in 1773.
1781. Sunday 21st
October. 3,200 of the East India Company’s troops were at Nagore and Vice
Admiral Sir Edward Hughes landed the Marines of the squadron that was 443
strong. The next day 827 seamen along with two 24 pounders, twelve 18 pounders,
two12 pounders, two 10 inch and six 5-1/2 mortars. The Marines who, on landing
immediately joined the land forces, co-operated to the utmost, and during the
Siege of Negapatam, were unrivalled in their gallantry, as well as performing
most important services, in landing with the utmost difficulty and danger,
through the surf, guns and mortars for the batteries on shore.
1781. Monday 29th
October – 11th November. An attack was made upon Negapatam by 3200 troops,
under the Command of Major General Sir Hector Munro, K.B. assisted by a
squadron of five ships of the line under Vice Admiral Sir Edward Hughes. On the
Sunday 2lst October the Marines disembarked from the ships, amounting to 443 men,
including officers, and immediately joined the army at Nagore, on the sea
coast. On the following day 800 seamen, under Captains Mackenzie, and H.
Keynolds, were also placed under the orders of Sir Hector Munro, and the
artillery, with stores necessary for the siege, were with much difficulty
landed through the surf. The general, having invested the place in the best
manner his scanty force would admit, determined on an assault; and on the
Thursday 29th of October the strong lines which the enemy had thrown up were
stormed, and carried by the steady and distinguished bravery of our troops. On
Saturday 3rd November the approaches were commenced, and on the Wednesday 7th a
battery of 10 eighteen-pounders was ready to open fire. During the course of
the siege, the enemy made two desperate sallies with the greater part of the
garrison, but they were beaten back with great loss. On Saturday 10th the
batteries opened with so much effect upon the bastion, in which a breach was to
be made, that the enemy proposed to capitulate, and on the Sunday 11th November
both town and citadel were taken possession of by the British troops. The
garrison consisted of 8000 men, but of these only 600 were Europeans, and about
2000 were the troops of Hyder Ali, who fled on the first charge made on the
enemy's lines. The loss sustained by the British during the siege of Negapatam
was 28 killed, and about 100 wounded. The Marines and seamen were re-embarked
on board the ships and prepared for an attack of the Dutch settlement of Trincomale,
which did not take place until the following year.
1781. Admiral Hughes dispatched his Squadrons of Marines to support the East India troops during the capture of Negapatam. 1782. Twenty-one thousand three hundred and five Marines were voted for the year 1782. In the different actions that followed, Captain, now Col. My bounds will not allow me to extend these details, in which the Marine Corps bore always a zealous, though a subordinate share. A train of success had elated De Grasse, who, with a mighty force, put to sea from Martinique on the 8th of April, in the certain confidence of adding Jamaica to his other conquests. The British Fleet soon followed him, and a partial affair took place on the 9th; when an opportunity was lost by the French, of making a serious impression on the English van, under Sir Samuel Hood, unsupported by the centre and rear, from a casual failure of wind, under the island of Dominique. Little hope of bringing the enemy to a decisive battle continued from that day, until the 11th, when a general chace was directed against two ships, whose recent damages had forced to leeward of their fleet and exposed them to capture. Observing their danger, De Grasse, who might have weathered Guadaloupe, sacrificing that object, bore up to save them. The Zelé falling on board the Ville de Paris during the night, by which she lost her main-mast, was chaced in the morning by the Monarch, to support which ship the French Admiral hazarded all, with his united force. Captain Reynolds was then recalled to his station in the line, and the conflict began at seven, on the 12th of April. That glorious day, with its important consequences, at so critical a period of our history, must be recognized by the latest posterity. To particularize any belongs not to me on so great an occasion, where all were entitled to praise. The high talents of Sir Charles Douglas afforded his gallant superior much useful aid through the day. De Grasse being carried a captive to that island which he had but a little while ago viewed the certain spot of his triumphs as a conqueror, is an impressive example of the vicissitudes of fortune. He had the mortification to witness those grateful effusions of its natives, poured forth to their saviours, which, under different circumstances, would have been offered to him under the constrained forms of political adulation. In this long-contested action four Captains of Marines were wounded, but only two were named in the public dispatch Bell and Bagg. Lieut. Mounier was killed, and the Subalterns Breedon, Buchan, Harris, and Laban were wounded. Respecting Lieut. Mounier, of the Torbay, I am led to notice the following anecdote, as having been narrated to me by Lieut. Collins of that ship. In the morning, after the two hostile fleets had formed the line and were approaching each other, Mounier, whose spirit in single combat had previously been fatally experienced by his antagonist, expressed a sensation of an immediate change in his destiny. Under this impression he requested Lieut. Collins to play a game at picquet to divert the time, until they opened fire. This they continued to do, when each went to his respective station. The sad presentiment was soon realized to poor Mounier, who was early in the battle cut in two, and the greater part of his remains were scattered on the sea. Sir Edward Hughes encountered, in four different actions, Monsieur Suffrein, one of the bravest Officers in the Naval service of France. Possessing, in each, a great advantage in numbers, the utmost height of valour, but productive of no immediate effects, was exhibited in all by the British Fleet. The French Admiral shewed himself worthy of the trust confided in him by his Sovereign. In one of these battles, fought on the 12th of April, the Monmouth, Captain Alms, suffered extremely, and was particularly distinguished. All the Marines on her poop were either killed or wounded, excepting Captain Pearce and Lieut. Mounier, who nobly volunteered to assist in fighting her guns on the main deck, after they had lost all the brave men under their own command. The discomfiture of the combined armaments before Gibraltar in September of this year, must ever stand as a memorable event upon our annals. Humanity and victory walked hand in hand, and, as usual, adorned the national character, on that grand occasion. The long-tried valour of General Elliot, and the spirited services of Sir Roger Curtis, with those under their controul, were sealed and consummated by deeds of mercy, which will never be forgotten by our enemies. That fortress was soon after relieved by Lord Howe, under circumstances most honourable to his Lordship, the Officers, Seamen, and Marines who seconded him. In every incidental combat at sea, during the currency of 1782, our wonted prowess was at all times conspicuous. The short, but well-contested fight of Captain Jervis (now Earl St. Vincent) in the Foudroyant, with Le Pegase, afforded a powerful evidence how much success is dependent on seamanship and discipline. While a dreadful carnage was the Frenchman's lot, the English loss was confined to a few slightly wounded, among whom was numbered her Commander, whose professional address obtained a bloodless victory. The names of Pole, Luttrell, and Salter, were destined to be conspicuous, and their encomiums transcended to Lieuts. Pownol and Rankine, of my Corps, for their steady co-operation and bravery in the Success and Mediator. The year closed with negociations for a general peace, the provisionary articles of which were mutually signed at Paris by Commissioners from Britain and America, on the 22d of November. These were soon after followed by the exchange of preliminary articles with France and Spain, on the 20th of January 1783. (Taken from Chapter 36 'An Historical Review of the Royal Marine corps' by Alexander Gillespie)
1782. Friday 11th
January. The Capture of Trincomale. After the capture of Negapatam, the
tempestuous state of the weather retarded the intended departure of the
squadron of Sir Edward Hughes to attack the Dutch settlement of Trincomale, on
the island of Ceylon, but the squadron having embarked 30 Artillery men, and
600 volunteer Sepoys, put to sea on the Thursday 3rd January from the roads of
Negapatam, and arrived in the bay of Trincomale on the 4th. Early in the
morning the Marines, with 2 six-pounders, were landed, and soon afterwards 800
seamen were disembarked, followed by the Sepoys; and before it became dark, the
whole force pushed forward towards TrincomaIe fort. On the same night the
Grenadier companies of the Marines, led by Lieutenant Orr, made themselves
masters of the fort, by forcing an entry through the gateway at the moment the
governor was preparing terms of capitulation. The garrison consisted of only 3
officers and 40 men, but the possession of the fort was important to the future
operations of the enterprise as it commanded the only safe landing for stores
and provisions from the ships. On Tuesday 8th the seamen and Marines captured a
post situated on the top of a high hill commanding Fort Ostenburgy which
fortress was also on the summit of a neighbouring eminence that commanded the
harbour. Sir Edward Hughes, after sending a second summons to the governor
without success ordered the immediate preparation for an assault on the morning
of the 11th. Accordingly the storming party, consisting of 460 seamen and
Marines, having on their flanks a party of pioneers, with 20 seamen carrying
scaling-ladders, and a reserve of three companies of seamen and three of
Marines, supported by two field-pieces and the Company's troops, advanced at
daylight towards the fort. A Sergeant's party of Marines led the attack, and
getting through the embrasures, the Dutch were soon driven from their positions
and the fort gained, with the loss of Lieutenant George Long of the navy, and
20 sailors and Marines killed, and Lieutenant Samuel Wolseley of the navy,
Lieutenant Samuel one of the Marines, officiating as Brigade Major, and 40 men
wounded. The fort mounted above 60 guns, and contained a garrison of 400 men.
In the harbour there were two valuable East Indiamen, and 30 smaller vessels.
Sir Edward Hughes, in his official report, thus expresses himself on the
conduct of the Marines. “The whole of the officers who have been landed from
the squadron for the attack of Negapatam and Trincomale, have on all occasions
manifested much honour, courage, and good conduct, and the private seamen and
Marines have acted with great steadiness and bravery." (sic)
1782. Corps Strength at
that time was 21,305 men.
1782. January. Hannibal
and Chafer captured by the French.
1782. Friday 25th
January. Hood attacked three times by De Grasse off Basse Terre.
1782. Saturday 17th
February. The Battle of Sadras off Ceylon, was the first of five largely
indecisive naval battles fought between a British fleet under Admiral Sir
Edward Hughes and French fleet under the Bailli de Suffren off the east coast
of India (during the ‘American War of Independence’). The battle was fought
near present day Kalpakkam, and was tactically indecisive. Although the British
fleet suffered the most damage, and the troop transports that Suffren was
protecting were able to land their troops at Porto Novo. The British suffered
32 men killed and 83 wounded, while the French had 30 killed and about 100
wounded.
1782. Friday 16th
March. Success took Santa Catalina.
1782. Tuesday 9th April
- Friday 12th April. A naval battle that took place during the ‘American War of
Independence’, that ended with a victory for the British fleet under the
command of Admiral Sir George Rodney, over a French fleet under the Comte de
Grasse forcing the French and Spanish to abandon its planned invasion of
Jamaica. The British suffered 243 dead, 816 wounded. While the French suffered
far worse with 4 ships of the line captured,1 destroyed, 3,000 dead or wounded
and 5,000 captured.
1782. Friday 12th
April. Rodney defeated De Grasse off Martinique.
1782. Friday 12th
April. Lord Rodney’s action off Dominica. Admiral Rodney’s Letter: “I received
intelligence that the enemy were embarking their troops on board the ships of
war, and concluded that they intended to sail in a few days. Captain Byron of
the Andromache, an active and diligent officer, watched their motions with such
attention that on the 8th inst. at day light he made out the enemy's signal of
coming out and standing to N.W. I instantly made the signal to weigh, and
having looked into the Bays of Fort Royal and St. Pierre, I made signal for a
general chase, and before day light came up with the enemy under Dominique,
where both fleets were becalmed, and continued so for some time. The enemy
first got the wind, and stood towards Guadaloupe. My van division, under that
gallant officer Sir Samuel Hood, received it next, and stood after them. At
nine the enemy began to cannonade my van, which was returned with the greatest
briskness. The baffling winds did not permit part of the centre division to get
into action with the enemy's rear till half past eleven, and then only the ship
next me in line of battle, &c. The enemy's cannonade ceased upon my rear's
approach, but not before they had done considerable damage to the ships in the
van, and disabled HMS Royal Oak and HMS Montague. The night of the 9th inst.
the fleet lay-to to repair their damages. The 10th they continued to turn to
windward under a very easy sail, the enemy continuing to do the same; and
always had it in their power to come into action, which they cautiously avoided,
and rendered it impossible for me to force them in the situation they were in,
between the Saints and the island of Dominique. On the 11th, the enemy having
gained considerably to the windward, and the wind blowing a fresh steady gale,
I made the signal for a general chase to windward, which continued the whole
day; and towards sunset one of the enemy's ships, damaged in the late action,
falling to leeward, the Count de Grasse bore down with his whole fleet to her
protection, which brought him so near that I flattered myself he would give me
an opportunity of engaging him next day. With that view I threw out the signal
for the form of sailing, and stood with the whole fleet to the southward till
two in the morning, then tacked, and had the happiness, at day-light, to find
my most sanguine desire was near being accomplished, by my having it in my
power to force the enemy to battle. Note from Lord Rodney's narrative contained
in a private letter. The 10th of April and the 11th were employed in endeavouring
to bring the enemy to battle, and on the 11th, late in the afternoon, the enemy
bore down to protect two of their own ships, who were in danger of being cut
off. This brought them to the position the Admiral wished; he instantly issued
orders to sail during the night in the order of sailing; to put out all lights;
to stand to the southward till two in the morning, and then the whole fleet to
tack without signal. This deceived the enemy, who had no conception that the
British fleet should be so near them at day light, we instantly formed the line
of battle on our starboard tack, the enemy formed theirs on the larboard tack,
and had made the signal to wear; but the nearness of the British squadron
prevented its being put into execution, and the British fleet taking the lee
gage, the Admiral made the signal to engage and close." (sic)
1782. Sunday 21th
April. Hughes engaged Suffren (2nd action).
1782. Sunday 21st
April. Foudroyant took Pegase.
1782. Tuesday 23rd
April. Queen took Actionnaire.
1782. Wednesday 30th May. At 5 a.m., the Flora of 36 guns, and Crescent of 28 guns, captains W. P. Williams and the hon. Thomas Pakenham, attacked two dutch frigates near Ceuta, and after an action of two hours and a quarter, the opponent of the Flora struck her colours. She proved to be the Castor of 32 guns, having 22 men killed and 41 wounded. The Flora had 9 men killed, and 32 wounded. The Crescent engaged the other ship for more than two hours; but the enemy was so supe- rior in force, that the british ship, after being greatly disabled, was compelled to surrender. The Flora came up in time to prevent the enemy from taking possession, and the latter, which was the Brill of 32 guns, then made off. The Crescent lost her mainmast, and sustained a loss of 12 killed, and 40 wounded. The frigates and their prize, after refitting at Cadiz, sailed for England, and on their passage both the Crescent and the Castor were captured by two french frigates. Rear-admiral Hood, suspecting that the comte de Grasse would speedily return to the West Indies from the Chesapeake, left Sandy Hook on the 11th of November with seventeen sail of the line, and arrived at Barbadoes on the 5th of December, where he was joined by the St. Alban's of 64 guns. He again put to sea on the 14th with the whole fleet, and finding that the enemy were at St. Christopher's, he bent his way to Antigua, after being reinforced by the Prudent of 64, and Russell of 74 guns. The admiral then proceeded off Nevis, and on the 25th, at day-break, the enemy's fleet was discovered to leeward on the larboard tack, standing to the southward in line of battle ahead, consisting of twenty-nine sail of the line, and two frigates.Rear-admiral Hood, with his fleet of twenty-two of the line, manoeuvred as if intending an attack, by which means he drew the enemy further off shore ; and when they were at some distance from Basseterre road, the british admiral made a push to occupy the anchoring ground the enemy had quitted, and having fortunately succeeded in this bold attempt, he saved the island from capture. The comte de Grasse, on perceiving his error, crowded after, and endeavoured to cut off the rear of the british squadron, which consisted of the Russell, Resolution, Bedford, Canada, President, and Montagu, and at about three o'clock, he made a furious attack on those ships; but notwithstanding his vast superiority, after engaging for nearly three hours, he was compelled to draw off, and stand to the southward. At daylight on the 26th, the french fleet were seen forming their line off Nevis Point, and at about 8 a. m. they stood towards the british squadron. At nine they began their attack on the van, and continued along the whole line, wearing round after they passed the eternmost ship, and then stood to the southward. At one p. m. the enemy tacked, and again standing towards the British, opened their fire upon the centre at 2 h. 50 m. p. m., and then proceeding on to the rear, they wore round as before. Neither of these attacks made much impression on our line, but the French suffered considerably. Captain Strickland, and lieutenants Forster and Griffiths, of the marines, were wounded. After the capture of Negapatam, the tempestuous state of the weather retarded the intended departure of the squadron of sir Edward Hughes to attack the dutch settlement of Trincomale, in the island of Ceylon; but the squadron having embarked 30 artillery men, and 500 volunteer sepoys, put to sea on the 3rd of January from the roads of Negapatam, and ar-rived in the bay of Trincomale on the 4th. Early in the morning the marines, with 2 six-pounders, were landed, and soon afterwards 800 seamen were disembarked, followed by the sepoys; and before it became dark, the whole force pushed forward towards Trincomale fort. On the same night the grenadier company of the marines, led by lieutenant Orr, made themselves masters of the fort, by forcing an entry through the gateway at the moment the governor was preparing terms of capitulation. The garrison consisted of only 3 officers and 40 men; but the possession of the fort was important to the future operations of the enterprise, as itcommanded the only safe landing for stores and provisions from the ships. On the 8th the seamen and marines carried a post situated on the top of a high hill commanding Fort Ostenburg, which fortress was also on the summit of a neis; hbourino; eminence that commanded the harbour. Sir Edward Hughes, after sending a second summons to the governor without success, ordered the immediate preparation for an assault on the morning of the 11th. Accordingly, the storming party, consisting of 450 seamen and marines, having on their flanks a party of pioneers, with 20 seamen carrying scalingladders, and a reserve of three companies of seamen and three of marines, supported by two field-pieces and the Company's troops, advanced at daylight towards the fort. A Serjeant's party of marines led the attack, and getting through the embrasures, the Dutch were soon driven from their works and the fort gained, with the loss on our part of lieutenant George Long of the navy, and 20 sailors and marines killed; and lieutenant Samuel Wolseley of the navy, lieutenant Samuel Orr of the marines, officiating as brigade-major, and 40 men wounded. The fort mounted above 50 guns and contained a garrison of 400 men. In the harbour there were two valuable East-Indiamen, and 30 smaller vessels. Sir Edward Hughes, in his official re- port, thus expresses himself on the conduct of the marines." The whole of the officers who have been landed from the squadron for the attack of Negapatam and Trincomale, have on all occasions manifested much honour, courage, and good conduct; and the private seamen and marines have acted with great steadiness and bravery." Leaving a garrison in the fort of Ostenburg, the vice-admiral sailed for Madras, where he arrived on the 8th of February, and was informed of the arrival upon the coast of a french fleet, which made its appearance on the 15th, consisting of twelve ships of the line, six frigates, and eight large ships en flute; whilst the British were only eight of the line, and one of 50 guns, with one ship of 20 guns. Sir Edward immediately got under weigh in pursuit of the enemy, who separated on the 16th from their convoy, six of which were captured. At 6 a. m. on the 17th, the french squadron under commodore de Suffren were seen approaching under a crowd of sail; but the wind dying away, the action did not commence until 4 p. m., when they were engaged with the rear and centre of our squadron, but principally with the Superb, Exeter, and Hero. The engagement continued until dusk, when the enemy hauled their wind, and stood to the north-east. The Superb had 11 killed, — her captain, William Stevens, mortally, and 13 wounded. The Exeter, captain H. Reynolds, 9 killed and 45 wounded total 32 killed, 83 wounded. The british squadron saw nothing of their opponents and arrived at Madras on the 12th of March. After taking; on board supplies, they sailed for Trincomale, and having been joined by the Sultan of 74 guns, and Magnanime of 64, from England, sir Edward Hughes on the 30th kept his course, neither shunning nor seeking the enemy. On the 18th of April, the french fleet was discovered to leeward in the north-east; but sir Edward continued his course, whilst the enemy kept their relative position until the 11th, when the British, by bearing away for Trincomale, allowed M. de Suffren to obtain the weather-gage, of which he profited; and on the 12th at daylight, the enemy were seen advancing under sail to the attack. After manoeuvring for some hours, they bore down in two divisions, five ships attacking the v, and the other seven, led by M. de Suffren against the centre of the british line, formed in order of battle on the starboard tack. The Superb was at first closely engaged by the french commodore and another ship of 74 guns, but they were so roughly handled that they stood on to attack the Monmouth; who, with her main and mizen-masts shot away, had suffered so severely that she fell out of the line to leeward, warmly engaged by her opponents, until the Superb, Monarca, and Sultan ran down, and covered the crippled ship from the destructive fire of the enemy. The cannonade continued until 6 p.m., when the french squadron drew off in disorder to the eastward; and the british ships shortly afterwards came to an anchor. At daylight on the 12th, the French were perceived also at anchor about five miles distant; in which situation both squadrons remained several days repairing their damages, anxiously watching the motions of each other. On the morning of the 19th, the enemy got under sail and stood towards the British, but soon tacked, and making sail to the eastward, were out of sight by the evening. The Superb and Monmouth suffered more than any other ships. The great loss of men of the latter is almost unequalled on board of a ship of her class; having 45 men killed, and 102 wounded. The Superb had two lieutenants, her master, with 56 men killed, and 96 wounded. Lieutenants of marines, Thomas Milrea of the Monmouth, and John Dixon of the Burford, were killed. The total loss in the british squadron on the 12th of April, was 137 men killed, and 430 wounded. Although these actions were not decisively in favour of the British, yet they were of great importance in their consequences. M. de Suffren, having refitted his ships at Batacalo, returned to the coast of Coromandel in the early part of June; and having touched at the danish settlement of Tranquebar, he proceeded to Cuddalore, which place had been strongly fortified by the French. M. de Suffren, on learning that sir Richard Bickerton was expected in the indian seas from England with a reinforcement, resolved to make another attack on the force under sir Edward Hughes, and in order to strengthen his crews, he received on board 400 french infantry, as many sepoys, and 300 artillery. The british admiral sailed from the bay of Trincomale on the 23rd of June and anchored his squadron off Negapatam on the following day. On the 5th of July the french squadron made its appearance, on which the British put to sea and stood to the southward, in order to gain the wind of the enemy. On the 6th of July, at daylight, the French were discerned at anchor, distant about seven miles on the north-north-east, and the wind a light breeze from the south-west. At 6 a.m., the enemy having weighed and stood to the eastward, the vice-admiral was induced to form his squadron in line of battle a-head; and at seven a.m. the signal was made to bear up in line abreast, and for each ship to engage the one opposed to her in the enemy's line. At 10 h. 45 m. a.m. the enemy opened their fire, which was instantly returned by the British; and from 11 h. 10 m. to 35 minutes past noon, the engagement was general. Shortly afterwards there appeared to be great confusion on board several of the french ships, and the Brilliant, the second a-head of M. de Suffren, had lost her main-mast. At this crisis, when fortune seemed to have decided the contest in favour of the English, the sea breeze sat in very fresh at southsouth-east. Several of the british ships were taken aback and came round with their heads to the westward whilst the others paid off and continued on their former tack. The effect was somewhat the same on the enemy's squadron; and both admirals collected their ships as well as their disabled condition would permit. As the Monarca and Hero were so much damaged as to be incapable of taking their station, sir Edward Hughes wore round, and steered to the westward with his squadron, whilst the engagement still continued to be partially maintained. At 2 p.m. the french ships stood in shore, and at 6 p.m. came to an anchor. The british squadron anchored about three leagues to windward, in so shattered a condition as to be incapable of pursuing the enemy, who reached Cuddalore without further molestation. The following is a statement of the killed and wounded in the british squadron on the 6th of July 1782, with the names of the officers of marines on board the respective ships: Hero, 74 guns, captain C. Wood, 12 killed, 23 wounded. Captain Thomas Lewis, second-lieutenant George Thompson. After refitting in Madras roads, sir Edward put to sea on the 20th of August, with the addition to his squadron of the Sceptre 64 guns, captain Samuel Graves. The admiral's first iesign was to protect our garrison at Trincomale, and cover the squadron of sir Richard Bickerton, whose arrival from England was hourly expected; but M. de Suffren having united his force to the ships under M. d'Aymar, they proceeded to the attack of the british posts at Trincomale, which surrendered to the French, after a short defence, on the 30th of August. On account of the southerly winds, Sir Edward Hughes did not arrive off Trincomale until the 2nd of September, where he found the enemy's squadron of fourteen ships of the line, a 50-gun ship, and three frigates anchored in the bay. Early on the 3rd they put out to sea, with a strong breeze at S.W. which placed them to windward of the British, who, formed in line of aattle a-head, received the attack of the enemy at 10 h. 30 m. a.m.; but it was not until 2 p.m. that the action commenced. The superiority in numbers of the French enabled them to place additional ships against the extremities of our line, and by these means the Worcester and Monmouth, the rearmost ships, were furiously assailed; as were the Exeter and Isis in the van. The cannonade was kept up with great vigour until 5 h. 30 m. p.m., when the wind shifting suddenly from S.W. to E. S. E., Sir Edward Hughes made the signal to wear, which svolution was performed in the most admirable order, whilst the French also came round on the other tack. The engagement svas renewed with great spirit, and with such effect on the part of the British, that at 6 h. 30 m. p.m. the main and mizenmasts of the Heros, the ship of M. de Suffren, were shot away, about the same time the Worcester's main top-mast came down: about 7 h. p.m. the body of the french squadron hauled their wind to the southward, exposed for some time to the fire of the british ships in the rear. Considering how closely the ships were engaged, it is surprising that the loss on the part of the British amounted to no more than 51 killed, and 283 wounded but the number of officers was great beyond example. Captains Wood of the Worcester, Watt of the Sultan, were mortally wounded; and Lumley of the Isis fell during the action. On board the Superb, 4 men were killed; lieutenant Samuel Orr of the marines, wounded, lieutenant Thompson of the 98th regiment, and 49 men wounded. Worcester, lieutenant Edwards of the marines and 4 men killed, and 16 wounded. Hood, whilst the body of the fleet was still lying becalmed. The comte de Grasse, perceiving the separation of the van division of the British from their centre and rear, bore down upon it, and for some time those eight ships were engaged with fifteen of the enemy. About noon the breeze reached the ships under sir George Rodney, when they immediately tacked and closed with those under sir Samuel Hood, who was again engaged with the enemy; but the comte de Grasse, on the approach of the british line, hauled his wind, and at 1 p.m. is ships tacked in succession. During the 10th the French continued in sight, but at a considerable distance to windward. At daylight on the 11th two of the enemy's ships were so far to leeward of their fleet, that admiral Rodney, in order to cut them off, made a signal for a general chase; upon which the comte de Grasse bore down to their support. At 6 p. m. the British, were about three leagues to leeward of the french fleet, which then consisted of thirtyone ships of the line its number having been diminished by two ships, which were so disabled on the 9 th as to put into Basseterre to refit. At day-break on the 12th of April, the enemy's fleet was to windward of the Saintes, steering to the northward with a fresh breeze; and one of their ships with loss of foremast and bowsprit, in tow of a frigate, was standing in for Guadaloupe. After an attempt to cut off this disabled ship, which the french admiral supported by bearing away to her assistance, the two fleets formed their lines upon opposite tacks, and the french van was a little to windward of the British. About eight o'clock the action commenced, by the centre and rear of the enemy with the van and centre of the English, and it continued until 10 a. m., at which time rear-admiral Drake's division had passed their rear. At this period the van of the French, and the centre and rear of the British, had but little wind from the southward, which occasioned an alteration in the course of that part of the enemy's fleet; and by compelling its van to steer to the westward, whilst the rear continued its course to the southward, it completely deranged the french line of battle, and formed the opening in which admiral Rodney found his ship and some part of his division, when the firing ceased, and the smoke cleared away about noon. The van of the French, by steering to the westward in consequence of the southerly breeze, was forced into action with the british rear whilst the centre of the latter, by changing its course with the alteration of the wind, steered to the eastward, instead of the northerly course it had been pursuing. This also ©ccasioned a division in the british line, whilst thirteen ships of the french rear were between the british van of seventeen, and admiral Rodney with six of the centre division. These six ships had also five of the enemy under comte de Grasse on the other side of them, and the french admiral was completely cut off from the rest of his fleet by rear-admiral Hood's division, then engaged with the van of the French. Thus, by a fortuitous circumstance, the fleets became divided into three different parts, entirely separated by ships of the opposing fleet intervening. About noon all firing had ceased, and the French, endeavouring to unite, bore up together, pursued by the British, who attacking the disabled ships of the enemy, soon compelled them to yield. At about a quarter past noon, the Glorieux of 74 guns struck her colours on the approach of british ships. The Cesar, 74, was next taken possession of by the Centaur, after a gallant resistance; whilst the Hector, 74, struck to the Alcide. The Canada was engaged with the Ville de Paris of 110 guns, bearing the flag of admiral de Grasse, until sir Samuel Hood in the Barfleur came up, when the french admiral struck his colours, after sustaining a severe loss in killed and wounded. About this time, just as the sun was sinking below the horizon, the Ardent of 64 guns (which had been captured off Plymouth by the combined fleet), struck to the Belliqueux; and the british admiral, considering the french fleet completely defeated, gave over the pursuit. The total loss of the British was 240 men killed, and 797 men wounded. The officers of marines included in this return were as follow: — On the 8th of September, general Elliot ordered a powerful fire to be opened on the enemy's works on the land side; and on the following day a new battery, mounting 64 heavy guns, added to the other cannon and 60 mortars on the Spanish lines, continued to pour an incessant fire against the garrison, whilst a squadron of nine sail of the line and some frigates attacked the sea defences of the rock. At length the combined fleets, consisting of twenty-seven Spanish and twelve french ships of the line, arrived in Algesiras from Cadiz; and having joined those already before Gibraltar, this powerful armament amounted to forty-eight ships of the line, added to the ten floating batteries, mounting 154 pieces of heavy brass cannon; and their crews, with the artillery on board those formidable vessels, were not less than six thousand men. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1782. Friday 5th July.
Hughes engaged Suffren (3rd action).
1782. Monday 29th July.
Santa Margaritta took Amazone.
1782. Saturday 17th August. Chatham Orders. As it will greatly conduce to the good order and happiness of the Inhabitants of the Barracks that a Military Good example of attention in the Officers who lodge there be adhered to by keeping proper and seasonable hours, in repairing thither regularly in the evenings. It is therefore earnestly wished and expected, if any Officer who lodges in the Barracks, is engaged abroad for the evening that he will be pleased to repair to his Apartment at Ten o'clock, or at furthers half-an-hour thereafter. For as the Commanding Officer will endeavour to carry out the several duties so as in a little time to give the Young Officers, in as pleasing a method as can be desired, a small idea of Garrison modes, he is therefore resolved that at half-an-hour after Ten, or at furthers a Quarter before Eleven o'clock every night the keys of all the Gates and Doors shall be brought to him by the Sergeant of the Guard, and not returned to the Guard until full daylight next morning. 1782. Thursday 29th
August. The loss of the Royal George, which foundered at Spithead.
1782. Monday 2nd
September. Due de Chartres took Aigle, French frigate.
1782. Tuesday 3rd
September. Hughes engaged Suffren (4th action).
1782. Wednesday 4th
September. The Rainbow took Hebe.
1782. Wednesday 11th
September. The Warwick and Lion took Aigle, French frigate.
1782. Friday 13th
September. Grand attack upon Gibraltar by the Spaniards. The start of an
assault involving 100,000 men, 48 ships and 450 cannon, against the British
garrison of Gibraltar survived.
1782. Wednesday 9th
October. London and Torbay engaged Scipion, which was run ashore.
1782. The Diamond took
Magdalena, Dutch armed ship.
1782. The Alligator
taken by Fee.
1782. Friday 11th
October. The Relief of Gibraltar by Lord Howe.
1782. November. The
Ruby captured the Solitaire.
1782. Saturday 30th
November. The British and Americans sign preliminary Articles of Peace.
1782. Thursday 12th
December. The Mediator took Alexander.
1782. Thursday 12th
December. The Mediator took Menagere.
1782. Monday 23rd
December. The Diomede took South Carolina.
1782. The loss of the
Blonde.
1782. The Solebay burnt
to save her from capture.
1783. Wednesday 2nd January. The 32-gun frigate Magicienne, captain Thomas Graves, in company with the Endymion frigate, escorting a convoy to the West Indies, chased two suspicious sail. At 12 h. 30 m. a. m., the Magicienne opened her fire, and after a few broadsides her opponent surrendered. The Magicienne then stood on, and brought the headmost ship to action, which continued until 2 h. 30 m. p. m., when the british ship's mizen-mast and main-topmast came down, and in another five minutes the fore and main-masts followed. The Endymion soon arrived up, cheered, and passed on in pursuit of the enemy, which was the Sybille of 40 guns, having about 300 supernumerary seamen on board, bound to the Chesapeake. The Magicienne lost 3 officers, and 16 seamen and marines killed; her first-lieutenant, 1 midshipman, her boatswain, lieutenants Henry Reddish Furzer and William Minto, of the marines, and 29 wounded, out of a crew of 189 men. The fleet under vice-admiral Barrington, consisting of twelve sail of the line, had nearly reached Ushant on their way down Channel on the 5th of April, when several vessels hove in sight, and the signal was immediately made for a general chase. About sunset the strangers were discovered to be three or four ships of war, and seventeen sail of convoy. At half-past nine the sternmost ship, on perceiving that the Fourdroyant of 80 guns, captain Jervis (afterwards earl St. Vincent), was gaining fast upon her, bore away, and was pursued by the british fleet. It came on to blow fresh, which occasioned the Fourdroyant to separate from the squadron, and at 12 h. 47m. a.m. on the 6th she brought the french 74-gun ship Pegase to close action and continued to engage her until 1 h. 30 m. a. m., when she laid her on board on the larboard quarter, and compelled the french ship to surrender, having 80 men killed and 40 wounded, whilst the Fourdroyant had only 3 men wounded. The officers of marines of the Fourdroyant were, first-lieutenant JohnHobbs, second-lieutenant Richard Murphy. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1783. January. Leander
engaged a French 74.
1783. January. Argo
taken by Nymphe and Amphitrite.
1783. February. Hussar
took Sybille.
1783. February. St.
Albans took Concorde.
1783. Fox took Santa
Catalina.
1783. Sunday 2nd March.
Resistance took Coquette.
1783.The public measures during the year, were more precautionary than hostile, tending chiefly to guard against contingencies, and to be ready to resume our arms, if necessary, with effect, in every quarter of the world. Amidst the awful storm, Britain began to emerge, by degrees, from under the heavy cloud which had long overcast her political horizon, and to reclaim her ancient seat amongst the nations. Every subordinate occasion that called forth her Naval energies, seemed to display a spirit worthy of the brightest periods of her Maritime glory. However delicate the topic, I am still induced to notice the reiterated instances of baneful mutiny in our Fleet, during this year of returning tranquillity. It is a lamentable truth that examples of indiscipline were as common as they were successful, and to the plan of compromise which was then pursued, may be traced, in part, that predilection for revolt which agitated the minds of our Seamen during the late contest--crimes, for which their unparalleled achievements have amply atoned to their Country, but such as never can find a palliative within their own breasts, or an extenuation from any pen that is guided by an impartial impulse. The demonstrations of loyalty and zeal, in every Marine Detachment, during this turbulent era, although not realized by deeds, still evinced a readiness to seal them with their lives, in the support of good order. These fatal means which were used to appease the spirit, hushed his murmurs indeed, but they invigorated the growth of the untamed monster. After the various and meritorious services of the Marine corps, during two successive wars, at a time when their loyal zeal was conspicuous to their Country, when their utility and subordination were in every mouth, a heavy reduction in its establishment took place. It was with equal surprize, and general regret, that this faithful body of men became limited to 4495, and to 70 companies, with a parsimonious allowance of Field Officers. Such a popular branch of the public force was evidently small for supplying the ships of war in commission, and for the important duties of guarding our naval arsenals. But as the judicious policy of the present day, has adopted a more liberal and patriotic system respecting the corps of Marines, I deem myself precluded from that range of comment upon the method of anterior times, which I should have otherwise felt an authority to claim. Another vindictive conflict occurred in the East, but without any important consequences; in which Sir Edward Hughes, as hitherto, nobly maintained the honor of the British flag, against Admiral Suffrein and superior numbers. The sound of peace soon after reached their ears and closed all their differences. Acts of generous hospitality, and works of mercy in the western world, superseded stratagem in war, and the thirst of fame. The elegant attentions of Mons. de Bellecomb, at Cape Francois, were still outdone by the noble humanity of Governor Don Galvez. This brave Spaniard placed the forfeited lives of those unfortunate delinquents, at his Royal disposal. It was the most precious gift that could have been tendered to a British Prince who was recognized under this great and solemn offering as sharing in all the generous sympathies of an Englishman. The hour which permitted him to restore those wretched victims, in a foreign land, to their native society, must be reviewed as the happiest of his life. It must still yield many a consoling reflection in his retirement, and although restrained from adding to the triumphs of our Realm, by deeds of carnage, he may yet rejoice that he stands upon the records of mercy and benevolence by the most exalted displays of fellow feeling. By the definitive articles of peace America found herself an Independent Empire. Recent injuries alienated her citizens from our Country; but similarity of manners, the dictates of interest, and allayed prejudices must, ere long, re-unite us in the bonds of friendship. The retreat of Washington from the head of her Armies, unambitious of recompense or power, forms one of the grandest examples of human virtue ever given to the world and must immortalize his name through every stage of its existence. Holland was compelled to suppress her phlegm, and to mourn over her degraded character, and commercial losses. It was found that farther exertions were still necessary to place them on the high list of public recompence, and that the faithful discharge of ten years duty in peace, had but little influence in strengthening their claims for favour. (Taken from Chapter 37 ' An Historical Review of the Royal Marine Corps' by Alexander Gillespie) 1783. Sunday 16th March. The Success of 32 guns, captain Maurice Pole, when off Cape Spartel, in company with the Vernon store-ship, captured the Spanish 32-gun frigate Santa Catalina, of 34 guns, after an action of two hours, in which the Vernon took but little part. The Spanish ship had 25 men killed, and only 8 wounded; and her masts were so disabled, that the fore and main-masts fell soon after she surrendered. The Success had only 1 man killed, and 4 wounded. Lieutenant Pownal was the officer of marines on board the Success. The year closed with negotiations for a general peace, the provisionary articles of which were mutually signed at Paris, by commissioners from Great Britain and America, on the 22rtd of November. These arrangements were shortly followed by the exchange of preliminary articles with France and Spain, on the 20th of January 1783. The establishment of the corps was now reduced to 4495 men, but in 1784 four companies were added to provide for the expedition to Botany bay. Nothing of importance occurred until the period of the french revolution in 1792, which event produced a renewal of hostilities, and consequently a considerable augmentation in the marines. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1783. March. There was
a Mutiny at Spithead of such extent that it can only be compared with that of
the great outbreaks of 1797? Some of the ships company’s notably those of HMS
Ganges, HMS Janus, and HMS Proselyte threatened to run their ships on shore and
destroy them unless their wages were instantly paid and themselves discharged.
1783. Monday 14th –
Friday 18th April. The Capture of the New Providence of Nassau in the Bahamas,
took place late in the ‘American War of Independence’, when a Loyalist
expedition under the command of Andrew Deveaux set out to retake the Bahamas
from the Spanish. The expedition was successful, and Nassau fell without a shot
being fired. It was one of the last actions of the entire war. 600 Spaniards
surrendered that were later repatriated, 7 ships were scuttled, and 50 cannons
captured.
1783. Sunday 16th March. The Success of 32 guns, captain Maurice Pole, when off Cape Spartel, in company with the Vernon store-ship, captured the Spanish 32-gun frigate Santa Catalina, of 34 guns, after an action of two hours, in which the Vernon took but little part. The Spanish ship had 25 men killed, and only 8 wounded; and her masts were so disabled, that the fore and main-masts fell soon after she surrendered. The Success had only 1 man killed, and 4 wounded. Lieutenant Pownal was the officer of marines on board the Success. The year closed with negotiations for a general peace, the provisionary articles of which were mutually signed at Paris, by commissioners from Great Britain and America, on the 22rd of November. These arrangements were shortly followed by the exchange of preliminary articles with France and Spain, on the 20th of January 1783. The establishment of the corps was now reduced to 4495 men, but in 1784 four companies were added to provide for the expedition to Botany bay. Nothing of importance occurred until the period of the french revolution in 1792, which event produced a renewal of hostilities, and consequently a considerable augmentation in the marines. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1783. Friday 20th June.
Hughes engaged Suffren (5th action).
1783. Wednesday 3rd
September. The United States of America and Great Britain sign the Treaty of
Paris thus ending the war between them.
1783. Wednesday 5th
November. Loss of Superbe off Tellicherry.
1783. Tuesday 25th
November. British troops finally leave New York City.
1783. Stonehouse
Barracks in Plymouth was first occupied.
1783. Corps Strength at that time was 26,291 men. 1783 - 1793. During the years of peace, the Royal Marines had been reduced to about 5,000 men. At the start of the war the Marines had 70 companies and in the Royal Navy estimates for 1793 the establishment was raised to 9,815 men. 1783. Sir Charles A. F. N. Menzies (1783 - 22nd August 1866) was born at Sal Freike, Perthshire, Scotland. Although he became a respected soldier with the Royal Marines, fighting with Horatio Nelson in the Napoleonic Wars and later rising to the rank of General before becoming aide de camp to the Queen. Charles Menzies is best remembered for the founding of Newcastle, in New South Wales Australia, and the successful commencement of its settlement. Menzies was the son of Captain Charles Menzies of the 71st Regiment, and mother Sarah Menzies, née Walker J'. He was educated at Stirling and his family who lived in Theft ancestral castle, as was done at that time, bought him a commission at the age of 15, as a second Lieutenant in the Marines on 17th February 1798. Following his commission he saw plenty of action having been posted to duties that involved blockading French ports and chasing the French and Spanish fleets around the Mediterranean sea. He was attached to Vice-Admiral Horatio Nelson's squadron off Boulogne, on France's Atlantic coast and was repeatedly involved in attacking shore batteries and engaged in skirmishes with French boats. Menzies sailed to Australia on board the HMS Calcutta which was transporting some convicts to New South Wales and then others to form a new settlement in Tasmania (then known as Van Diemen's land.) Menzies was aboard the ship in Port Jackson, Sydney on 5th March 1804 when a rebellion involving a number of convicts broke out in the area of Castle Hill. This incident would later be called the Vinegar Hill rebellion. Menzies with a detachment of Marines landed from the ship to help quell the rebellion. He was promoted to lieutenant shortly thereafter. Governor Phillip Gidley King faced with a need to prevent future outbreaks of this nature, hanged the nine leaders of the 300 rebels involved and ordered the establishment of a new settlement to segregate the Worst of the Irish sent here for Sedition from the other convicts. On 14th March 1804, nine days after the rebellion Menzies wrote to the Governor offering his services as the settlement's commandant. Governor King accepted this offer and provided Menzies with a Commission dated 15th March 1804 which appointed him as the commander of the settlement of Newcastle. The Commission signed by the Governor noted: Menzies resigned his commission in relation to his detachment of Royal Marines and formed an expedition of skilled personnel including the surgeon James Mileham, Isaac Knight whose role was to be superintendent of the convicts, John Tucker a store-keeper, the botanist George Caley, Ferdinand Bauer an artist, and eleven military guards. Thirty-four especially chosen convicts, including three miners, three timber cutters, two carpenters, a gardener and a salt bailer (with the skill of making salt from salt water) and which also fitted Governor King's description of the worst of the Irish left Sydney on 28th March in three small ships the Lady Nelson, Francis and Resource. The party arrived on 30th March by accounts at noon and Menzies' flotilla anchored of the entrance to Coal River. A boat from Menzies ship and seamen aboard the boat rowed him towards the southern shore of the river. Although only aged 21 when he arrived at Newcastle, Menzies proved to be both stern and forward thinking. This was shown by his rules which dictated that convicts would work from sunrise to sunset but have a rest of two hours in the middle of the day. Then later when he discovered a plot by the convicts to assassinate him and the other expedition members he arrested and severely punished the ringleaders. After a year establishing Newcastle, Menzies submitted his resignation to Governor King so that he could return to England and his duty in the Royal Marines. King accepted his resignation and he left soon after, returning almost immediately to active service including a meritorious role in the war against Napoleon. 1784. May. The Dutch
republic was never able to assemble a proper fleet for combat, and when the war
ended the Dutch were at the lowest peak of their power and prestige.
1784. Friday 30th July.
Antelope lost off Jamaica.
1784. Sunday 8th
August. First mention of a 'Wardroom'.
1784.The peace with the Dutch reduced the establishment to 4,495 men, including six field-officers with their companies, viz. three lieutenant-colonels and three majors; but on the formation of the expedition for Botany Bay, whilst four companies were added, those of the field-officers remained reduced. On the retirement of lord Howe, the earl of Chatham became first lord of the Admiralty, and in consequence of the presentation of a memorial from the three divisions (Appendix 5), the field-officers and their companies were restored. In 1791, on a memorial being presented, (Appendix 6,) an invalid establishment was formed, allowing the following officers to retire: — one commandant on 24s. per diem, one lieutenant-colonel, one major, twelve captains, six first-lieutenants, and three second-lieutenants. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1785. Thursday 6th
October. Loss of Rambler in Leigh Roads.
1786. Saturday 9th December. The Leicester and Nottingham Journal. The power of conscience is in no instance so strongly marked, as in the crime of murder. An example has lately happened in this town. A few evenings since a woman followed the watchman and entreated him to take her into custody, as she had been an accessary in a murder. The watchman thinking at first, she was insane disregarded what she said, at last wearied by her importunities he conveyed her to the constable who ordered her into confinement for the night. The next morning she was examined before Edward Pilcher Esq, a Justice of the peace, before whom she made the following confession. That about six years since she lodged at the house of a woman who lived on the point at Portsmouth, and carried on the employment of a procuress for seaman, that she cohabited with a Marine belonging to the Courageaux, who having received about ten guineas prize money the daughter of the said procuress endeavoured to seduce him to sleep with her that night; but he refused: that the Marine being intoxicated with liquor, the daughter knocked him down with a • poker and repeated her blows till he was dead, that they then all assisted in carrying out the body to the seashore to which fastening stones they endeavoured to sink it in the water, but finding that ineffectual, they dug hole in the beach and buried it: that the mother afterward gave her six guineas if she would not publish the fact, but go over to Ireland, to which she consented, but that her mind was so disturbed in consequence of the part she had taken, that she could have no peace by night or by day, and was therefore resolved to give herself up to justice, upon this confession she is committed to Maidstone Gaol to take her trial at the next assizes, it seems that the mother and daughter were sometime after the murder committed on suspicion and were tried at Winchester but for want of evidence were acquitted. (From H. Heather). 1786. Having lost the use of the American Colonies as a country to deport its convicts, and of their use in populating the county with its subject, in order to spread the word that it was English Territory. A new plan was devised to send Convicts to Australia. 1787. Saturday 24th February. Ten o'clock in the morning saw Lord
Loughborough and a special jury at Westminster hall the trial of an
action, in which Lieutenant Charles Bourne late of the Marines was
Plaintiff, and the Countess of Crequi, of Walcot Place, Lambeth,
defendant for a breach of a promise of marriage. After the Plaintiffs
witnesses had been examined Mr Recorder rose, and in a speech of about
an hour and a half, stated a variety of observations to show, that
nothing had appeared in evidence to prove the promise of marriage,
either by express words or implication, and then after a short
consultation with his brethren, declared that he would not call a
single witness for the defendant but would leave the matter to the
court and Jury, as it appeared to them from the Plaintiffs evidence.
After a very candid charge from the Noble Judge, the Jury, in less than
two minutes brought in a verdict for the Plaintiff with one shilling
damages. 1787. Tuesday 27th February. Marine Thomas Lucas. A detachment of 1 Captain, 2 Lieutenants, 2 Sergeants, 2 Corporals, 26 Privates and 1 Drummer went on board the Scarborough transport. Thomas Lucas would have been part of this detachment. The following Sunday 4th March, 185 convicts were taken on board. Amongst them would have been Nathaniel Lucas, and there is a persistent rumour that they were brothers, but it is hard to find clear evidence that this is the case. The Fleet weighed anchor on Saturday 12th May 1787, and arrived at Botany Bay on Saturday 19th January 1788, at 8 o’clock. At half past nine they sailed through the heads. The Scarborough stayed a week there while some stores were transferred to others ships and some Marines went ashore as guards or to work. All the work ashore was done by Marines or seamen. The Scarborough then sailed for Port Jackson and anchored close to the shore at Sydney Cove. That night the landing began, when four convicts were sent ashore, and then the Marines disembarked with all their baggage, and the rest of the convicts. Most of the time the Marines had to face the boring round of duty, mounting guard, reporting worn out boots and uniforms, short rations and the question must often have been discussed as to whether they would be relieved at the end of three years, as they had been promised when they volunteered. On the Wednesday 1st October 1788, only 5 officers and 4 other ranks were prepared to accept the offer of a grant of land and to accept discharge in the colony. (sic) 1787. Friday 4th May. Fact as know on Royal Marine Drummer Joseph Abbot:- By the end of 1788 Abbott had taken up with a convict woman Isabella Rawson. I can find no record showing they were ever married. Isabella had a child, Mary who was born in London prior to leaving England. Mary died onboard the ‘Lady Penrhyn’ on 8th June 1787 just a month out of England. In 1788 Isabella became pregnant to Joseph and she gave birth to a son, Joseph, on 15th February 1789. Joseph and Isabella separated soon after the birth. On 5th September 1789 Isabella Rawson married William Richardson a convict who had travelled out to NSW on HMS porpoise. Joseph and Isabella’s son, Joseph, died later that year on 12th November 1789. March 4th 1790 saw Joseph Abbot bound for Norfolk Island aboard HMS Supply with Captain Shea’s company. Early in 1792 saw the return of Abbot to Sydney town. He was to be one of many marines who transferred to the ‘Rum Corps’; officially known as the Royal New South Wales Regiment. His transfer was dated 6th April 1792 and was to be for five years. Abbot was discharged from the NSW Regiment on 6th April 1797. Joseph Abbot once again set sail for Norfolk Island as a free man onboard the Reliance on 18th January 1798. As no further records are to be found on Joseph Abbott it is presumed he returned to England at some later date. 1787. Sunday 13th May.
The First Fleet set sail from Portsmouth in United Kingdom, Commanded by
Captain (later Admiral) Arthur Phillip. It consisted of eleven vessels containing
a total of 1420 people. (1373 landed). The Flag ship was HMS Sirius along with
HMS Supply. The Convict transport ships were HMS Alexander, HMS Charlotte, HMS
Friendship, HMS Lady Penrthyn, HMS Prince of Wales and HMS Scarborough. The
Stores ships were HMS Fishburn, HMS Borrowdale, and HMS Golden Grove. The cargo
of convicts comprised of 565 male 192 female and 18 children. His orders were
to set up a penal colony in Australia. After a voyage that lasted almost 250
days they arrived in Botany Bay New South Wales.
The First Fleet called in at Tenerife before setting
sail for Rio de Janeiro where they stayed for a month, in which time they took
on extra supplies. By this time it had been discovered that in spite of all
Captain Phillips had organised two very important items had been over looked.
Soap for the convicts was one, and ball ammunition for the Marines was another.
It was perhaps, fortunate that the convicts had not discovered the latter
before 10,000 musket balls could be brought from the Arsenal in Rio. Here they
also obtained paper for making cartridges, and a supply of soap from which the
convicts were able to repay the Marines to whom they had been indebted for what
little of this useful article they had been able to borrow during the voyage.
1787. Sunday 23rd
December. Bounty sailed. (Mutiny, 28th April 1790).
1788. Friday18th and
20th January. Captain Arthur Phillip had been given full instructions for the
setting up of the colony, with full authorisation to make regulations, and land
grants to those within the colony. A detachment of four companies of Marines,
under the command of Major Robert Ross, that consisted of four Captains, 12
Subalterns, 24 Sergeants and Corporals, 8 Drummers, and 160 Privates. That
included his Adjutant, Second Lieutenant John Long, Quartermaster Lieutenant
James Furzer, Engineer Officer Lieutenant William Dawes and his four Company
Commanders. Captains James Campbell and John Shea, Captain Lieutenants James
Meredith and Watkin Tench. Their job was to protect the new colony as they
settled into their new world. Many went on to stay never to return to the
United Kingdom.
At that time, private Marines enlisted for life
although discharge by purchase was allowed on payment of 10 guineas. Those who
went to NSW, however, had the option of discharge after three years. Recruits
were paid a 2 guinea bounty as an inducement to join. Daily pay rates which
included a food and clothing allowance, ranged from £1.6s.6p for a Major to
1/2d for a Marine private. However, when the Fleet finally arrived at Botony
Bay, the area was deemed to be unsuitable for settlement due to its lack of
fresh water, even though it had been recommended by Captain James Cook back in
1770. They moved north arriving at Port Jackson on the
Australian East coast on Saturday 26th January 1788. However, Botany Bay had
other shortcomings as well, as it was open to the sea, making it unsafe for the
ships and Captain Arthur Phillip (the Colony's first Governor) considered the
soil around Botany Bay was poor for crop growing. From the start the settlement
was beset with problems. Very few convicts knew how to farm and the soil around
Sydney Cove as predicted was very poor. Instead of Cook's lush pastures, well
watered and fertile ground, suitable for growing all types of foods and
providing grazing for cattle, they found a hot, dry, unfertile country side
unsuitable for the small farming necessary to make the settlement
self-sufficient. Everyone, from the convicts to Captain Phillip, lived on
rationed food. The natives were wary and fearful of the settlers, who referred
to them as Indians. Some African American convicts, hoping to be accepted by
the natives, escaped but were rejected by them. Other convicts, heeding rumours
of other settlements nearby and that China was just over the horizon, also
escaped. Those that managed to survive the rigors of the country returned to
the colony and to further punishment. While the natives subsisted on local plants and fish, the settlers found few of the plants to be appetising. As the settlers appear to have been poor fishermen, most of their food had to come from the supplies brought with them on the ships. This resulted in their total dependence on a shipping trade monopolised by the East India Company and none existent as far as Sydney was concerned. Rats, dogs, crows, an occasional kangaroo or emu were to be used to supplement the food. Shelter was also a problem. They had very little building material and the government had provided only a very limited supply of tools, which were of a bad quality. With the local trees being huge, and the wood hard, these tools were soon blunt or broken and building slowed. Extra clothing had been forgotten and, by the time the Second Fleet arrived, convicts and Marines alike were dressed in patched and threadbare clothing. By July 1788, all the ships except the naval vessels HMS Syrius and HMS Supply had left and the settlement was isolated. (Sic) 1788. Thursday 24th January. ‘The Marines, Convicts and Settlers Norfolk Island 1788 – 1791’ Always deemed to be the poor cousin to the British Army, it was presumed that the Marines had hoped to raise their status by volunteering for this dangerous tour of duty in an unexplored land. However this is a misconception. Looking to the origins of the Marines, they were formed due to the failure of using regular army personnel for shipboard duties. Finding them totally unsuitable it was decided by Charles II that a force of 1200 men should be raised as Marines to serve specifically onboard ships. These volunteer Marines, were mainly recruited from agrarian areas and most had a skill or trade, such as carpenters, blacksmiths or stonemasons etc. As sworn men, they would add security to the fleet and would always serve the crown and its officers. When on board ship, the marines would be accommodated between the officers and the nefarious sailor who for the most part had been pressed into service and had no particular allegiance. Many sailors were ill-disciplined and could not be trusted. The British marine of 1788 was ideally suited for such distant expeditionary endeavours. Not only was he a highly trained and motivated infantryman in his own right, but he was also taught seamanship skills to the level of a ‘foremast man’. With these two elements to his ‘trade’ he could not only effectively fight at sea, or from the sea as a soldier, the qualified marine was also able to work as a watch keeper within his ‘part of ship’ and participate as a gun number on the cannon decks. Thus, with these attributes, he was able to undertake long arduous sea voyages and to endure the debilitating privations of living and working in a confined environment. He was able to effectively operate as a soldier (and at times, policeman or prison guard!)or seaman A ‘Letter from an Officer of Marines at New South Wales, 16th November 1788’, published in the London newspaper, The World, 15th May 1789, reported the glowing description of the island and its prospects by Philip Gidley King, but also drew attention to the fatal defect of the lack of a safe port: More convicts were sent, and the island was seen as a farm, supplying Sydney with grain and vegetables during its early years of near-starvation. However, crops often failed due to the salty wind, rats, and caterpillars. The lack of a natural safe harbour hindered communication and the transport of supplies and produce. Manning Clark observed that "at first the convicts behaved well, but as more arrived from Sydney Cove, they renewed their wicked practices". These included an attempted overthrow of King in January 1789 by convicts described by Margaret Hazard as "incorrigible rogues who took his 'goodwill' for weakness". While some convicts responded well to the opportunities offered to become respectable, most remained "idle and miserable wretches" according to Clark, despite the climate and their isolation from previous haunts of crime. The impending starvation at Sydney led to a large transfer of convicts and marines to Norfolk Island in March 1790 on HMS Sirius. This attempt to relieve the pressure on Sydney turned to disaster when Sirius was wrecked and, although there was no loss of life, some stores were destroyed, and the ship's crew was marooned for ten months. This news was met in Sydney with "unspeakable consternation". Norfolk Island was now further cut off from Sydney which, with the arrival of the Second Fleet with its cargo of sick and abused convicts, had more pressing problems with which to contend. The question arises then as to why such an officer was chosen not only to command the detachment but also to be the Lieutenant Governor of New South Wales. Those who appointed him have not left us with their reasons for doing so, but his was an age of patronage. To gain preferment, people needed patrons and the benefits of alliance to avoid being an impotent outsider. The use of patrons was widespread: Bligh had two, Sir Joseph Banks and the Earl of Vincent; John Macarthur's patron was a family friend, George Watson, who was private secretary to the Secretary of State for the Colonies, Lord Camden; George Johnston of the marines was attached to the Duke of Northumberland; and Major Robert Ross used the patronage of Evan Nepean, with whom he had served in the American war and who had since become Under Secretary in the Home Office. Ross's use of Nepean's help was apparently widely known, for in an article in the London Chronicle of 23 June 1789, the claim was made that Ross owed his civil appointment as Lieutenant Governor to both Nepean and Sir John Jervis, respectively former purser and former captain of HMS Fondroyant. Ross was forty-eight years old when he assumed command of the detachment, and he had had thirty-two years' service. He was therefore; above all else, a very experienced officer, and that fact must be given considerable weight in assessing his future performance. In contrast to their successors, the New South Wales Corps, the marines had established, generally, amicable relations with both convicts and Aborigines. However, under the marines' efficient but inflexible commandant, Major Robert Ross, the tiny colony was led via rampant crime and debauchery to the brink of civil war. Early in February 1790, Phillip's patience with Ross came to an end. By then, the threat which Ross's intransigence posed to the peace and good governance of the settlement at Sydney demanded that Phillip end his policy of long suffering: consequently, Phillip reported, in detail, to both Lord Sydney and Nepean, not only the misdemeanours of Ross, but also his refutation of Ross's allegations against him. Then, on 17th February, Phillip told Ross to proceed to Norfolk Island with Meredith and Johnston's companies. He was to relieve King who had been not only the Commandant there since February 1788, but also the Lieutenant Governor since 28th January 1789. Nevertheless, in spite of everything Phillip would have been only been too pleased to see Ross leave Sydney. He told the colony that his reason for sending the marines and convicts to Norfolk Island was that, ‘conditions there were superior to those at Port Jackson.' Clark and Bradley confirmed Phillip's report by stating that Norfolk Island had a ‘better food supply from fish and birds, and that reduction of Sydney's population was essential.' The Sydney store would contain only thirteen weeks' provisions after 1st March 1790. With the Sirius almost ready for sea, Phillip ordered Ross to prepare his troops for the move and Private Easty on 19 February recorded that Ross issued his warning order for the two companies to prepare for departure aboard HMS’s Sirius and Supply on 5th March 1791. Phillip sent instructions to King to hand over to Ross and return to Port Jackson before leaving for England via Batavia (to which port he was ultimately conveyed by the Supply)." Meanwhile at Port Jackson, the detachment completed its preparations for departure: Clark, after ensuring that his bed was placed aboard the Sirius and that the detachment's colours were safely stowed, accepted the invitation of Ross and Campbell to dine with them on both days preceding departure. By now Clark had much changed his opinion of Ross: he had previously described him as the most disagreeable commanding officer he had ever known; but now he was saying that ‘Ross's friendship to me is what I call real and sincere’.
Embarkation was completed with 186 aboard the Sirius and 25 on the Supply; Ross, Kellow, Johnson, Clark, John Ross, and 20 NCOs and marines were to travel by Sirius. Captain Johnston, Lieutenant Faddy, with 30 NCOs and marines were to travel on the Supply. These two ships moved out from Sydney Cove at six o'clock on the morning of 5 March but so strong a sea was raging at the harbour's mouth that they moored inside the Heads till six o'clock next morning. In the attempt to reach the open sea, the Sirius was almost driven on to the rocks off North Head. However, once at sea they made such progress that by noon the two ships were out of sight of land. Their departure was the first dismemberment of the little settlement at Port Jackson. This was felt profoundly by those who remained behind. The marines' barracks had assumed a deserted appearance: ‘where once all had been troops and bustling activity, there now dwelt desertion and loneliness to accentuate the isolation and pangs of homesickness felt by those who remained’. Collins observed that ‘every man seemed left to brood in solitary silence’. It was as if famine had thinned the colony to half its number and left those remaining to face a dreary future. The Sirius and Supply, after passing Lord Howe Island and the rock outcrop known as ‘Balls Pyramid’ on the 9th March reached Norfolk Island on the 13 th of that month; only eight days after leaving Sydney. After ten o'clock that morning, many of the male convicts from the Sirius were landed to the care of those marines who had been on the island under Lieutenant Creswell's command since 14th June 1789. These included the two marines who had accompanied King in February 1788, the seven who arrived there by the Golden Grove in October 1788 and the fourteen who had arrived on 14th June 1789 with Creswell in the Supply. With many of the convicts ashore, the marines began landing that afternoon, through dangerous surf, at half past one at Cascade Bay. During the landing Clark felt that Hunter acted uncivilly to Ross in pushing him off into a boat loaded with poultry and pigs. Reception arrangements ashore were non-existent. After Clark and others had walked five miles into town, they found that the accommodation, which Ross had said would be waiting for them, did not exist. On 19th March at noon, while attempting to land the stores, Hunter was maneuvering the Sirius in Sydney Bay when treacherous winds took control of the ship and wrecked it on ‘Ross Reef’. It was a disaster of major proportion: stores were jettisoned in the hope that she could be refloated. Many of the stores did float ashore, but the ship failed to budge. Clark took a raft through the heavy surf to save people. He was nearly drowned when a panic stricken convict, who could not swim, held on so tightly to him that the two almost perished, for which, when they reached shore, Clark took a cane from one of the sergeants and gave the half-drowned convict a thrashing, warning him that he would receive a daily repetition whenever Clark saw him during the next month.Once the cargo that could be saved had been retrieved, the marines settled down to duty on the island. The hardships which had faced them at Port Jackson were to be hardly lessened at Norfolk Island: rations were critically short. All officers had lost personal effects; and Ross had lost his personal papers. On 20th April, responding competently and decisively to the crisis Ross and the council reduced the meat ration by half a pound to 3 1/2 pounds (1.6 kg) per man per week. The inhabitants were allowed, however, to make up the loss by catching birds. A full stocktake of all rations revealed that only twelve weeks' stocks existed. Ross issued a proclamation in May fixing the weekly ration at 3 pounds (1.4 kg) flour, 1 1/2 pounds (680 g) beef or 17 ounces (480 kg) pork and 1 pound (454 g) rice. Children over one year received half rations, and those under one year received only 1 1/2 pounds flour and 1 pound rice per week.
When Clark went fishing on 21st April, he caught 56 large schnapper which he distributed amongst the marines and the officers of the Sirius. In the fortnight from 8th to 22nd May, 1,867 large schnappers were caught, enabling everyone on the island to be supplied ‘with a great allowance of fish’. Convicts and marines took it in turns to receive whatever fish was caught. Mutton birds also supplemented the meager rations. On the 9th May, for example, 4,783 were brought in which made the total to that date of more than 41,000 birds. This figure rose by the middle of June to 136,000. It is strange therefore that in spite of this abundance of food a good number of marines, seamen and convicts became sick. However, the prospect of starvation, which had been so real in March, was to pass. By May crops were established and they prospered in the temperate climate. An acre of land produced 167 bushels of potatoes. Not all seasons however were as prolific, and plagues of caterpillars frequently destroyed crops. When this happened, items of the staple diet were short: Clark mentioned that ‘in one period of six months neither he nor Ross had had a cup of tea or a glass of wine; breakfast consisted of dry bread and coffee made from burnt wheat, but they did not grumble for they felt themselves lucky even to be able to get that’. The marines were employed in a variety of field pioneering duties as Ross embarked on an extensive development programme. They constructed a trench to bring water nearer the town; they brought in thatch to cover barrack roofs; they dried out powder saved from the Sirius, and they felled timber for fashioning at the sawpits. Marines who were carpenters erected the corn mill to grind flour, whilst others prepared ground for the planting of potatoes and corn, and for the erection of huts. An indication of the extent of marine labour can be gained from the fact that almost every man in Captain Johnston's company in the month from 19th June to 17th July 1790, worked twenty-two days clearing and cultivating ground at Charlotte's Field. The produce from these exertions kept starvation at bay, though nothing could restore the basic food items and necessities of life lost from the Sirius. Shortages of these items continued for almost the whole term on the island. However, this was not permitted to deny observances of royal occasions on the island. On the King's birthday of 4th June 1790, in spite of the recent loss of Sirius, the people were allowed a holiday. The marines fired a ‘feu de joie’; the gentlemen dined with Major Ross; and "the greatest good cheer and harmony" existed among everyone. (Such was the loyalty to the crown that even when advance elements of the New South Wales Corps later arrived, both they and the marines fired volleys from their respective parade grounds.)
As late as February 1791, Ross, with every justification, was bringing examples of marine shortages to Phillip's attention. ‘Not one of them have a shoe to their feet, nor scarce a shirt to their backs’, he advised, and neither was there a fit bed nor a blanket among them. Not a drop of spirits had been issued for eight months. So few cooking utensils had been saved from the Sirius that each pot was shared by twelve men on a rotational basis; consequently it was often well into the night before some could cook their meal. So severe was their distress that more discontent and grumbling was evident than Ross had ever observed before. Such deprivations affected health. The marines were not themselves immune from crime. Clark was driven to exclaim that ‘there was no difference between soldier, sailor or convict when it came to stealing’, for not only had Captain Hunter's own marine servant been thieving the good captain's rum, but also Ross's servant, John Ascott, had stolen from his master as well. Ascott might well have not been responsible for his misdemeanour, because his unrequited love for a convict woman shortly sent him so insane that his violence necessitated his being placed in a straightjacket before being chained to a gun. The grumbling amongst the troops to which Ross had earlier referred continued to increase until 9th April 1791 when it culminated in an ugly scene bordering on mutiny. It arose over what the marines felt an inequity in their food supply as compared with that enjoyed by the convicts. In the previous January, Ross had cut the male convict ration by two pounds of flour a week and at the same time had reduced the full weekly ration to troops by a quarter. The convicts made up their loss from 'the vegetables which were growing prolifically in their gardens;’ the troops were reluctant to garden and consequently had to compensate their ration shortfall by buying vegetables from the entrepreneurial convicts. This was a situation which increasingly irritated the troops. Such was the groundswell of smoldering discontent that on the 9th, after an inflammatory address had been given by four ringleaders, the troops decided to refuse to collect their weekly rations from the public store on the grounds that the convicts were better off than they were. When it was pointed out that this was their own fault for not gardening, they merely murmured and uttered vague excuses, which led Ralph Clark to believe that their real intention was to test the authority of Major Ross. If that was so, Ross was not daunted by their challenge. He ordered Captain Johnston to tell the men that he would not again ask them to collect their rations and that at 1.30 p.m.; Johnston would call a ration parade to march to the store so that he could see ‘which man would dare to refuse’. Ross also ordered Johnston to take the added precaution, bearing in mind the sullen temper of the men, of disarming them before they set out. At 1.30 p.m. the test came. Johnston accompanied by Clark, Faddy and Creswell, went to the barrack yard, and ordered the men to obtain their ration bags and then fall in on parade. This display of determination was sufficient for some of the men, and they went to Johnston to tell him not only that they would obey his orders, but also that they regretted their previous refusal. Very quickly, the others capitulated and what Clark felt would have concluded in ‘a great deal of blood was avoided’. It had been a close thing, for the men were the ‘most mutinous’ with whom Clark had served; to him it had been one of the ‘most critical’ days of his life and his response to the fright he had received was to confide to his diary that if he could be despotic for three hours, he would hang the ringleaders and have the others draw lots to select every fifth man to suffer the same fate. The incident highlighted the growing strain, which the long and severe service was having on morale, and Clark identified this as the underlying cause, for he felt the sooner they left the island, the better. Even so, marine discipline appears to have been better than that of the New South Wales Corps whose Norfolk Island advance party of three officers and twenty-one men brought with it a noticeable rise in military offences. In the five month period from May to October 1791 the New South Wales Corps was forced to court martial eight soldiers, The first element of their relief, the New South Wales Corps, had arrived on the Supply on 1th April 1791. These had been followed by those on the Mary Ann on 15th August, the Salamander on 16th September, the Atlantic on 26th October, and the Queen on 2nd November. After the relief of the two units, Ross and his marines departed on the Queen for Port Jackson where they arrived on 5th December prior to embarking on HMS Gorgon eight days later. So ended the Norfolk Island period of their tour of duty. It had not been easy; it had started in near tragedy but gradually by the efforts and leadership of Ross, Clark and the marines generally, adversity had been turned into achievement. From the days in August 1790 when the unsupplemented stocks available on shore were 6,835 pounds flour, 320 pounds beef, 3,253 pounds pork, 500 pounds rice, and 200 bushels of wheat, all to feed 506 mouths, to those of their departure when even the piqued Governor King grudgingly had to acknowledge the promising aspect of crops and a wheat harvest of a thousand bushels, the marines' achievement in providing subsistence had been significant. When there is added to this the construction of two towns and their attendant infrastructure, the tour had been of significant service to the island. Their one weakness had again been in the area of human relations. The army/navy rivalry and, to a lesser extent than at Port Jackson, Ross's arrogance and his propensity to upset his own officers, had provided the unfortunate ingredients. On balance, however, Ross and the marines had been most successful at Norfolk Island. 1788. Thursday 24th January. Botany Bay. Sergeant James Scott RM, Sergeant of Marines, travelled to NSW on the First Fleet aboard the Prince of Wales, accompanied by his wife Jane. His daughter Elizabeth was born on the voyage out and his son William Boxell was born in Sydney in 1790. James Scott had married Jane Boxell in 1796 at Portsea, Hants. During the voyage, and intermittently during their stay in New South Wales, James kept a diary. This journal is now in the Dixson Library in Sydney as part of the Sir William Dixson bequest. It is believed to have come from the estate of a Miss Russell, a connection between John Russell and James Scott. The journal is written in a tall notebook, measuring 32 cm by 20.5 cm, the soft cardboard covers are much worn and rubbed, but it is now protected in the library by a chamois lined morocco folder in a dark morocco case, tooled in gold. The handwriting is large and looks clear and Scott expresses himself simply. However, his bad spelling and many alterations have made it difficult to transcribe some parts. Each page has a heading and there is a wide ruled margin in which are written the dates of entry. It is marvellous to have this record and also the diary of Private Easty of the Marines as it highlights what interested ‘the men’ as distinct from the officers. Like soldiers at all times they were interested in their own daily lives, in promotions and punishments, in food and grog and women. Not very much is known about Scott. The baptisms of the two children are recorded in the Registers of St Phillip’s Church and James Scott is mentioned as a witness to several civil court cases in the Minutes and Proceedings etc of the Bench of Magistrates of the County of Cumberland. One case involved Scott and his wife Jane when a soldier’s wife, Martha Davis is charged with scandalously abusing James Scott, a Serjt of Marines, & Jane Scott his wife, on Friday night the 15th instant. The case was heard on 23rd April 1791; in her defence Martha Davis accused Jane Scott of having thrown out Suspicions and Surmises of her conduct, suggesting that she had been gossiping, with or without foundation we do not know. The Scott family boarded the Gorgon transport on Monday 31st October 1791 to return to England and all were discharged at Spithead on Friday 1st June 1792. James Scott died at Portsmouth early in 1796 after serving as a squad sergeant. (sic) 1788. Thursday 24th January. Botany Bay. John Gowen was a Corporal of Marines on HMS Sirius. His grave is in the church yard of Christ Church (Anglican), Kiama NSW. The plates on the tomb top were later additions. The Kiama & District Historical Society in 1977 recorded the inscription that is no longer visible on the tomb top. 1788. Thursday 24th January. Botany Bay. Marine Daniel Stanfield was reputed to have come from an English naval family. He arrived with the First Fleet at Port Jackson Australia as a private in the Marines. Promoted to corporal, he married Alice, widow of Thomas Harmsworth, on Saturday 15th October 1791 at St Phillip’s Church, Sydney. In less than a month he was on duty at Norfolk Island. In 1794 he was discharged from the Marines and sworn in as constable and started to farm. He received two goats from Governor King, who described him as a deserving settler. In March Stanfield was robbed and petitioned, with other settlers, to Lieutenant Governor Gross for restoration of arms which they had both been deprived of by Government order. When the evacuation of Norfolk Island was planned, Governor King requested Stanfield to remain and encouraged him by offering additional land. However, keen and determined, Stanfield did not find life easy, and he sailed with his family in HMS City of Edinburgh, arriving in Hobart Town in October 1808. Next month he took up land at Green Point near Bridgewater and built a weatherboard house, which he valued at more than £2,000 (pounds), which stood for over a century. There Stanfield’s industry and enthusiasm brought better results than at Norfolk Island. By February 1825 he had been granted 1200 acres in widely separated areas, he had purchased 890 acres more and claimed to have 1,000 cattle, 800 sheep, 10 horses, a flour mill and other capital. His only grievances were that Michael Howe had raided his stockyard and other bushrangers had plundered his properties, though he was sometimes compensated by more land. The Stanfields, a large clan altogether, have had immense herds of wild cattle roaming all over this quarter of the Island and finding themselves limited, have driven hundreds to the sea coast. 1788. Thursday 24th January. Botany Bay. Marine Michael Murphy was born about 1760 at Wexford, Ireland, and his description as a man was 5’8” tall with dark completion, dark brown hair and grey eyes. When the Gorgon was in Port Jackson in 1791, Murphy did duty on board from Saturday 31st October to Friday 11th December. On Friday 6th April 1792, Murphy joined the NSW Corps, serving 5 years to Wednesday 5th April 1797, and receiving a 60 acre grant at Bankstown on Friday 6th April 1798. In January 1799 he shared a grant of 200 acres at Bankstown with Stephen Gilbert which was sold by January 1800 to Matthew Flinders. In 1800, he re-joined the NSW Corps. On Sunday 24th March 1805 Murphy was transferred to Port Dalrymple, VDL as a member of the 102nd NSW Corps with Colonel Paterson on the Lady Nelson. Among the passengers was Eliza Paterson, the wife of the Commandant; accompanying her, was her maid Ann (Hannah) Williams, a convict who had arrived in Sydney aboard the Nile 1800. The list of passengers on the Lady Nelson was extracted from HM Ship Buffalo’s muster roll, there being no separate list for Lady Nelson when she sailed from Port Jackson to Port Dalrymple in March 1805. As Archibald Murphy, Michael was married to Hannah Williams on Sunday 10th March 1811 by the Reverend Robert Knopwood in Launceston Tasmania. On the same day their four daughters were baptised, Ellinor (b 1804 Sydney), Elizabeth, Mary and Jane. The father’s name recorded in St Johns’ Parish records was Michael. Two more children were to follow, Michael (1812) and Maria (1814).When in 1810, the NSW Corps was recalled to Sydney Murphy transferred to the NSW Veteran Company. But in 1814 sees Murphy back in Parramatta and then at Emu Plains, until his death at the age of 63 on Friday 10th January 1823. He is buried at St Matthew’s Windsor. The registration of his burial details records him as Archibald Murphy. Michael Murphy had served a total of 37 years and 321 days in the Marines and the NSW Corps. 1788. Thursday 24th January. Botany Bay. Thomas O’Brien was a 23 year old Marine on the Scarborough and came to Australia as part of the First Fleet. He had enlisted as a private in the Marines on a 3 year contract in 1787. Some special incentives to join were that they could discharge after three years' service with a sign on fee of 2 guineas ($4) and a daily pay rate of 7 cents plus 5 cents clothing and food allowance. Lieutenant King on Friday 15th February 1788, at Governor Phillips direction, 3 weeks after the First Fleet landing at Sydney Cove had taken a party of 9 male, 6 female convicts, 2 marines, 3 seamen, 3 officers and a surgeon on the Supply to establish a camp on Norfolk Island 13 days away by sail. It was thought the better soil and climate on the Island would supplement the food to supply the Colony at Sydney Cove, the tall pine trees could be used to make new masts and the flax for new rigging for the British fleet which had been severely depleted in the war against America. By October 1791 Thomas had completed his 3 year contract with the Marines and so in November 1791 he elected to stay in the Colony and sailed on the Atlantic with convicts and 28 other Marines who had been discharged at Port Jackson to become free settlers on 60 acre grants on Norfolk Island. In early August 1790, eight weeks after landing at Sydney Cove, Susannah was among 194 male and female convicts transferred to Norfolk Island in Surprise. She brought with her a young child, Susannah who had almost certainly been born on the voyage from England. The O’Brien family were successful farmers on their 60 acre allotment and by 1808 they had 8 children, 6 sheep, and 72 pigs with 140 bushels of maize in store. They were regarded as first class settlers. Thomas O’ Brien his wife Susannah and 8 children were shipped to Hobart on the City of Edinburgh on Saturday 3rd September 1808 along with approximately 250 others. 1788. Sunday 10th February. The first European child born in Australia was the daughter of Marine Sergeant Samuel Bacon, and his wife Jane Bacon. She returned to England on HMS Gorgon with her parents on Monday 26th November 1792. 1788. Wednesday 9th
July. The number of the Marines serving in New South Wales (NSW) in Australia,
was 211 men including 160 Privates.
1788. October. When Major Robert Ross learned that a detachment of Marines
was to guard the First Fleet on its way to Botany Bay, he was among the
first to volunteer. For the 46 year old Scot, this was the best thing
that had happened to the Corps since its involvement in the glorious
action at Bunkers Hill at the beginning of the American War. As he wrote to his patron, Evan Nepean, Under Secretary for the
Colonies: "A good performance at Botany Bay will rescue the corps from
the obscurity in which it has been for so long." (Sic) The detachment owed its unpopularity almost entirely to Major Ross, to
his personal touchiness and irascibility and to his near-insane
determination to protect the honour of the corps whatever the cost. A newly organised Marine Corps, including the very young Second
Lieutenant Robert Ross, was in the vanguard of a British force under
General Wolfe which scaled the Heights of Abraham and took Quebec from
the French in 1759. But the Marines were everywhere in the Seven Years
War - in Canada, India, the West Indies, even in the far-off
Philippines, where 300 of Britain's sea-soldiers helped capture Manila
from the Spanish in 1762. Even before the Fleet left Portsmouth, however, he saw how different
the reality was going to be. All the power was being invested in
Governor Phillip, While Ross was designated Lieutenant-Governor,
Phillip was the one who would make the important decisions, and
Phillip, as he quickly made clear didn't mean to consult Major Ross
about anything. - He was found guilty, but the sentence was rather unusual. Private Hunt
was required to ask Private Dempsey's pardon before the whole
battalion, or else receive 100 lashes from the drummers on his bare
back. The major was speechless when he heard of the sentence, but not
for long. No soldier had the right to choose his own punishment, he
shouted at Tench. So, Ross had those five arrested as well and applied to Governor
Phillip to have them tried for insubordination. Phillip managed to put
him off for the moment, claiming he would have to refer the matter to
England first. The behaviour of Captain James Meredith was another source of
embarrassment. One evening, Captain Meredith was rolling home, drunk
as usual, down Bridge St when he was tempted to visit 17 year old Sarah
Bellamy, a well-known prostitute. Constable John Harris made sure the girl had a chance to tell her side
of the story and, as a growing crowd listened in sympathy, Meredith
decided not to go on with the case. Hunt was the same man who had luckily escaped 100 lashes 12 months
before. This time, he turned King's evidence and described how with six
others, he had had the keys altered so they fitted any of three locks. Those who didn't farm, Marines as well as convicts spent their time
catching schnapper and hunting mutton-birds and the haul was
prodigious-41,000 birds in three months,1867 large schnapper in a
typical fortnight. 1788. Monday 10th
November. The number of the Marines serving in NSW, was 196 men of all ranks,
including 160 privates, plus 12 men absent.
1788. Upon the British
First Fleet arrival there was no provision made for policing the new
settlement. Arthur Phillip’s commission empowered him to, "Appoint of
constables and other necessary officers and ministers in our said territory and
its dependencies for the better administration of justice and putting the law
in execution". However, policing in Britain was less than proficient, so
he had no model to base the establishment of a law enforcement agency upon.
Watchmen, called Charlie’s after King Charles II who introduced them, were the
first paid keepers of the peace in London, but they were rather ineffectual,
and it was a job for old men. Charlie’s were often ridiculed by the people. The
Marines who accompanied the First Fleet refused to carry out the duties of a
police force. Their Commander Major Robert Ross stated that his men were
soldiers, not prison guards, and it was insulting to His Majesty’s Regiments to
expect them to act in such a role. However, they did agree to guard the
settlement and patrol at night. Governor Phillips appointed freeman James Smith
as a peace officer, but he retired after a brief period, as he was deemed too
old and infirm to be effective.
1788 - 1850. The
English deported over 162,000 convicts to Australia in 806 ships.
1788 - 1930’s. The
Australian Frontier Wars were a series of conflicts that were fought between
Indigenous Australians and European settlers that spanned a total of 146 years.
The first fighting took place several months after the landing of the First
Fleet on Saturday 26th January 1788. The last clashes is recorded to have
occurred as late as 1934.
1789. Four companies of Marines, comprising 213 men, commanded by Major Robert Ross, sailed with the First Fleet for Australia. They remained in the Colony until their relief by the New South Wales Corps in 1791. 1789. Thursday 9th
July. Royal Visit to Portland Roads.
1789. Tuesday 18th
August. Royal Visit to Plymouth Sound.
1789. Thursday 24th
December. Loss of the Guardian.
1789. Scarcely a night
passed when there was not a theft of some kind. After six Marines were executed
during March 1789 for stealing provisions when the colony was close to
starvation, it became obvious that some form of organised law enforcement was
needed. In July 1789 convict John Harris went to Collins with a proposal for a
night watch to be established from among the convicts to deal with all those
found away from their huts at improper hours. Collins commented that: "It
was to be wished, that a watch established for the preservation of public and
private property had been formed of free people, and that necessity had not
compelled us in selecting the first members of our little police, to be
appointed from a body of men in whose eyes, it could not be denied, the
property of individuals had never been sacred. However, there was no choice
convicts who had any property were themselves interested in defeating such
practises as theft". This first night watch consisted of 12 well behaved
convicts and was split into four divisions. The Rocks watch patrolled from the
hospital to the observatory, approximately Globe Street to Dawes Point. In
November 1789, Collins wrote that the night watch had been very effective,
there were fewer crimes and the culprits were usually caught. On Monday 1st
February 1790, Governor Phillip advised Lord Sydney of "the institution of
a night watch to control robberies (particularly of vegetables and poultry) was
immediately effective” and that there was “no robbery in three months".
The night watch were held in "fear and detestation" by their fellow
convicts. Convicted pick-pocket George Barrington arrived in Sydney in 1791 and
was almost immediately appointed a police constable guarding the colony’s
stores. He later became Chief Constable at Parramatta.
1789 to 1792. The Third
Anglo Mysore War was a conflict that took place in South India between the
Kingdom of Mysore and the East India Company and its allies that included
France and the Maratha Empire.
1789. The start of the
French Revolution that took place from 1789 to 1799.
1789. The Plymouth
order Book. The Lords Commissioners of the Admiralty do not recognise a Light
Infantry. Saying Officers may wear the appointments, if they have the ordinary
ones when required.
1790. The arrival of the first ship the Lady Juliana of the Second Fleet was a cause of much excitement in the new colony. Amongst the correspondence from the homeland was the orders for the formation of the New South Wales Corps, and encouragement for the Marines to become settlers. 1790. Saturday 6th
March. HMS Sirus and HMS Supply having on board 65 officers and men, with 5
women and children belonging to the Marine detachment and the civil department,
116 male and 67 female convicts, with 27 children, sailed for that small but
beautiful, fertile Island of Norfolk. The Governor had sized on the opportunity
of getting rid of his uncongenial Lieutenant Governor, by giving him a
commission as Commandant of Norfolk Island, and it is quite possible that Ross
himself was glad enough to go.
1790. June. Five of the
six ships comprising the ‘The Second Fleet’ arrived at Sydney. The sixth HMS
Guardian had been so severely damaged by a collision with and Iceberg that she
had to be beached in Table Bay, narrowly escaping total loss.
1790. Thursday 10th
June. In a despatch from Sydney Australia Governor Hunter writes to the Duke of
Portland he states “I shall now only trouble your Grace further by mentioning
that there are a considerable number of the Marines, who were the first troops
sent to this country, and who upon the recall of that Corps from hence were
allowed to enlist for a five years in the New South Wales Corps, some of them
having completed this last engagement, are desirous of settling in the country
and are entitled to a double proportion of land in consequence of a double tour
of duty.”(Sic)
1790. December. The ship Lady Juliana reached Sydney Cove. This was the first ship to arrive from England since the First Fleet. She carried 226 female convicts. This arrival was an important milestone for Thomas Lucas, because among the convicts a woman was the spinster Ann Howard. She had been convicted at the Old Bailey and sentenced to seven years transportation. 1790. Vancouver's
Expedition in the Discovery.
1790. An empty bottle is
sometimes referred to as a 'Dead Marine'. The origin of the term is somewhat
obscure, but the following story is told to account for the expression. This is
one of the few Sailor expressions that can actually be traced to a specific
person on a specific date.
William IV who was known as the 'Sailor King' was the third son
of George III, he was born Prince William Henry. In 1789 he became Duke of
Clarence. As a youth he joined the Navy as a midshipman and rose through the
ranks. Someone in his social position who might be expected to become a Rear Admiral
through patronage. Which he did through true merit.
Shortly after receiving his promotion to Rear Admiral in 1790,
His Highness was at dinner on board one of his fleet's ships. He ordered the
steward to remove the 'Dead Marines' to make room for new bottles.
There was also in the mess a dignified elderly Major of Marines
who promptly took exception to this remark, and rising from the table asked,
"May I respectfully ask your Royal Highness why you apply the name of the
Corps, to which I have the honour to belong, to those empty bottles? The Duke,
with tact and quick wit, replied; "I call them Marines because they are
honest fellows who have done their duty and are now quite ready to do it
again." This reply somewhat mollified the indignant officer of Marines.
An alternative derivation comes from the animosity between the
Navy and the Marines. The Royal Naval seaman says that like an empty bottle a Marine
is of no use to anyone, and if dropped over the side in the position of
attention would float upright because of the size of his boots. The Marine's
retort is that like an empty bottle he is always ready for duty again.
Although some have been known to suggest that the term is
derived from the fact that an empty bottle always floats head up, and it has
been rumored that a Marine will do this even when dead, owing to the
traditional size of his feet and boots. I think the former explanation is
certainly the most just and decidedly the most apt. It is supposed that the
Duke of Clarence made use of this term on one occasion and the event is commemorated
in verse by Colonel W. Drury, R.
The story also caught the imagination of the Army officers. They
wanted their soldiers to be held in the same favorable view. They adapted the
term for their use, changing it to 'Dead Soldiers'.
Since it's a more nautical term, 'Dead Marines' is usually refer
to freshly emptied wine bottles, by Naval ratings and Royal Marines.
This same Duke of Clarence is said to have added the words 'By
Land or Sea' to the badge of the Royal Marines.
1790 - 1805. The Marines
uniform of the day. (Taken from 'Britain's Sea Soldiers:
Vol 1 by Cyril Field RMLI.)
1791. Tuesday 16th
August. Loss of Pandora.
1791. Wednesday 16th November. Chatham Orders. All the Officers, N.C. Officers and Private Men are to hold themselves in readiness to turn out a minute's notice to march where they may be ordered to receive Their R. Highness the Duke and Duchess of York; and uniformly dressed; and those that are unfit to join the Battalion are not to be straggling about the streets on any account. 1791. November. Phoenix
took Resolu.
1791. Thursday 18th
December. After 18 months service in Norfolk Island, major Ross returned to
Sydney, and with the greater part of Marines left for England on board
HMS Gorgon leaving behind only one Captainand Lieutenant, three 1st
Lieutenants, the Judge Advocate (Collins), eight Non Commissioned Officers, two
Drummers and fifty Privates.
1791. On a memorial
being presented, an invalid establishment was formed, allowing the following
officers to retire, one Commandant on 24d per day, one Lieutenant Colonel, one
Major, and twelve Captains, six First Lieutenants, and three Second
Lieutenants.
1792. Early in the year. The most important matter that employed the attention of the House of Commons in the early part of the year 1792, was a message from his Majesty, presented by Mr. Pitt on the 28th of January, which in fact announced the commencement of hostilities against France. 1792. April. An attack was made upon the island of Tobago by vice-admiral Laforej^ in the Trusty of 50 guns, and some small craft, conveying 470 troops, including 32 marines under major Richard Bright, from Barbadoes. The landing was effected on the 14th; and on the 15th, after assaulting the fort of Scarborough, which was garrisoned by 200 men under a lieutenant-colonel of the french 32nd regiment, the island became again a dependency of Great Britain. An attempt was next made on Martinique by rear-admiral Gardner with three ships of the line and a fleet of transports, having on board 1100 british, and 800 french-royalist troops, who were landed on the 16th and 17th; and on the 18th the united forces moved forward in two columns to the attack, the two batteries defending the town of St. Pierre. Owing to some confusion among the royalists they fired upon each other, and then retreated to the place of debarkation, followed by the English; and the admiral was compelled to re-embark in great haste, whilst many hundreds, who had espoused the royalist cause, took refuge on board the ships, to avoid the cruel vengeance of their adversaries. The revolted state of the inhabitants in St. Domingo induced the better disposed to seek for british protection ; and in conse- quence of information brought to commodore Ford, commanding the naval forces at Jamaica in the 50-gun ship Europa, and some small frigates, that officer arrived near the harbour of Cape Nicolas Mole on the 21st of September; and finding that the inhabitants were apprehensive of an attack from the mulattoes and blacks, the commodore sent on shore terms of capitulation similar to those agreed upon at the surrender of Jeremie. Soon after daylight the next morning this proposal was returned, duly executed; and the Europa having proceeded to the anchorage, the town and its extensive dependencies surrendered to his britannic Majesty. The marines of the Europa, under major Robinson, were the only british force on shore for several days in this important service; and they continued there until the arrival of troops from Jamaica. The first encounter since the commencement of the war was on the 13th of May, when the 32-gun frigate Iris fell in with the french frigate Citoyenne Frangaise of 32 guns, off Bordeaux, and after engaging her from 6h. 30m. p.m. until 8 a.m., the stranger hauled her tacks on board, and shot a-head. At this moment, when the Iris was preparing to make sail in pursuit, her foremast, main top-mast, and mizen-mast went over the side. The Iris had 4 men killed, and 32 wounded; whilst the enemy sustained a loss of 15 killed, and 37 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1792. Wednesday 12th
September. Trial of some of the Bounty mutineers at Portsmouth.
1792. Thursday 13th September. The battering ships took their stations between the new and old mole, parallel with the rock, and about half a mile distant from it. The attention of general Elliot was principally directed to the effect of the red-hot shot upon the battering ships, but at the same time the whole peninsula seemed to be overwhelmed by the torrents of fire which poured upon it. About two o'clock in the morning, the admiral's ship was observed to be on fire, and shortly afterwards a second ship was in flames. Through the whole night of the 13th the fire was continued by the garrison without intermission, and when daylight appeared, a dreadful scene presented itself; the flames continued to rage on board the battering ships, and the men were seen imploring pity and assistance. The governor having humanely ordered a cessation of the cannonade, the boats from the rock assisted in rescuing the Spaniards from the destruction which was at hand; and by the intrepidity of captain Curtis of the navy, and his gallant followers, above 400 of the enemy were extricated from their perilous situation. Nine battering ships blew up, and the tenth was destroyed by the British. The impression made on the enemy by the resistance of the garrison is strongly depicted in the following extract of a letter from a french officer: — " The eye is fatigued with the sight, and the heart, is rent with the groans of the dying and wounded. Their number makes me thrill with horror; and I am told that in other parts of the lines, not within my view, the number is still greater." The loss of the garrison was comparatively small: the whole number between the 9th of August to the 17th of October, being 65 slain, and the wounded 388; nor was the danger done to the works very considerable. 1792. Friday 14th September. The Rainbow of 44 guns, captain Trollope, cruising off the Isle of Bas, captured the french 40 gun frigate Hebe, after a short action, in which the french ship had 5 killed, and several wounded; but the Rainbow sustained no injury, and had only one man killed. While the fleet under earl Howe was equipping at Spithead to proceed to the relief of Gibraltar, the Royal George of 108 guns was careened, that some defects under water might be repaired. The ship, as usual on coming into port, was crowded with people from the shore; and among these were many wives and families resident in the neighbourhood of Portsmouth. In this situation, about ten in the morning on the 29th of August, while rear-admiral Kempenfelt was writing in his cabin, a sudden squall of wind threw the ship upon her broadside: the ports being open, and the sudden motion of the cannon probably increasing the shock, she almost instantly filled with water and sank. The rear-admiral; Mr. Saunders, first-lieutenant; Mr. Waghorne, 5th lieutenant; major John Graham, first-lieute- nants Richard Graham and Adam Currie, and second-lieutenant William Smith of the marines, the master, carpenter, surgeon, three master's mates, and all the midshipmen except four, with above 800 persons, are supposed to have perished. Upwards of 300 persons, including captain Waghorne, were saved. The Royal George was launched in 1 755, and was a favourite ship, having carried the flag of admiral Boscawen and of lord Hawke on the 20th of November 1759, when he defeated the french fleet under Conflans in Quiberon bay. The honourable captain James Luttrell, in the Mediator of 44 guns, when cruising offFerrol, on the 12th of December fell in with a squadron of five ships of war bound to Port-au-Prince, consisting of PEugene of 36 guns, an american brig of 14 guns, the Menagere, a large ship en flute, mounting 30 guns, laden with stores and ammunition; next to this ship was placed the Alexander, 24 guns, under american colours, and the nearmost of their line was the Dauphin Royal of 28 guns. At 10 a. m. the enemy opened their fire, as the Mediator bore down upon them; and on their being obliged to tack and wear, the british ship was enabled to close with her opponents; upon which the brig and the Dauphin Royal stood away under a crowd of sail. At eleven the Mediator cut off' the Alexander from her consorts, and pouring in her broadside, compelled the enemy to strike her colours. The other two ships, after firing a few guns, made off before the wind. About noon, as soon as the prisoners were exchanged, captain Luttrell went in pursuit of the Menagere and Eugene; but the latte having separated, her consort was pursued until 9 p. m., when the Menagere, being within gun-shot, hauled down her colours. 1792. Monday 19th November. Sounds Within the womb of American liberty, was partly contained that revolution in France, which, after a long and sanguinary struggle, has not as yet accomplished any permanent system. It is not my task to retrace its extensive causes, and it would be presumptuous to anticipate its final issue. In this, reason, unguided by precedents, is soon lost in the labyrinths of speculation. The narrow views that had influenced so great a reduction at the peace of 1783, were bitterly apparent at the commencement of hostilities. In every contest our enemies begin with superior advantages, from their despotic means. Impress is precarious and slow compulsive registration enforced by terror, brings forth a host at once. It is to the faithful Marine Soldier who knows not the meaning of desertion, that the nation, under such sudden emergencies, is often obliged to have recourse, in equipping as well as manning her fleets; for it is not in human nature to place confidence in that man who has been constrained to serve, and who recognises not either a voluntary will, or a sacred obligation to discharge his allotted duties. It has always been remarked, that the corps of Marines recruit more successfully in every part of our isles, where their nature is ascertained, than any other under his Majesty. From this circumstance must have originated the motive of low bounties being given by its parties in 1793, while those of the line, and other departments were considerably higher. At this period of surrounding danger, the liberal patriotism of the town of Manchester was highly conspicuous, and gave a local spur to access in strengthening the neglected ranks of the Marine corps. Owing to an inadequate establishment, from the cause assigned, many ships put to sea with only half a complement of Marines, while others had none at all. What prevented Capt. Faulkener, in the Venus, from consummating a gallant action by victory, but this deficiency? In many cases, regiments of the line were substituted; an alternative which can only be the offspring of necessity, but not the suggestion of public good. St. Pierre and Micquelon also soon became easy conquests. Such are the crouded and brilliant instances of this war, that I cannot venture upon a minute detail of any or render justice to their merits. Untrained to the courtly habits of life, uninstructed in the arts of diplomacy, the world usually attaches to him no embellishments of character, but professional bravery, uncorruptible zeal, impressive unadorned manners. The Nation, however, could not have had a more dignified representative, a cooler agent, or a more indefatigable servant than Lord Hood upon so trying an occasion, and amidst such mingled and arduous duties. His intercourse with the deputies from different departments in the South of France, was guided by wisdom and led to success, while his appeals to their community breathed a well-timed humanity towards that oppressed land. The Marines of the fleet were dispersed over the different posts of defence, some of which were cannonaded by the enemy, daily increasing in numbers. Directed by genius, the laurel was obtained, and its value enhanced by a very trifling loss, while that of the French exceeded 1400 killed and wounded; Lieutenant Carter, of Marines, was amongst the English wounded. One of the most brilliant events of this checquered warfare, although unnoticed in any of the official details of it, and generally unknown, was meritedly attached to Lieutenant (afterwards Captain) Thomas Nailor, who was entrusted with the defence of a fort, having under him a little garrison of 120 men, principally Marines. A body of 2000 French moved on to attack him upon the morning of a day, with which I am uninformed as to date, under cover of a fog, and sanguine in the hope of surprising him. But he was on the alert and prepared to receive them. With a thoughtful but unshaken valour he awaited the onset, ordering his little band to reserve their fire, until the republicans were close, and to maintain it by platoons; but by no means in a scattered form. A Neapolitan Lieutenant Colonel had thrown himself into the fort when on the eve of its being attempted, but he fell early in the conflict. After repeated essays to carry it with those superior numbers, the French relinquished the field with the loss of nearly 400 killed and wounded; casting back an eye of disappointment, mingled with admiration, of their undaunted opponents. That young man is now no more. Owing to bad health, he retreated from public to private life, both of which he adorned by modest merit, the mildest manners, and most intrinsic worth. The final destiny of man, but recently closed his life unstained by dishonour. Jealous feuds were apparent in the breast of the Spanish Commander, Don Langara, early in October. It has since appeared that he spoke the sentiments of his court, which was basely negociating with the authorized agents of the diabolical Robespierre. Every trifling incident was seized as a subject far contention, and the subsequent conduct of the Spanish troops warrants the suspicion that this influence was general. The address of Lord Hood, under this dilemma, was great and manly. Towards the close of November, the French having opened against Fort Malbousket, and their shells also reaching the town, it was requisite to dislodge them from the ground they held. A body of 2300, under Gen. Dundas, of which the Marines composed a part, advanced against it, under many obstructions, on the 30th, drove the enemy from it, but, under an ill judged impetuosity, rushed onwards, instead of maintaining the post they had gained. The republicans gathering in numbers, in turn recovered all, and took Gen. O'Hara prisoner, after he was wounded, and had used the utmost endeavours to rally our Soldiers. This Officer foresaw not the unfortunate ardency but had arrived at the post in order to arrange its defence. He unhappily fell a sacrifice to his overstrained zeal. It was supposed that Lieutenants John Williams, Barry, and Lynn, with 71 Marines, besides other gallant companions of the British Army, had fallen sacrifices in defending the posts of Mulgrave and Fort Pharon, but all the former and many of the latter rejoined, after having been prisoners, who now live ornaments to their corps. In whatever quarter of the globe we cast an eye each continued to witness the exertions of the Marine Soldier. The convulsions at St. Domingo called aloud for British protection, whither an expedition sailed from Jamaica, under Commodore Ford. Proceeding first to Jeremie, it entered into terms; after which the Europa, carrying his broad pendant, went to Cape Nicola Mole, where she arrived on the 22d of September. On the following day, matters having been arranged, Captain Robinson, an Officer of distinguished merit and abilities, was landed with 50 Marines, to whom the Commodore granted the Brevet rank of Major and invested him with the command of its garrison. This gentleman acquitted himself with so much credit to himself that, when superseded in this important key to St. Domingo by Lieutenant Colonel Dansey, everything had been so properly conducted, that no trouble accrued to his successor, in the adjustments usually consequent upon such events. Commodore Ford gave his cordial approbation of the firm and regular conduct of the Seamen and Marines of his squadron, in the most unequivocal language, and their steadiness through every allotted duty, in that destructive clime, was uniformly observed. The operations of the squadron and army, in the East, were most active and early. Pondicherry, and many subordinate places surrendered without much resistance, owing to the zealous intelligence conveyed by Mr. Baldwin, British Consul, in Egypt, of the commencement of hostilities. 1792. Tuesday 11th
December. The last of the Marines left Sydney (NSW) with Governor Phillip on
his ship HMS Atlantic.
1792. Saturday 15th
December. A number of Marines remained in Australia as settlers and in a
despatch from Governor Phillip, these included 8 at Parramatta and 31 at
Norfolk Island, while others remained in Sydney, some had died and six had been
executed.
1792. Lodging money was allowed at the following rates: commandants 20s, per week, field-officers 12s., captains 8s., and subalterns 6s. The non-commissioned officers and privates obtained the privilege of allotting. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.)
1792. By the Benevolent
Act of 1792 Non-Commissioned Officers and Private Marines were allowed the
privilege of allotting a portion of their pay (usually a moiety) to their
wives, families, or others, which, till that period, was confined to the Seamen
alone.
Immediately after embarkation, he who has a relative
or a friend to whom he inclines to allot such a part, should execute this
instrument, which the Captain of the ship he may belong to, will forward to the
Navy Board; the Treasurer of which, authenticates the ticket and transmits it
to the person for whose benefit it is designed.
The Receiver General of Land Tax, Collectors of Customs or Excise, and Clerks of the Checque, are officially obliged to pay these allowances to the holder of it, every four weeks, and should no money be in hand for the purpose, one or other must name a day of recall within a fortnight, under a penalty, as likewise if any deduction shall be made from the net sum. Tickets of allotment are irrevocable by the grantor, while he lives and is in public pay, unless he shews a very solid cause for cancelling them. If a wife who holds one, having children under fourteen, shall die, the fact must be attested by the Minister and Church Wardens of the parish, a person named who undertakes to receive their future allowances, and all the circumstances thus established must be remitted to the Navy Board for its sanction. He who becomes the representative ought to appear in person to receive such monies, unless prevented by sickness. But should a wife die (leaving children of the above description) and if no steps are taken or any claims made for their benefit, within six months, such allotments become void, and they will in future be paid either to the grantor himself, or his heirs and executors after his decease. Those who hold such tickets may always be assured of the friends who gave them being alive, up to the date of the latest payment, as the Navy Board never fails to acquaint those Agents who have been accustomed to issue the money for allotments, with every death that happens; each of whom is bound, under a penalty, to acknowledge the receipt of such an intimation within two days. The same forms are observed in Ireland, where allotments are paid by the Collectors or Commissioners of Revenue. All enquiries concerning the situation or destinies of distant relatives serving in the Royal Marines when embarked on board of ship, should be preferred to the Navy Board, Somerset Place, London, and through its present Secretary, (R. A. Nelson,) or whoever may succeed him, as the returns of ships are transmitted to that office, in which the Marines are included. In order to identify the Soldier, about whom an enquiry is made it is necessary to hand, at the same time, the number of his divisional company, as well as that of his allotment ticket, if he has granted one. Successful reference may also be had to the division, where he is attached, by addressing a letter, "On his Majesty's service," to the Adjutant of it; always remarking the number of his Company. Wills, or letters of Attorney, when executed on board of ship, must be attested by the Captain, and one or more of the signing Officers. They are not valid unless they are revocable. The Captain acquaints the Navy Board in his ship's return when any Seaman or Marine under his command has made his testament, which is an evidence of the justice of future claims on his property in case of decease. Any will made by either, after his discharge from the service, or any power of Attorney affecting pay, prize-money, or other property acquired by him, while on board his Majesty's fleet, if executed within the bills of London or Westminster, must be attested by an Officer appointed by the Treasurer of the Navy, where wages are paid. If either a will or power of Attorney, as above, is made in England or Ireland, it must be witnessed by the Minister and Church Wardens; if in Scotland, by the Clergyman and two Elders of that parish in which the executor of such an instrument may reside. Any Marine dying on board intestate upon information of his decease reaching his friends, he who is entitled to his effects must give in a petition to the Inspector of Wills, (J. Bedingfield, Esq) Somerset Place, London, or whoever may be his successor, stating the name of such Marine, to what part of the King's dominions he belonged, the name of the ship or ships in which he served, the applicant's own name, at full length, his relation to, or connexion with the defunct, what other kindred the deceased may have alive to the best of the petitioner's knowledge, and where resident. This must be certified by two respectable housekeepers of the parish, town, or place where the applicant dwells, who must aver that they believe such account to be true, which is also to be attested by the Minister and Church Wardens, that those subscribing witnesses live in the parish and are of honest repute. 1792. Lodging money was allowed at the following rates: Commandants 20 shillings per week, Field Officers 12 shillings. Captains 8 shillings and Subalterns 6 shillings. The non-commissioned Officers and Privates obtained the privilege of allotting. 1792. Although no
complete Marine units were garrisoned in Australia between 1792 and 1824 a few
individual Marines and Officers were attached to garrison Regiments in NSW
during that period. Those who choose to stay after having completing their
military service and in some cases having married, were give crown land to
settle on and build a home. Many Australians today can trace their ancestors
back to these Marines.
1792 - 1824. At that time, private Marines enlisted for life although discharge by purchase was allowed on payment of 10 guineas. Those who went to NSW, however, had the option of discharge after three years. Recruits were paid a 2 guinea bounty as an inducement to join. 1792 - 1824. Although no complete Marine units were garrisoned in Australia, a few individual Marine officers were attached to garrison regiments in NSW during that period. 1793. Saturday 2nd
February. War declared by France against Great Britain. It meant that for the
next twenty three years the Marines were in action around the world. At the
start of the war the Marines had 70 companies However, the establishment was
raised to 9,815 men.
1793. Wednesday 2nd January. The 32-gun frigate Magicienne, captain Thomas Graves, in company with the Endymion frigate, escorting a convoy to the West Indies, chased two suspicious sail. At 12 h. 30 m. a. m., the Magicienne opened her fire, and after a few broadsides her opponent surrendered. The Magicienne then stood on, and brought the headmost ship to action, which continued until 2 h. 30 m. p. m., when the british ship's mizen-mast and main-topmast came down, and in another five minutes the fore and main-masts followed. The Endymion soon arrived up, cheered, and passed on in pursuit of the enemy, which was the Sybille of 40 guns, having about 300 supernumerary seamen on board, bound to the Chesapeake. The Magicienne lost 3 officers, and 16 seamen and marines killed; her first-lieutenant, 1 midshipman, her boatswain, lieutenants Henry Reddish Furzer and William Minto, of the marines, and 29 wounded, out of a crew of 189 men. The fleet under vice-admiral Barrington, consisting of twelve sail of the line, had nearly reached Ushant on their way down Channel on the 5th of April, when several vessels hove in sight, and the signal was immediately made for a general chase. About sunset the strangers were discovered to be three or four ships of war, and seventeen sail of convoy. At half-past nine the sternmost ship, on perceiving that the Fourdroyant of 80 guns, captain Jervis (afterwards earl St. Vincent), was gaining fast upon her, bore away, and was pursued by the british fleet. It came on to blow fresh, which occasioned the Fourdroyant to separate from the squadron, and at 12 h. 47m. a.m. on the 6th she brought the french 74-gun ship Pegase to close action and continued to engage her until 1 h. 30 m. a. m., when she laid her on board on the larboard quarter, and compelled the french ship to surrender, having 80 men killed and 40 wounded, whilst the Fourdroyant had only 3 men wounded. The officers of marines of the Fourdroyant were, first-lieutenant JohnHobbs, second-lieutenant Richard Murphy. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.)93 1793. Wednesday 13th
March. Scourge captured Sans Culotte.
1793. Friday 15th
March. Syren, and convoy engaged batteries at Moordyke.
1793. Sunday 14th
April. Phaeton captured General Dumourier.
1793. Monday 15th
April. The capture of Tobago. The British forces numbered 400 men that included
Major Richard Bright, 1 Lieutenant 2 Sergeants, 1 Drummer and 27 Private
Marines.
1793. Monday 13th May.
Iris engaged Citoyenne Francaise.
1793. Monday 27th of May. The Venus of 32 guns, captain J. Faulknor, when one hundred and twenty-five leagues to the westward of Cape Finisterre, discovered the french 36-gun frigate Semillante. At 8 a.m. the Venus opened her fire, and a warm action was maintained on both sides, as the ships gradually approached, until 10 a.m., when they were scarcely half a cable's length asunder. By this time the Semillante had suffered severely in her masts and rigging, with a loss of 12 men killed, and 20 wounded; and when the Venus was endeavouring to run her alongside, a stranger, under french colours, hove in sight to leeward, on which the Semillante bore up to join her. This terminated the action, and the Venus hauled to the wind as well as her crippled state would permit, having sustained a loss of 2 killed, and 20 wounded. A party of the 2nd regiment of foot was serving as marines on board the Venus. The consort of the Semillante was the twelve-pounder 36-gun frigate Cleopatre, captain Mullon, of which we have to give a further account, by relating her proceedings in the ensuing month, when cruising off the Start. On the 18th of June, at 4 a.m., the Cleopatre was discovered by the Nymphe of 36 guns, eighteen-pounders, captain Edward Pellew, and immediately chase; but at 5 a. m., finding her adversary closing with her fast, the Cleopatre hauled to the wind and, under top-sails, resolutely awaited her approach. At 6h. 15m. a.m., when within hail, both ships opened their fire, and the action continued with great fury until 7 a.m., both frigates running before the wind. The wheel and mizen-mast of the Cleopatre having been shot away, she fell on board of her antagonist's head and stern; and at 7h. 10m. a.m. was boarded by a party from the Nymphe, who struck the french national colours. The Cleopatre had her captain killed, and her total loss amounted to 63 killed and wounded. On board the Nymphe 23 men were killed; lieutenant John Whitaker of the marines, and 26 men wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.)
1793. Monday 27th May.
Hytzna taken by French squadron.
1793. Monday 27th May. The Venus of 32 guns, captain J. Faulknor, when one hundred and twenty-five leagues to the westward of Cape Finisterre, discovered the french 36-gun frigate Semillante. At 8 a.m. the Venus opened her fire, and a warm action was maintained on both sides, as the ships gradually approached, until 10 a.m., when they were scarcely half a cable's length asunder. The consort of the Semillante was the twelve-pounder 36-gun frigate Cleopatre, captain Mullon, of which we have to give a further account, by relating her proceedings in the ensuing month, when cruising off the Start. On the 18th of June, at 4 a.m., the Cleopatre was discovered by the Nymphe of 36 guns, eighteen-pounders, captain Edward Pellew, and immediately chase; but at 5 a. m., finding her adversary closing with her fast, the Cleopatre hauled to the wind and, under top-sails, resolutely awaited her approach. At 6h. 15m. a.m., when within hail, both ships opened their fire, and the action continued with great fury until 7 a.m., both frigates running before the wind. The wheel and mizen-mast of the Cleopatre having been shot away, she fell on board of her antagonist's head and stern; and at 7h. 10m. a.m. was boarded by a party from the Nymphe, who struck the french national colours. The Cleopatre had her captain killed, and her total loss amounted to 63 killed and wounded. On board the Nymphe 23 men were killed; lieutenant John Whitaker of the marines, and 26 men wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1793. Tuesday 18th
June. Nymphe captured Cleopatre.
1793. July. The Marines
were authorised to recruit in Ireland at three recruiting stations in Dublin,
Waterford and Cork.
1793. Wednesday 31st
July. Boston engaged L’embuscade.
1793. Thursday 15th August. The assemblage of a powerful fleet in the harbour of Toulon, made it necessary that a british naval force should be despatched to the Mediterranean. Accordingly, a fleet in several divisions proceeded to that station; and on the 15th of August vice-admiral lord Hood arrived before Toulon, with twenty-one sail of the line and several frigates. The French had in that port, ready for sea, seventeen ships of the line, four refitting, nine repairing, and one on the stocks; making a total of thirty sail of the line. In order to encourage the loyalists to declare their sentiments, lord Hood issued a preliminary declaration, in which he pledged himself to support the people of Provence, provided the standard of royalty were hoisted, the ships in the harbour dismantled, and free egress and regress allowed to the british fleet. In that case, no private property of any individual, whatever his previous principles or conduct might have been, should be injured; and as England had no object in view but a firm and lasting peace on liberal and honourable terms, his lordship solemnly promised them, that the port, with all the ships and the forts of Toulon, should be restored to France, when that object was accomplished. He next addressed an animated proclamation to the towns and provinces in the south of France, assuring them of the determination of the coalesced powers to co-operate with the well disposed, in putting down the tyrannous faction that governed the country. The reply to this proclamation was favourable to the admiral's wishes, and on the 27th of August lord Hood landed 1500 troops, with 200 marines and seamen, near Fort la Malgue, of which they immediately took possession, and captain Elphinstone of the Robust was appointed governor. On a message being conveyed from the fort to the french rearadmiral Julien, that such ships as did not proceed into the harbour would be treated as enemies, the crews abandoned their ships, and about 5000 men and officers escaped into the interior. In the morning the ships moved into the harbour, and in the afternoon the british and Spanish fleets (the latter, composed of seventeen sail of the line, having recently arrived) anchored together in the outer harbour of Toulon. A reinforcement of 1000 men from the Spanish fleet having been sent into Fort la Malgue, rear-admiral Gravina took the command of the troops, and rear-admiral Goodall was appointed governor of Toulon and its dependencies. On the 31st, captain Elphinstone, with 300 british and the same number of Spanish troops, made a successful attack on a french body of 800 infantry, with two pieces of cannon, near Ollioules; and after a slight resistance the enemy abandoned the position, leaving their cannon and ammunition in the hands of the British. In this affair captain Douglas of the 11th regiment was killed, and 13 wounded; and the Spaniards lost 2 killed, and 3 wounded. During the night of the 30th September the republicans, availing themselves of a thick fog, surprised a detachment of Spanish troops, and took possession of the heights of Pharon, immediately over Toulon; but on the following day they were driven from their new possession with great slaughter by the allied troops under the command of brigadier-general Mulgrave, assisted by rear-admiral Gravina and captain Elphinstone. Out of 2000 men the republicans lost 1 500 in killed, wounded, and missing. Of the combined forces 8 were killed, 72 wounded and missing, and 48 prisoners. Buonaparte assisted in defending a battery on the Pharon heights; and for his skill and bravery on that day he became so much noticed, that he was shortly afterwards made a brigadier-general. On the night of the 5th of October, a detachment of 50 Spaniards, 100 Piedmontese, 50 Neapolitans, and 408 British, including 50 marines and a party of seamen, — the whole under lieutenant-colonel Nugent, proceeded to the attack of three batteries recently erected on the heights Des Moulins, and two to the southward on the height De Regnier; all of which menaced the shipping in the road: the force on these heights consisted of more than 1200 men, besides 300 in the batteries. The British, having gallantly marched up the difficult ascent, stormed and carried the batteries with very little loss; and after destroying the guns, they returned to their quarters without molestation. Towards the end of October, the third and last division of Neapolitan troops arrived at Toulon, and the combined forces were then as follows: — French royalists, 1542; Piedmontese, 1584; Neapolitans, 4,832; Spaniards, 6,840; British, 2,114; making a total of 16,912 rank and file. Of this number not more than 12,000 were effective, the remainder being sick in the hospitals; and of those fit for duty, three-fourths were necessarily distributed among the different posts, extending at least fifteen miles, including several intermediate points; between most of which there was only a water communication. The army of Kellerman had directed its march on Toulon, and supposing that half of his force had arrived by the 9th of October, there would then have been before the place 33,000 troops. General Dugommier had taken charge of the besieging army, having under him the generals Laharpe, Gamier, Lapoype, Monnet, and though last, not least, Napoleon Buonaparte. On the evening of the 15th November the republican troops made a vigorous attack on Fort Mulgrave, situated on the heights of Balaguier: the first assault was directed against the right, where the Spaniards were stationed, who retreated in disorder, firing their muskets to create alarm. Major-general O'Hara fortunately arriving at this moment from on board the Victory, directed a company of the Royals to advance; and these gallant fellows instantly leaped the works, and routed the enemy with the bayonet. The loss of the allies amounted to 61 in killed and wounded, including among the latter captain Duncan Campbell of the Rovals, who had commanded the detachment, and lieutenant Lemoine of the royal artillery. The loss of the French was supposed to amount to 600 in killed and wounded. General Dugommier, having erected works on the heights of Arenes, directly opposite to the fort of Malbousquet, on which were mounted twenty pieces of cannon, established his camp on the crest of another eminence, at a short distance in its rear; and as these guns greatly annoyed the garrison and endangered the arsenal, which was contiguous to it, it was determined to attack the enemy's position. For this service a corps of 400 french royalists, 600 Spaniards, 600 Neapolitans, 300 Sardinians, and 300 British, forming a total of 2200 men, under major-general Dundas, marched from Toulon on the morning of the 30th of November. They ascended the heights with great difficulty and succeeded at once in driving the enemy from their guns; but the troops, misled by their impetuosity, descended to the hollow in its rear in their endeavour to carry the next eminence, to which the retreating enemy had fled. Here the main body of Dugommier's army attacked them, and not only compelled them to make a rapid retreat, but to relinquish the battery which their valour had won, and which they could hHere’s one for you Bobby???ave held, and carried off the guns, had they remained in that position. The loss in this unfortunate attack was severe on the part of the British, who had 20 killed, 90 wounded, and 98 missing. General O'Hara, in endeavouring to rally the troops, was wounded and taken prisoner, and general Duo-ommier received a wound in the knee, when repelling our attack. By the early part of December, the republican forces hadreceived such considerable reinforcements, that a council of war decided on an immediate attack on the fortifications and town of Toulon; but whilst these measures were under consideration, on the night of the 14th of December, in the midst of a heavy storm, the French marched from their encampments in three columns, each taking a route leading towards a different point, so that their attack might be simultaneous. By two a. m. on the 16th, the besiegers had erected five batteries in front of Fort Mulgrave, and continued to cannonade the works with considerable effect until two a.m. on the 17th; when, under cover of the dark and tempestuous weather, the enemy succeeded in entering the fort by the Spanish side ; and although resisted by the few remaining British under captain Conolly of the 18th regiment, they compelled the remnant of the garrison (originally not more than 700) to retire towards the shore of Balaguier. During these operations, the column under general Lapoype having succeeded in carrying all the posts upon the heights of Pharon, the line of defence was broken upon in two of its essential points, and the position was so commanding, that the ships were compelled to retire to a place of greater safety. Under these circumstances a council of war was held by the British, when it was determined to evacuate Toulon, as soon as proper arrangements could be made for that purpose. The troops occupying the redoubt and the lunette of Pharon were ordered to retire to the posts of Artigues and St. Catherine's, whilst those of St. Antoine, St. Andre, Pomet, and the Mills might be withdrawn; but that of Malbousquet and Mississi to be retained as long as possible. The french ships of war, being armed, were to proceed to sea with the fleet, while those in the harbour, together with the arsenal and magazines, were to be destroyed. The troops were withdrawn from the heights of Balaguier without much interruption from the enemy, as were those of the other posts deemed necessary to be evacuated. The purposed retention of the forts of Malbousquet and Mississi was prevented by the indiscretion of the Neapolitans, who abandoned them without orders, and deserting their posts, hastened on board the ships in the utmost confusion and disorder. In the course of the 18th, the remaining troops were concentrated in the town and in the fort of La Malgue, ready to embark when the conflagration of the shipping should take place. The important service of destroying the ships and magazines was entrusted to sir Sidney Smith, at his own particular requestand on the same afternoon, taking with him a small lateen vessel, in which he had recently arrived from Malta, and three english and three Spanish gun-boats, sir Sidney proceeded to the arsenal to prepare the combustibles required for the occasion. The dock-yard gates had been judiciously closed and secured, and the galley-slaves, amounting to about 800, for the most part unchained, seemed to view these preparations with vindictive satisfaction; and as the guns of the tender and of a gun-boat were pointed towards them, they remained quiet spectators of the impressive scene. All this while the party of sir Sidney Smith was exposed to a fire of shot and shell from Malbousquet and the neighbouring hills, which tended to keep the slaves, as well as the republicans in the town, in entire subjection. At 8 p. m. the Vulcan fire-ship, captain Charles Hare, was towed into the basin; and at 10 p. m., on a preconcerted signal, the trains leading to the different magazines and storehouses were set fire to, as well as the fire-ship. The flames ascended in terrific grandeur, and the rapid spread of the fire, almost overpowering by its heat, laid open to view all who were aiding in this perilous service; whilst the enemy, having distinct objects to point at, opened their batteries from every quarter. At this juncture an unexpected and awful explosion took place: the Spaniards, instead of scuttling, set fire to the Iris frigate, containing several thousand barrels of powder, and its effect shook one gun-boat to pieces, while another was blown into the air; but, providentially, only three of the crew were killed. The business of the arsenal completed, sir Sidney Smith and his brave followers proceeded to the destruction of two 74 gunships, filled with french prisoners, who being landed in a place of safety, the Heros and Themistocle were set on fire. The gallant officer and his party, having effected all that could be done, were returning to the fleet, when another powder-vessel exploded close to them; but, extraordinary as it must appear, without doing any injury. The British were now so exhausted, that they stood slowly out towards their friends, heeding little, after their last narrow escape, the few ill-directed shots that were fired from forts Balaguier and Aiguillette. The commencement of the conflagration had been the signal for evacuating the town, and under the direction of captain Elphinstone, late governor of Fort la Malgue, the whole of the troops embarked, and were on board the fleet by daylight on the morning of the 19th, without sustaining any loss. The fugitives from Toulon, to the amount of 14,877, men, women, and children, received an asylum on board the british ships, where they crowded to such an extent, that the Princess Royal had 4000, and the Robust 3000 of those unhappy people. Of the unfortunate who were left to the mercy of the enraged republicans, above 5000 perished by the sword or the guillotine, or were drowned in their endeavours to escape from the infuriated soldiery. Twenty sail of the line were lost to France: three ships of 80 guns, and fourteen of 74 guns, were destroyed, and the Commerce de Marseilles of 120 guns, with the Pompee and Puissant of 74 guns, were brought to England. In the latter part of July, the 32-gun frigate Boston, captain George W. A. Courtenay, was cruising off New York, watching the french 36-gun frigate Embuscade, captain J. B. F. Bompart, lying in that harbour. In consequence of a hostile message sent by captain Courtenay, the french frigate put to sea, and on the morning of the 31st was seen coming down before thewind, to accept the challenge. After some preparation, the Embuscade, at 5h. 5 m. a.m., ranged along the weather side of the Boston, and a furious action was maintained on both sides. At 6 h. 20 m. a. m., captain Courtenay and lieutenant James Edward Butler of the marines, while standing at the fore-part of the quarter-deck, were killed by the same shot. By this time the Boston had lost her main and mizen top-masts and was much disabled in her sails and rigging. Thus, circum stanced, with two of her lieutenants wounded, the british frigate bore up and made sail, followed by the Embuscade until eight a.m., when the french frigate hauled to the wind. The Boston sustained a loss of 10 killed, and 24 wounded: the Embuscade 50 killed and wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1793. Thursday 15th
August - 18th December. Operations at Toulon. Lord Hood leading a squadron of
21 ships of the line and several frigates entered the harbour of Toulon to
assist the inhabitants against the tyranny of the Republican faction which had
seized control of the Government. The Loyalists willingly handed over the town,
and 1,500 troops and a number of Marines under the Command of Captain Richard
Bidlake near fort La Malgue. The later occupied the fort which stood on a hill
between the little and the great roads, while Fort Mulgrave was situated on the
tongue of land that continued from the hill into the harbour. Soon afterwards a
Spanish fleet arrived with reinforcements, and on the 31st August the allied
British marched out and defeated a republican detachment near Ollicules. The
Marines of the fleet were dispersed over the various forts and lines of
defence, which soon came under fire from the enemy’s batteries, the number of
the besiegers increasing day after day. Fighting continued until December, when
the increasing pressure of the enemy rendered the evacuation of the town
inevitable. One of the most brilliant events of the siege was the defence of a
redoubt by Lieutenant Thomas Naylor of the Marines with 120 men, mostly of his
own Corps. A French column of 2,000 strong, covered by a fog attempted to
surprise the redoubt in the early morning, but the garrison was on the alert,
and Naylor, ordering his men to reserve their fire until the Republicans were
at close quarters and then to fire by platoons, succeeded in killing or
wounding nearly a quarter of their numbers and eventually repulsing their
attack. Fort Mulgrave became known as the ‘Little Gibraltar’, and other forts
fell one after another into the hands of the Enemy, and at 10pm on the18th
December, the defence was restricted to the town and the Fort on La Malgue,
which were held while the French men of war in harbour and the magazines were
burnt and blown up, and the Loyalist who number nearly 15,000 men, women and
children embarked on board the fleet to save them from the bloodthirsty
Republicans. (sic)
I793. August to
December. 0perations under Lord Hood at Toulon.
1793. September.
Lowestoft captured a tower at Mortella, Corsica.
1793. Tuesday 1st
October. Ardent and convoy at Tornelli and San Fiorinzo, Corsica.
1793. Saturday 5th
October. Bedford and Speedy captured Modeste.
1793. Saturday 12th
October. Boats of Captain captured Imperieuse.
1793. Sunday 20th
October. Crescent captured Reunion.
1793. Tuesday 22nd
October. Agamemnon engaged French frigates.
1793. Wednesday 23rd October. Vice-admiral Vernon, with a squadron of five ships of the line, and one of fifty guns, sailed from Portsmouth on the 20th of July, and arrived at Jamaica on the 23rd October 1793, the day on which war was proclaimed in England; and embarking two hundred soldiers to serve as Marines, he proceeded to Porto Bello, which was the destined object of his attack. At the entrance of the north side of the bay, close by a steep rock, was a strong fort called the Castillo de Ferro, mounting seventy-eight guns, with a battery beneath of twenty-two. On the opposite side of the bay, and about a mile further up, on an eminence, stood Gloria Castle, consisting of two regular bastions towards the sea, mounting ninety guns, with a curtain between of twenty-two more, besides eight guns pointing towards the harbour. A little above this castle, near the other end of the town, lay Fort St. Jeronimo, a strong quadrangular redoubt; under the guns of which, and of Gloria Castle, all the ships of the fleet rode at anchor; and at the bottom of the harbour stands the town of Porto Bello, situated on the north coast of the Isthmus of Darien. On the 20th of November the fleet arrived at the place of its destination. The Hampton-Court took up her position near Castillo de Ferro and was soon followed by the Norwich and Worcester. After firing several broadsides, on perceiving that the Spaniards abandoned their guns, the signal was made for landing; and the seamen and marines on reaching the shore, successfully scaled the walls, and immediately placed the English colours on the lower battery. This was no sooner perceived by the garrison in the upper fort, than they hoisted a white flag, and surrendered at discretion. The Burford was engaged with the Gloria Castle until night; and on the morning of the 22nd it capitulated, when the British troops took possession of that fortress, and of the fort of St. Jeronimo. After destroying the fortifications, the squadron sailed for Jamaica on the 13th of December. Soon after this, Admiral Vernon bombarded Carthagena and having entered the river Chagre, reduced St. Lorenzo, after destroying the castle and custom-house. He then returned to Porto Bello, and thence back to Jamaica. The intelligence of these successes diffused joy throughout the kingdom; and the Commons, in 1740, cheerfully enabled his Majesty to equip a very powerful fleet for the ensuing naval campaign. A camp was ordered to be formed on Hounslow Heath; while another was marked out in the Isle of Wight for 6000 Marines, destined to be employed in the West Indies. In 1741 the House of Commons voted 40,000 seamen for the service of the year, together with ten new regiments of Marines. The fleet, which had assembled at Spithead under Sir John Norris, consisting of twenty-one sail of the line, proceeded no further than Torbay, and then returned to its former anchorage. On receiving intelligence that the Ferrol squadron had gone to the West Indies, and that the Brest and Toulon fleets were at sea, Lord Cathcart embarked with a large body of troops; and this formidable armament, amounting to one hundred and seventy sail, under Sir Chaloner Ogle, proceeded to the West Indies on the 26th of October. It had scarcely cleared the Channel before it was scattered by a violent tempest; nevertheless, the admiral pursued his voyage, and reached Jamaica on the 9th of January 1741, where he found Admiral Vernon, who now commanded a fleet of thirty ships of the line, with a considerable proportion of frigates, &c, having about 15,000 seamen, with 12,000 troops, including six regiments of English Marines, and four battalions raised in America. Touching at Dominica, to take in wood and water, on their passage to Jmaica, the expedition sustained an irreparable loss in the death of Lord Cathcart, a talented and experienced officer, who died of dysentery. The command then devolved on Lieut. -general Went worth, a man of very moderate abilities, and of no experience. The fleet, now numbering one hundred and twenty four sail, quitted (rish Bay, in Hispaniola, on the 25th of February, and anchored in Plaza Granda, which is to windward of Carthagena, on the 4th of March ; but the commanders of the respective forces, as if determined to give the enemy time to recover from their surprise, remained inactive in the bay until the 9th, when the first division of the fleet under Sir Chaloner Ogle, followed by Admiral Vernon with all the transports, moved forward towards the entrance of the harbour, called Boca Chica, which was defended by several formidable batteries; while the third division, under Commodore Lestock, remained at their anchorage. The Norfolk, Russell, and Shrewsbury, anchored close to the forts of St. Jago and St. Philip, which, being silenced in less than an hour, were taken possession of by a detachment of British grenadiers. On the 10th, the regiments of Harrison and Wentworth, with six regiments of Marines landed on the island of Tierra Bomba, and having pitched their tents, they commenced erecting a battery against the castle of Boca Chica; but they soon found themselves exposed to the fire of a fascine battery on the opposite side of the harbour, on the island of Varu. The admiral immediately directed Captain Boscawen, with a party of seamen, to land a mile to leeward of this battery, which mounted fifteen twentyfour pounders, and was situated under a raised battery of five guns. Those gallant fellows soon gained possession of both batteries, and having spiked the guns, returned to their ships. . (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1793. Thursday 24th
October. Thames engaged Uranie.
1793. Thursday 31st
October. Quebec, and Convoy attacked Ostend and Nieuport.
1793. Monday 18th
November. Latona engaged Tigre and Jean Bart.
1793. Monday 25th
November. Penelope and Iphigenia captured Inconstante
1793. Saturday 30th November. General Dugommier, having erected works on the heights of Arenes, directly opposite to the fort of Malbousquet, on which were mounted twenty pieces of cannon, established his camp on the crest of another eminence, at a short distance in its rear; and as these guns greatly annoyed the garrison and endangered the arsenal, which was contiguous to it, it was determined to attack the enemy's position. For this service a corps of 400 french royalists, 600 Spaniards, 600 Neapolitans, 300 Sardinians, and 300 British, forming a total of 2200 men, under major-general Dundas, marched from Toulon on the morning of the 30th of November. They ascended the heights with great difficulty and succeeded at once in driving the enemy from their guns; but the troops, misled by their impetuosity, descended to the hollow in its rear in their endeavour to carry the next eminence, to which the retreating enemy had fled. Here the main body of Dugommier's army attacked them, and not only compelled them to make a rapid retreat, but to relinquish the battery which their valour had won, and which they could hHere’s one for you Bobby???ave held, and carried off the guns, had they remained in that position. The loss in this unfortunate attack was severe on the part of the British, who had 20 killed, 90 wounded, and 98 missing. General O'Hara, in endeavouring to rally the troops, was wounded and taken prisoner, and general Duo-ommier received a wound in the knee, when repelling our attack. By the early part of December, the republican forces hadreceived such considerable reinforcements, that a council of war decided on an immediate attack on the fortifications and town of Toulon; but whilst these measures were under consideration, on the night of the 14th of December, in the midst of a heavy storm, the French marched from their encampments in three columns, each taking a route leading towards a different point, so that their attack might be simultaneous. By two a. m. on the 16th, the besiegers had erected five batteries in front of Fort Mulgrave, and continued to cannonade the works with considerable effect until two a.m. on the 17th; when, under cover of the dark and tempestuous weather, the enemy succeeded in entering the fort by the Spanish side ; and although resisted by the few remaining British under captain Conolly of the 18th regiment, they compelled the remnant of the garrison (originally not more than 700) to retire towards the shore of Balaguier. During these operations, the column under general Lapoype having succeeded in carrying all the posts upon the heights of Pharon, the line of defence was broken upon in two of its essential points, and the position was so commanding, that the ships were compelled to retire to a place of greater safety. Under these circumstances a council of war was held by the British, when it was determined to evacuate Toulon, as soon as proper arrangements could be made for that purpose. The troops occupying the redoubt and the lunette of Pharon were ordered to retire to the posts of Artigues and St. Catherine's, whilst those of St. Antoine, St. Andre, Pomet, and the Mills might be withdrawn; but that of Malbousquet and Mississi to be retained as long as possible. The french ships of war, being armed, were to proceed to sea with the fleet, while those in the harbour, together with the arsenal and magazines, were to be destroyed. The troops were withdrawn from the heights of Balaguier without much interruption from the enemy, as were those of the other posts deemed necessary to be evacuated. The purposed retention of the forts of Malbousquet and Mississi was prevented by the indiscretion of the Neapolitans, who abandoned them without orders, and deserting their posts, hastened on board the ships in the utmost confusion and disorder. In the course of the 18th, the remaining troops were concentrated in the town and in the fort of La Malgue, ready to embark when the conflagration of the shipping should take place. The important service of destroying the ships and magazines was entrusted to sir Sidney Smith, at his own particular requestand on the same afternoon, taking with him a small lateen vessel, in which he had recently arrived from Malta, and three english and three Spanish gun-boats, sir Sidney proceeded to the arsenal to prepare the combustibles required for the occasion. The dock-yard gates had been judiciously closed and secured, and the galley-slaves, amounting to about 800, for the most part unchained, seemed to view these preparations with vindictive satisfaction; and as the guns of the tender and of a gun-boat were pointed towards them, they remained quiet spectators of the impressive scene. All this while the party of sir Sidney Smith was exposed to a fire of shot and shell from Malbousquet and the neighbouring hills, which tended to keep the slaves, as well as the republicans in the town, in entire subjection. At 8 p. m. the Vulcan fire-ship, captain Charles Hare, was towed into the basin; and at 10 p. m., on a preconcerted signal, the trains leading to the different magazines and storehouses were set fire to, as well as the fire-ship. The flames ascended in terrific grandeur, and the rapid spread of the fire, almost overpowering by its heat, laid open to view all who were aiding in this perilous service; whilst the enemy, having distinct objects to point at, opened their batteries from every quarter. At this juncture an unexpected and awful explosion took place: the Spaniards, instead of scuttling, set fire to the Iris frigate, containing several thousand barrels of powder, and its effect shook one gun-boat to pieces, while another was blown into the air; but, providentially, only three of the crew were killed. The business of the arsenal completed, sir Sidney Smith and his brave followers proceeded to the destruction of two 74 gunships, filled with french prisoners, who being landed in a place of safety, the Heros and Themistocle were set on fire. The gallant officer and his party, having effected all that could be done, were returning to the fleet, when another powder-vessel exploded close to them; but, extraordinary as it must appear, without doing any injury. The British were now so exhausted, that they stood slowly out towards their friends, heeding little, after their last narrow escape, the few ill-directed shots that were fired from forts Balaguier and Aiguillette. The commencement of the conflagration had been the signal for evacuating the town, and under the direction of captain Elphinstone, late governor of Fort la Malgue, the whole of the troops embarked, and were on board the fleet by daylight on the morning of the 19th, without sustaining any loss. The fugitives from Toulon, to the amount of 14,877, men, women, and children, received an asylum on board the british ships, where they crowded to such an extent, that the Princess Royal had 4000, and the Robust 3000 of those unhappy people. Of the unfortunate who were left to the mercy of the enraged republicans, above 5000 perished by the sword or the guillotine, or were drowned in their endeavours to escape from the infuriated soldiery. Twenty sail of the line were lost to France: three ships of 80 guns, and fourteen of 74 guns, were destroyed, and the Commerce de Marseilles of 120 guns, with the Pompee and Puissant of 74 guns, were brought to England. In the latter part of July, the 32-gun frigate Boston, captain George W. A. Courtenay, was cruising off New York, watching the french 36-gun frigate Embuscade, captain J. B. F. Bompart, lying in that harbour. In consequence of a hostile message sent by captain Courtenay, the french frigate put to sea, and on the morning of the 31st was seen coming down before thewind, to accept the challenge. After some preparation, the Embuscade, at 5h. 5 m. a.m., ranged along the weather side of the Boston, and a furious action was maintained on both sides. At 6 h. 20 m. a. m., captain Courtenay and lieutenant James Edward Butler of the marines, while standing at the fore-part of the quarter-deck, were killed by the same shot. By this time the Boston had lost her main and mizen top-masts and was much disabled in her sails and rigging. Thus, circum stanced, with two of her lieutenants wounded, the british frigate bore up and made sail, followed by the Embuscade until eight a.m., when the french frigate hauled to the wind. The Boston sustained a loss of 10 killed, and 24 wounded: the Embuscade 50 killed and wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1793 - 1802. The
‘French Revolutionary Wars’. In which Great Britain, Austria, Spain, Russia,
Germany and the French Royalists were all against French Revolutionaries. While
Marines saw action in the Mediterranean, South Africa, India, Egypt and the East
Indies, and its strength was increased to 9,815 men.
1793. In consequence of the field officers being restored, and the establishment of an invalid retirement, several officers, who had quit active service, determined on returning to the effective corps; a circumstance that would have been attended with so much injustice to those who had continued in the service, and more particularly to the junior ranks, that it was resolved to resist such applications, for they had already experienced the injury arising from officers re-joining. Memorials were sent to the Board of Admiralty from each division to this effect: "That all officers may take rank and do duty in the corps from the date of their last appointment, receive promotion, and be placed on the list accordingly." The memorials were acceded to and enforced until a recent period, when a few officers were permitted to re-join; but this infraction, which was on a very limited scale, arose from a resolution of Mr. Hume, that he would not consent to the retirement of officers on full pay, or selling out, while serviceable officers remained on half-pay. Only four or five re-joined the corps, and about forty quitted the service. 1793. September. During the time that Toulon remained in possession of the allies, a formidable insurrection existed in Corsica, and general Paoli, the leader of the insurgents, having sought the aid of the English; commodore R. Linzee, with the Alcide and Courageux of 74, Ardent 64, Lowestoffe 32, and Nemesis 28, sailed from Toulon for Villa Franca in the month of September. Owing to some unexplained cause, the commodore delayed the attack on the redoubt of Fornelli, which is situated about two miles in advance of the town of San Fiorenzo, until the garrison had made such preparations as enabled them to defeat the attempt. On the night of the 30th of September, the Ardent was led into a situation to annoy the redoubt, and at the same time covering the approach of the other ships. At 3 h. 30 m. a.m. on the 12th of October, having opened her fire, she was soon joined by the Alcide and Courageux, and the three ships maintained a warm cannonade until 8 h. 15 m. a.m., without any visible effect on the redoubt; but the Courageux and Ardent had been unexpectedly opposed to a raking fire from the town of San Fiorenzo, by which they were considerably damaged; the Courageux having 2 killed and 13 wounded, the Ardent 14 killed and 17 wounded, and the Alcide 9 men wounded. The failure was attributable to a want of co-operation on the part of Paoli's adherents, who had undertaken, simultaneously with the naval operations, to storm the forts on the land side; but it is probable that the ill success was in great measure occasioned by the tardiness of the commodore in making the attack. The great importance of the harbour of San Fiorenzo to Great Britain, as a point of rendezvous for her Mediterranean squadrons, suggested to lord Hood the propriety of assisting the loyal part of the inhabitants in their attempt to expel the French from the island. On the 24th of January the fleet and transports with the troops, amounting to sixty sail, quitted the bay of Hyeres, and proceeded to that of San Fiorenzo; but the armament was driven to leeward by a heavy gale, and did not reach Porto Ferrajo, in the island of Elba, until the 29th. On the 5th of February the Alcide, Egmont, and Fortitude, of 74 guns, with Lowestoffe and Juno frigates, Avere detached to a bay to the westward of Cape Mortella; and on the evening of the 7th, 1400 troops under major-general Dundas having landed and taken possession of a height which commanded the tower of Mortella, an attack was made upon it on the following day. The Fortitude and Juno, after engaging two hours and a half, were compelled to withdraw, with a loss on board the former of 6 men killed, and 56 wounded; nor was the battering from the height attended with better success until some additional guns were mounted, and then the brave garrison of thirty-three men, commanded by enseigne le Tellier, was compelled to surrender. The post next attacked was the Convention redoubt, mounting twenty-one pieces of heavy ordnance, and considered as the key of San Fiorenzo. By surprising exertions, several eighteen-pounders were placed on an eminence of very difficult ascent, 700 feet above the level of the sea : this rocky elevation was deemed inaccessible, but the seamen, by means of blocks and tackles, contrived to haul up the guns, and a cannonade was unremittingly kept up during the 16th and 17th, when the works were stormed ; but the greater part of the garrison had retreated, and during the night passed over to the town of San Fiorenzo, with their two frigates. On the 19th, after sinking one of their frigates and burning the other, the French evacuated the town of San Fiorenzo, and retreated towards Bastia, leaving the British in possession of the former place, as well as of the tower and batteries of Fornelli and the seamen soon found means to weigh, and carry off the Minerve, a fine frigate of 40 guns. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1793 - 1815. 'Per Mare Per Terram' - The Royal Marines 1793-1815 By Ron McGuigan. 1793. On the declaration of war with France, the marines were increased to 9,815 men. In consequence of the field-officers being restored, and the establishment of an invalid retirement, several officers, who had quitted the active service, determined on returning to the effective corps; a circumstance that would have been attended with so much injustice to those who had continued in the service, and more particularly to the junior ranks, that it was resolved to resist such applications; for they had already experienced the injury arising from officers rejoining. Memorials (Appendix 7) were sent to the Board of Admiralty from each division to this effect " That all officers may take rank and do duty in the corps from the date of their last appointment, receive promotion, and be placed on the list accordingly." The memorials were acceded to and enforced until a recent period, when a few officers were permitted to rejoin; but this infraction, which was on a very limited scale, arose from a resolution of Mr. Hume, that he would not consent to the retirement of officers on fullpay, or selling out, while serviceable officers remained on halfpay. Only four or five rejoined the corps, and about forty quitted the service. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.)
1794. The establishment
of Marines was increased to 12,115 men, in consequence of a general memorial to
Earl Spencer, then first Lord of the Admiralty, presented by General Souter,
which having obtained his Lordship's favourable consideration, twenty one
companies were added, including those of six field-officers, and the levy money
was also increased to eight guineas.
1794. A number of additional Companies were deemed necessary to the corps of Marines, which was composed of 12,115 for the service of 1794. During this year a number of First Lieutenants were appointed to Companies in Black Regiments; a transit which many embraced. 1794. Saturday 11th
January. There was a curios sequel to the evacuation of Toulon. Not knowing of
the British withdrawal HMS Juno sailing from Malta arrived in Toulon at 10pm in
the evening. She had no pilot on board, and made her way into the harbour the
as best she could. Although here Captain was somewhat surprised to see no
British ships in the outer harbour, although the lights of several vessels were
clearly visible further in. Eventually a Brig at anchor loomed up through the
darkness, and as HMS Juno passed her a shout was not understood, and supposed
to be “What ship is that?” Upon the answer the crew of the Brig was heard to
cry out “Viva”, and as HMS Juno crossed her stern a voice from her called out
distinctly “Luff”. The helm was at once put to lee, but HMS Juno grounded and
so its boats were hoisted out to warp her off. A sudden gust of wind drove her
astern, and the anchor was let go, but as she swung to it she touched again
aft. While the boats and sail trimmers were at work to get her off again, a
boat came out from the shore, and running alongside, two officers and a party
of seamen came on board and informed the Captain Sir Samuel Hood that it was
the regulation of the port and the Commanding Officers orders that the ship
should go to another branch of the harbour to perform quarantine. “Where is
Lord Hood’s flagship”, asked the Captain. The reply he received aroused his
suspicion, and it was then discovered that the visitors were Frenchmen. All
pretence was dropped. ”Soyez tranquille” said the visitors, “les Anglais sont
des braves gens lestraitons bien, l’Amiral Anglais est parti il ya quelque
temps” It was a terrible trap, but just then a gust of wind came down the
harbour, and “I believe, Sir” said the 3rd Lieutenant “we shall be able to
fetch out if we can only get her under sail”. Where upon it was every man to
his station to set the sails upon the ship. The Frenchmen drew their cutlasses,
but the Marines seizing the boarding pikes from their racks charged and drove
the unwelcome visitors below, where they were disarmed. The cable was cut, and
the ship got under way, and in spite of heavy fire opened upon them from the
batteries and forts on shore HMS Juno succeeded in making her way out to sea
without loss of a man.
1794. Sunday 12th
January. Sphinx captured Trompeuse.
1794. Wednesday 22nd
January. Britannia and Nonsuch captured Vengeur and Resolu.
1794. Saturday 25th
January. Houghton and Nonsuch engaged Cybele.
1794. Wednesday 5th
February. The Capture of Martinique, by a British expeditionary force under the
Command of Admiral Sir John Jervis and Lieutenant General Sir Charles Grey. By
Thursday 20th March, only Fort Bourbon and Fort Royal still held out. Jervis
ordered the third rate ship of the line HMS Asia of 64 guns, and HMS Zebra to
take Fort Saint Louis. HMS Asia was unable to get close, and so Commander
Faulkner went in without her help. Despite facing heavy fire, Faulkner ran HMS
Zebra close under the walls. He and his ship's company then used HMS Zebra’s
boats to land. The British stormed the fort and captured it. HMS Zebra lost
only her pilot killed and four men wounded. Meanwhile the boats of the British
fleet captured Fort Royal and two days later Fort Bourbon capitulated.
1794. Saturday 8th February.
Fortitude and Juno captured Mortella, Corsica.
1794. Monday 17th
February. Alcide and squadron captured Fornelli, Corsica.
1794. Wednesday 19th
February. The Capture of the ship St Fiorenzo in Corsica by Lord Hood. The St
Fiorenzo was a 38 gun fifth rate, formerly the French ship named Minerve. She
was captured having been scuttled by the French. She was raised, and placed on
harbour protection from 1812 and finally broken up in 1837.
1794. In the latter part of the month of January 1794, vice-admiral sir John Jervis, K.B. arrived at Barbadoes as the commanderin-chief on that station, accompanied by lieutenant-general sir George Grey with 7000 troops; and on the 5th of February, the expedition arrived off Martinique, consisting of the following ships of war: — Boyne 98 guns, Vengeance and Irresistible of 74 guns, Asia and Veteran of 64, with several frigates and sloops. The troops were disembarked at three different points, and the respective divisions overcame all opposition. By the 16th of March the whole island, except forts Bourbon and Royal, was in possession of the British; but this was not effected without the loss of 71 killed and 193 wounded. Lieu- tenant W. Tremenheere, with a small party of marines and 200 seamen under captain E. Harvey, were landed, and having conveyed a twenty-four pounder gun and two mortars to the heights of Souriere, a fire was opened upon Fort Bourbon, and the island soon surrendered. Guadaloupe was the next object of attack, and a detachment of seamen and marines having assisted in the reduction of the strong post of Fleur d'Epee, the whole colony surrendered on the 20th; but a french squadron appearing off the island on the 3rd of June, disembarked 1400 troops, who regained possession of Fleur d'Epee. Sir John Jervis being apprised of this reverse, quickly repaired off Guadaloupe with four ships of the line, and on the 19th two battalions of seamen were landed and took possession of the village of Gosier. From the 25th to the end of June several skirmishes took place; and on the morning of the 2nd of July an unsuccessful attempt was made upon the town of Pointe-a-Pitre, which failure led to the abandonment of Grand-terre by the british forces. Between the 10th, and the 3rd of July, the army had 105 killed, 330 wounded, and 56 missing. On the part of the navy, captain Lewis Robertson, 4 seamen, and 2 marines were killed; lieutenant Isaac Woolley, lieutenant of marines John Mercer, 24 seamen, and 3 marines wounded; and 16 seamen missing. Lord Hood arrived at the anchorage before Bastia, and on the same evening the troops, guns, and stores were landed; and a detachment of seamen, commanded by captain Horatio Nelson of the Agamemnon, disembarked to the northward of the town. The total of the combined forces, when landed, amounted to 1248 officers and men, exclusive of about the same number of Corsicans under general Paoli; whilst the french and corsican troops in the garrison of Bastia were about 3000. Lord Hood moored the fleet in the form of a crescent, just out of the reach of the enemy's guns, and the entrance to the harbour was effectually guarded by gun-boats and armed launches. After a siege of thirty-seven days, and four of negotiation, the town and citadel of Bastia, with the several outposts, surrendered. The loss sustained by the army was only 7 killed and 21 wounded; and that of the navy, lieutenant Carey Tupper of the Victory, and 6 men killed; lieutenant Andrews, and 12 men wounded. On the 19th, captain Nelson, the senior officer in the absence of lord Hood, (who with the fleet had sailed to look after the Toulon squadron,) disembarked the troops at Port Agra, situated about three miles from Calvi; and on the same day lord Hood, arriving in Mortella Bay, sent on shore a detachment of seamen under captains Hallowell and Serecold. On the 27th, the Victory having arrived before Calvi, seven of her lower-deck guns were landed, and the batteries were soon opened; but it was not until the siege had lasted fifty-one days that general Casa-Bianca could be induced to capitulate; and on the 10th of August the garrison of Calvi surrendered. The loss on the part of the british army was 1 field-officer, 2 lieutenants, and 20 men killed; 3 captains, 4 lieutenants, and 46 wounded. Of the navy, captain W. Serecold, 1 midshipman, and 5 seamen were killed, and 6 seamen wounded. Captain Nelson was not reported wounded, although he lost the sight of his right eye, from some particles of sand which had been driven into it, by a shot striking the battery near him. On the 20th of October the 36-gun frigate Crescent, captain James Saumarez, was standing close along shore, off Cape Barfleur; and just as the day dawned, she discovered to leeward the french 36-gun frigate Reunion, captain F. A. Denian. The Crescent immediately bore away, and in a short time ranged up alongside the french frigate. In the early part of the action which ensued, the Crescent, after losing her fore-topsail yard and then her fore-topmast, came round on the opposite tack, and brought her larboard guns to bear. The Reunion, having lost her fore-yard and mizen topmast, was exposed to several raking broadsides from her opponent; and after a gallant defence of two hours and ten minutes, in which she had 33 killed and 48 severely wounded, the french frigate struck her colours, just as the british 32-gun frigate Circe was perceptible to leeward, using every exertion to close. Lieutenant Henry Hodge was serving on board the Crescent, which ship had only one man wounded. On the 4th of October, the 32-gun frigate Thames, captain James Cotes, being some degrees to the westward of Ushant, engaged the french 40-gun frigate Uranie from 10 h. 30 m. a.m., until 2 h. 20 m. p.m., when the latter made off, leaving the british frigate so much crippled as to be incapable of pursuit, having 11 men killed, and 23 wounded. Whilst repairing her damages, three french frigates and a brig hove in sight, and the Thames was captured and carried into Brest. Lieutenant Anthony Stransham was serving on board the Thames. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1794. February - March.
Operations at and the capture of Martinique.
1794. February. The
Siege of Saint-Florent took place during the ‘French Revolutionary War’ when a
British force joined with Corsican partisans to capture the French garrison
town of Saint-Florent, Corsica. After a blockade by Royal Naval ships under
Horatio Nelson. A landing was made, and British troops were put ashore where
they were joined with around 1,200 Corsicans. The town was dominated by two
defensive towers, one to the north at Mortella Point and the other at the
strong Convention Redoubt. Once these had been taken the town agreed to
surrender and the British fleet under Lord Hood was able to sail into its
harbour. A large number of its defenders were able to escape to Bastia where
they participated in its defence. Saint-Florent was one of three major French
garrisons on Corsica the others being Bastia and Calvi.
1794. Monday 3rd February the important post of Cape Tiburon, St. Domingo, mounting twenty-two pieces of cannon, was taken by the British; and on the 18th, the port of Aoul was carried, after a sharp resistance, by a body of troops under lieutenant colonel Dansey. Fort Brissoton surrendered on the 2nd of June, and on the morning of the 4th the british colours were hoisted at Port-au-Prince. Throughout the operations which led to the capture of the West India islands, the navy and marines took part with the troops; and sir John Jervis observes, " the unabated exertions of the officers and men under his command could never be surpassed; and that, keeping constant pace with the troops, no difficulty or danger arrested, for an instant, their career of glory." In the course of this year several french frigates, chiefly in squadrons of three or four, cruised in and near the British Channel, and were so successful in their attempts to capture or destroy our merchant shipping, that three british squadrons were ordered to sea to intercept them. One of these, under command of commodore sir John Borlase Warren, consisting of five frigates, fell in with three french frigates and a corvette on the 23rd of April, near Guernsey. At 6 h. 30 m., the Flora being abreast of the rearmost ship, opened her fire, and continued engaging as she passed the three sternmost of the enemy; but having her main-topmast shot away, and otherwise crippled, she dropped astern, and was succeeded by the Arethusa. The French now made all sail to escape, but the Arethusa, Melampus, and Concorde soon approached the Pomone of 40, and Babet of 20 guns, and both these ships surrendered, after a gallant resistance, at 9 h. 30 m. p. m. The pursuit of the other two frigates was continued by the Concorde and Melampus, and the Engageante of 36 guns was captured by the Concorde, after a close engagement of more than an hour, in which the french ship suffered severely. The Resolue effected her escape into Morlaix. The following is a statement of the killed and wounded, with the names of the officers of marines serving on board the squadron. On the 29th of May the 28-gun frigate Carysfort, captain Francis Laforey, cruising to the westward of Ushant, captured the french 32-gun frigate Castor, after an action of one hour and fifteen minutes; in which the latter had 16 killed, and 9 wounded. The Carysfort had 1 man killed, and 4 wounded. Lieutenant James Fynmore was serving on board the Carysfort. On the 2nd of May a fleet under earl Howe, consisting of thirty-four ships of the line, with a number of smaller vessels of war, and nearly a hundred sail of merchant-men, sailed from Spithead. When off the Lizard, rear-admiral Montagu was detached with eight ships of the line, to protect the East and West India convoys; leaving twenty-six sail of the line and seven frigates cruising off Ushant. On the 16th of May the french fleet, consisting of twenty-five ships of the line and several frigates, under rear-admiral Villaret de Joyeuse, and the conventional deputy Jean Bon Saint-Andre, sailed from Brest, with the wind at north-east; and on the 28th the enemy was seen to windward, bearing down towards the english fleet; but they hauled to the wind when they had reached within nine miles; and, after some delay, formed an indifferent line a-head. In the afternoon the rear division, under rear-admiral Pasley, was partially engaged with the enemy, and the Revolutionaire of 120 guns suffered so severely that she bore away from the flee and was taken into Rochefort in a disabled state. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1794. Early April. The
Siege and surrender of Bastia in Corsica took place during the French
Revolutionary War, when an allied force of British and Anglo Corsicans forces
laid siege to the French town of Bastia. After a six-week siege the garrison
surrendered due to a lack of supplies owing to a blockade by the Royal Navy.
The siege was marked by constant disputes with Lord Hood the naval Commander
and Senior Army officers.
1794. Friday 4th April. Lord Hood arrived at the anchorage before Bastia, and on the same evening the troops, guns, and stores were landed; and a detachment of seamen, commanded by captain Horatio Nelson of the Agamemnon, disembarked to the northward of the town. The total of the combined forces, when landed, amounted to 1248 officers and men, exclusive of about the same number of Corsicans under general Paoli; whilst the french and corsican troops in the garrison of Bastia were about 3000. Lord Hood moored the fleet in the form of a crescent, just out of the reach of the enemy's guns, and the entrance to the harbour was effectually guarded by gun-boats and armed launches. After a siege of thirty-seven days, and four of negotiation, the town and citadel of Bastia, with the several outposts, surrendered. The loss sustained by the army was only 7 killed and 21 wounded; and that of the navy, lieutenant Carey Tupper of the Victory, and 6 men killed; lieutenant Andrews, and 12 men wounded. On the 19th, captain Nelson, the senior officer in the absence of lord Hood, (who with the fleet had sailed to look after the Toulon squadron,) disembarked the troops at Port Agra, situated about three miles from Calvi; and on the same day lord Hood, arriving in Mortella Bay, sent on shore a detachment of seamen under captains Hallowell and Serecold. On the 27th, the Victory having arrived before Calvi, seven of her lower-deck guns were landed, and the batteries were soon opened; but it was not until the siege had lasted fifty-one days that general Casa-Bianca could be induced to capitulate; and on the 10th of August the garrison of Calvi surrendered. The loss on the part of the british army was 1 field-officer, 2 lieutenants, and 20 men killed; 3 captains, 4 lieutenants, and 46 wounded. Of the navy, captain W. Serecold, 1 midshipman, and 5 seamen were killed, and 6 seamen wounded. Captain Nelson was not reported wounded, although he lost the sight of his right eye, from some particles of sand which had been driven into it, by a shot striking the battery near him. On the 20th of October the 36-gun frigate Crescent, captain James Saumarez, was standing close along shore, off Cape Barfleur; and just as the day dawned, she discovered to leeward the french 36-gun frigate Reunion, captain F. A. Denian. The Crescent immediately bore away, and in a short time ranged up alongside the french frigate. In the early part of the action which ensued, the Crescent, after losing her fore-topsail yard and then her fore-topmast, came round on the opposite tack, and brought her larboard guns to bear. The Reunion, having lost her fore-yard and mizen topmast, was exposed to several raking broadsides from her opponent; and after a gallant defence of two hours and ten minutes, in which she had 33 killed and 48 severely wounded, the french frigate struck her colours, just as the british 32-gun frigate Circe was perceptible to leeward, using every exertion to close. Lieutenant Henry Hodge was serving on board the Crescent, which ship had only one man wounded. On the 4th of October, the 32-gun frigate Thames, captain James Cotes, being some degrees to the westward of Ushant, engaged the french 40-gun frigate Uranie from 10 h. 30 m. a.m., until 2 h. 20 m. p.m., when the latter made off, leaving the british frigate so much crippled as to be incapable of pursuit, having 11 men killed, and 23 wounded. Whilst repairing her damages, three french frigates and a brig hove in sight, and the Thames was captured and carried into Brest. Lieutenant Anthony Stransham was serving on board the Thames. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1794. Thursday 10th
April. Capture of the Saintes.
1794. April. The
British capture of Tobago and Santa-Lucia from the French. However, Santa-Lucia
was retaken by the French during the summer of 1795, and later taken back by
the British during April 1796.
1794. The North and the
South Barracks were built in Deal.
1794. Friday 11th -
12th April. The Winchelsea at Guadaloupe.
1794. Wednesday 23rd
April. Sir J. B. Warren’s action off Guernsey, when the Arethusa captured the
Pomone and Babet.
1794. April - May.
Bombardment and capture of Bastia.
1794. Monday 5th May.
The Orphers captured the Duguay-Trouin.
1794. Monday 5th - 7th
May. The Swiftsure captured the Atalante.
1794. Wednesday 28th May. During the night of the 28th the two fleets continued in sight of each other; and on the morning of the 29th earl Howe, with the intention of making some further impression on the rear of the enemy, ordered the fleet to tack, and then cut through the enemy's line in order to obtain the weather-gage. At 8 a.m. the van of the French wore round to support their rear, and then hauled to the wind. At 9 a. m., when on the larboard and same tack as the british fleet, the French bore away, and at 10 a. m. opened an ineffectual fire upon our van; but some of that division were enabled to get sufficiently near to make an impression on several of the french ships, nor did the British escape with impunity. At 11 h. 30 m. the signal was made to tack in succession, with the intention of passing through the enemy's line; but. the Csesar, the leading ship, wore round, and then ran past the eighth ship of the enemy, before she hauled to starboard and cut through. About 1 p. m. the Queen wore and passing under the lee of the Terrible of 110 guns, ran along the french line, and became so much crippled, that she could not haul up and pass through as intended. On perceiving the disabled condition of the Queen, lord Howe resolved to set the example of cutting the enemy's line, and at 1 h. 30 m. p. m. the Queen Charlotte tacked, and then passed close under the stern of the Eole, the sixth ship from their rear; and the two seconds to the british admiral, the Bellerophon and the Leviathan, passed respectively under the sterns of the Tyrannicide and Indomptable. Lord Howe then came round again on the larboard tack, and hoisting the signal for a general chase, the Queen Charlotte pursued the Terrible. At 4 p. m. the Queen Charlotte, with several ships, ran down to cover the Queen and Royal George, who were much disabled, from the attack of the french admiral. This movement again brought the two vans within random shot and afforded an opportunity for the Glory to distinguish herself. At 5 p. m. the french commander-in-chief, having recovered his two disabled ships, wore round, and rejoined the rear of his fleet; and the British, by wearing in the same direction, kept the weather-gage. During the two following days the weather was so foggy, that the enemy could only be seen at times; but on the 31st, at 9 a.m., the french fleet was descried to the northward, and plainly seen to consist of twenty-six of the line. At 2 p.m. lord Howe bore up and ran down towards the enemy until 3 h. 30 m., when the British hauled to the wind on the larboard tack. At 5 p.m., having formed the larboard line of bearing, they edged away towards the enemy; but the admiral preferring a daylight contest, again brought the fleet to the wind at 7 p.m., and kept under commanding sail during the night, to preserve the weather-gage. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1794. Thursday 29th
May. The Carysfort captured the Castor.
1794. Thursday 29th
May - Sunday 1st June. Lord Howe’s Victory, the battle of the Glorious First of
June off Ushant. One of the great sea battles in which many Marines took part.
It was the first and largest fleet action of the naval conflict between Great
Britain and the First French Republic during the ‘French Revolutionary Wars’.
The British Channel Fleet under Admiral Lord Howe attempted to prevent the
passage of a vital French grain convoy from the United States of America, which
was protected by the French Atlantic Fleet, commanded by Rear-Admiral Villaret
Joyeuse. The two forces clashed in the Atlantic Ocean, some 400 nautical miles
(741km) west of the French island of Ushant. Howe's ships inflicted a severe
tactical defeat on the French fleet. Although in the aftermath of the battle
both fleets were left shattered and in no condition for further combat. Both
fleets were forced to return to their home ports.
The following is an extract taken from an account
wrote immediately after the battle, by an officer who served in the battle. It
gives a vivid description of what happened: “The sinking of the Vengeur was one
of the most awful sights ever beheld. This ship and the HMS Brunswick by some
means got on board each other. HMS Brunswick lost her mizzen mast before she
got clear, but left her enemy a wreck of horrible ruin. She carried her mast
and yards, every one away, tore her decks and sides to pieces, and left her
sinking. She went to the bottom at about a quarter past six, and I saw her
sinking, fast, but gradually. After the loss of her mizzen mast, main top mast
and rigging cut to pieces, the French hoisted an English Jack, and called for
quarters, but HMS Brunswick, having all her boats shot to pieces, could not
board the enemy, and was obliged to let her go down, and all on board
perished.” The most obstinate conflict of the battle was between
HMS Defence that carried 74 guns Captained by J. Gambier and HMS Jacobin with
110 guns. They were in close action for upwards of three hours, at the expiration
of which time HMS Jacobin went to the bottom, and HMS Defence had become
totally unmanageable as to be obliged and towed out of the line by the frigate
HMS Phaeton. The HMS Jacobin lay without masts and a helm, and moving around by
the force of the water, which rapidly entering shot holes in her hull, and
running over her galleries, she quickly sunk. Yet so invincible was the spirit
of her crew, that they were still manning their upper deck guns, while the
water was running in at the lower deck ports. It seems that they had previously
agreed never to give up and nailed their colours to the staff, which were
flying when she went down. Those on the upper deck to a man, refused to take to
a cutter, and when the water rose to where they stood, they took off their hats
and gave three cheers universally crying out “Vive la Republique Vive la
Liberte”. This is corroborated in a letter from a Seaman on board HMS Queen. (sic)
1794. Sunday 1st June.
The Irresistible and Squadron took Fort Brissoton, P. au Prince.
1794. Sunday 1st of June. Latitude 47° 48' north, longitude 18° 30' west, the wind moderate from south and by west, the enemy were seen about six miles on the lee bow of the British, in line of battle upon the larboard tack. At 5 a.m. the british fleet bore up, but at 7 h. 10 m. hauled to the wind on the same tack as the enemy; and as soon as the crews had taken their breakfast, at 8 h. 12 m. a. m. they filled, and bore down upon their opponents. About a quarter past nine the French opened their fire upon the van of the British, who were steering in a lasking direction towards the enemy. Soon after 10 a. m. the Queen Charlotte passed under the stern of the Montague of 120 guns, and ranged close up on her lee bow, where she became exposed to the fire of the 80- gun ships Juste and Jacobin. A few of the british ships following the example which had been set them by their noble and gallant chief, cut through the french line, and engaged their opponents to leeward; but the remainder hauled up to windward, some at a great distance, whilst others were sufficiently near to engage with effect. At half past ten, when the action was at its height, the french admiral in the Montagne made sail a-head, followed by his second in the line, and afterwards by such ships as had suffered but little in the contest. By 11 h. 30 m. a.m. the firing had nearly ceased, when the British were left with eleven, and the French with twelve, more or less dismasted ships: at this time none of the enemy had struck their colours, and many of the crippled ships were striving to escape under a spritsail, or some small sail set on the stump of their masts. Admiral Villaret, having failed in his attempt to cut off the Queen, which lay disabled at some distance from the body of her fleet, stood on, and contrary to all expectation, was enabled to cover and rescue four of his dismasted ships, the Republican 110, Muscius 74, Scipion 80, and Jemappes 74; a fifth, the Terrible 110, having previously joined him, by gallantly fighting her way through the british fleet. At about 1 h. 15 m. p. m. the action had nearly ceased; but it was not until 2 h. 30 m. p. m. that the six dismasted french ships nearest at hand, the Sans Pareil 80, Juste 80, Amerique, Impetueux, Northumberland, and Achille, of 74 guns, were secured. At a little after 6 f. m. a seventh french ship, the Vengeur of 74 guns, was taken possession of, but in so shattered a state that in ten minutes afterwards she went down, with upwards of 200 of her crew on board, composed chiefly of wounded men. Admiral Villaret, after recovering his four disabled ships, two of them without a stick standing except their bowsprit, stood away to the northward; and before 7 p.m. the whole of his nineteen remaining line of battle ships were out of sight of the british fleet. It was not until the 3rd that lord Howe had sufficiently repaired his ships to proceed to Spithead where he anchored with his prizes and the whole of his fleet, except thirteen ships, which he had ordered to Plymouth. As our limited space will not admit of a detailed account of this glorious contest, we merely subjoin a list of the ships and their commanders, with the killed and wounded on the 29th of May, and on the 1st of June; together with the names of the officers of marines serving in the fleet: The thanks of both houses of Parliament were voted to the flag-officers, captains, and other officers of the fleet for their bravery and gallant conduct, with their approval and acknowledgment of the services of the seamen, marines, and soldiers. The city of London voted the sum of £500 for the relief of the wounded warrant-officers, petty-officers, seamen, and marines, and also for the widows and children of those who so gloriously fell in the action. Notwithstanding this proud mark of approval, it was so apparent that several captains in the fleet had not done as much as was expected by their country, that the lords commissioners of the Admiralty restricted the distribution of medals to certain officers, excluding the commanders of eight ships in the fleet; and the sentence of a court-martial held on captain Anthony Pye Molloy, at his own request, in consequence of some observations made by the commander-in-chief reflecting on his conduct, dismissed him from the command of the Csesar. Early on the morning of the 6th of November, at 5 a.m., the 74-gun ships Alexander, captain Rodney Bligh, and Canada, captain Hamilton, fell in with a french squadron of five sail of the line and two frigates, under rear-admiral Nielly, who bore up in chase of the british ships. A running fight was continued until 1 p. m., when the Alexander, having suffered considerably, her main-yard, spanker-boom, and her three top-gallantmasts shot away, and having sustained a loss of 40 men killed and wounded, including among the latter a lieutenant of marines, struck her colours and was taken into Brest. 1794. Sunday 8th June.
The Crecent and the Druid engaged a French squadron.
1794. Wednesday 11th
June. The Dido engaged a squadron in Gourjeau bay.
1794. Tuesday 17th
June. The Romney captured S,bille.
1794. July to Sunday
10th August. The Siege and Capture of Calvi took place during the French
Revolutionary by the British forces, ending in a British Victory. Troops under
Charles Stuart under took the attack against Calvi, one of his officers being
Horatio Nelson. Heavy bombardment drew equally heavy French and Corsican
resistance. It was during the fighting on the Saturday 12th July that Nelson
lost the sight of his right eye during an assault on the town. There followed
heavy fighting, but the French batteries were captured one by one, and on
Sunday 10th August the French garrison finally surrendered with full military
honours, having held out for 40 days. During the siege it was estimated that
24,000 cannon balls had been fired at the town.
1794. June - August.
Victory and Agamemnon at Calvi.
1794. June - December.
Unsuccessful operation at Guadaloupe.
1794. Saturday 23rd
August. Squadron destroyed Volontaire.
1794. Saturday 23rd
August. The Flora and Arethusa destroyed the Filicite, Espion, and Alerte.
1794. Tuesday 21st
October. The Artois captured the Revolutionnaire.
1794. Wednesday 22nd
October. The Centurion and the Diomede engaged a French Squadron.
1794. Thursday 6th
November. The Canada and the Alexander (taken) engaged a French Squadron.
1794. Early December. While the 64-gun ship Ardent, captain Robert Manners Sutton, was stationed off Villa Franca, she took fire and blew up, and everyone on board perished. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1794. Tuesday 30th
December. The Blanche attacked the Desirade and captured a French Squadron.
1794. After a mutiny on
board HMS Culloden, her crew flogged several Marines for not joining them.
1795. Fifteen thousand Marines were voted for the service of 1795. Holland, hitherto our ally, was over-run by her legions, who, wherever they directed their steps, found the success of their arms already ensured by the delusive power of their principles. Although, in reality, a province, still a shew of acknowledged independence was maintained, and the Dutch were admitted as principals in a treaty of alliance which was concluded between the two republics. Thus fraternized, Great Britain had to reckon a new and decided enemy in a recent friend. Accordingly, orders were issued in February 1795, for the detention of vessels and property belonging to the subjects of Holland, an expedition was framed against the Cape of Good Hope, and an authority to subdue her settlements in the East, were transmitted to our Commanders in that quarter of the world. The attempt against the Cape was entrusted to the immediate conduct of Sir George Elphinstone and Major General Craig, who arrived in Simon's Bay early in July. A fruitless summons to surrender it having been forwarded to its Governor, a debarkation of 450 of the 78th Regiment, and 350 Marines, under Major, now Colonel Hill, was effected upon the 14th, in time to save that town from devoted destruction. Our troops had been expressly restrained from hostility against the Dutch forces, but such was their conduct that it soon provoked retaliation. It being necessary to dislodge them from the strong post of Mysenburgh, which was fortified with heavy guns, and secured from approach both by land and sea, by a steep mountain on the right, and shallow water, constantly agitated by surf, on its left, 800 Seamen were landed under the Captains Spranger and Hardy, which constituted a total strength of 1600 men. As they were without cannon, the whole awaited the fortune of a wind that would allow the ships of war to unite in the attack. This occurred on the 7th of August, when Commodore Blankett got under weigh with the America, Stately, Echo, and Rattlesnake; while General Craig advanced with his little army. So judicious was the Naval disposition, that the Dutch were driven by the fire of those ships, and some launches armed with carronades, from one post to another, which the troops successively occupied. Retiring to a ridge of rocky heights beyond their camp, which they had abandoned, the enemy were very spiritedly assaulted by Major Moneypenny, at the head of the advanced guard, supported by the whole of the gallant 78th. Although seconded by some heavy guns that over-awed it from across the lagoon towards Cape-town, and possessing a hold almost impregnable from its situation, they were still forced from it, after a contest which closed only with the day. In the course of it, the Dutch left behind them some artillery, which were drilled, and once more rendered serviceable by Lieutenant Coffin and his company of pikemen, from the Rattlesnake. On the morning of the 8th of August, the enemy having drawn their whole force from Cape-town, aimed it to recover the posts they had lost. Observing, however, the strength of the British positions, they desisted from any attempt, and the day was chiefly spent in skirmishing with the 1st battalion of Seamen, under Captain Hardy, and the Marines under Major Hill, who had passed the lagoon. General Craig says, that both Corps were distinguished throughout by regularity in manœuvre, and the most steady resolution. Major Hill was very ably assisted by the valuable advice of Captain, now Lieut. Colonel Sir John Douglas, during the whole of these fatiguing and combined duties. A small reinforcement arrived on the 9th from St. Helena, but the pressures of the army daily increased to such a degree, that it became expedient, in order to alleviate them, to risque the storm of one of the enemy's principal out-posts on the 27th of August, which unfortunately failed. So critically were matters circumstanced, that it was determined between the Commanders in Chief to try the fortune of another assault in six days, if Sir Allured Clarke should not appear with the expected reinforcements. A disastrous affair on the 1st of September, in which the picquet was driven in with loss, and Major Moneypenny most severely wounded, encouraged them to this daring effort on the 3d. With a train of eighteen field-pieces, and all the strength they could muster, they appeared after break of day, but were stayed in their progress by the signal for a fleet having hove in sight. From the powerful aids which had arrived, matters were pushed on most briskly, and the Army moved against the post of Wyneberg on the 14th. Here the Dutch demonstrated a shew of resistance; but Commodore Blanket appearing in Table Bay with three ships, in order to create a diversion, the enemy retreated, and early on the morning of the 16th, proposed terms of surrender. By these, the whole settlement was added to the British dominions. In the East, the Islands of Ceylon and Manar, the Peninsula of Malacca, Cochin, a seaport on the coast of Malabar, and, in fine, most of the valuable settlements of the Dutch in Hindostan, fell successively under the combined efforts of our Naval and Military forces; in all of which, however, intrigue was more conspicuous than active hostility. It falls not within my scope to enlarge upon the many disastrous events that took place in the West. There Victor Hughes, a man of the most consummate talents, but which were stained by inhumanity, acted both as the agent and the organ of republican France. He perfectly assimilated himself to the temper of his employers; recognizing only the rules of expediency, he was ever the ready advocate for the most sanguinary works and felt not the control of principle where it opposed his interests. His incendiary attempts will long be reviewed with horror by those islands which were the theatres of his plots. This year abounded with Naval achievements. In the Mediterranean the French suffered a defeat, on the 8th of March, from an inferior force, when on their way to recover Corsica. Admiral Hotham's loss, in killed and wounded, upon this partial occasion, was 315 Seamen and Marines. On the coast of America, the Hon. Captain Cochrane, with Captain Beresford, were equally conspicuous in subduing their superior antagonists; in which the former says, that the carronades on the quarter deck of the Thetis, were very ably served by Lieut. (afterward Captain) Paul Crebbin, and the Marines under his command. "Vice Admiral Cornwallis returns his sincere thanks to the Captains, Officers, Seamen, and Marines of the Fleet under his orders, for their steady and gallant conduct in the presence of the French Fleet yesterday; which firmness, he has no doubt, deterred the enemy from making a more serious attack. It would give the Vice Admiral pleasure to put the whole of their exertions in effect by meeting a more equal force, when the Country would receive advantage, as it now does honour, from the spirit so truly manifested by its brave men." The Marine Soldier can often be retraced upon those proud records. The engagement betwixt La Blanche, Captain Faulkner, and the French frigate La Pique, fought early in 1795, off the island of Guadaloupe, affords a lasting test of the superiority of English discipline and courage. While our loss was confined to 29 killed and wounded, that of the republicans exceeded a total of 212. After exhibiting every quality of a judicious and brave Officer, Captain Faulkner was shot through the heart, who left not behind him a brighter example of true heroism. 1795. Friday 3rd - 7th
January. The Diamond reconnoitred Brest.
1795. Sunday 4th
January. The Blanche captures the Pique. The official report reads ”The Marines
under Lieutenant Richardson keeping up so well directed and constant a fire,
that not a man could appear on the forecastle till she struck.”(sic)
1795. Tuesday 5th January. The 32-gun frigate Blanche, captain Robert Faulknor, cruising off Grande-terre, Guadaloupe, sustained a very severe action with the french 36-gun frigate Pique. At 1 a.m. the two frigates became closely engaged, and at 2 h. 30 m. the main and mizen-masts of the Blanche fell over the side; the Pique, having shortly afterwards ran foul of her antagonist on the larboard quarter, made several ineffectual attempts to board. About 3 a.m. captain Faulknor was killed by a musket-ball, whilst assisting lieutenant David Milne in lashing the bowsprit of the Pique to the capstan of the british frigate; but the lashings soon afterwards broke loose, and the Pique crossing the stern of the Blanche, fell on board of the latter's starboard quarter. Her bowsprit was immediately lashed by the british crew to the stump of the Blanche's mainmast and in this position, towed before the wind, the enemy were defeated in their attempts to cut the lashings, by the rapid and well-directed fire of the marines under lieutenant Thomas Richardson. Although exposed to a galling and raking fire, with her three masts over the side, the Pique continued to defend herself until 5 h. 15 m. a.m., when, having sustained a loss of 76 killed and 110 wounded, out of a crew of 279 men and boys, the French hailed that they had surrendered. The Blanche lost her commander and 7 killed, and 21 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1795. January - June.
The Blanche and the Squadron at St. Lucia, Grenada.
1795. The Marines were
further augmented to 15,000 men. In consequence of some differences arising
with regard to the Regiments of the line doing duty as marines in the fleet,
they were ordered to be disembarked, and many of the men were permitted to
enlist in the Marines at an additional bounty of five guineas; and on the 15th
of November the levy money was increased to fifteen pounds, which allowed ten
guineas and a crown bounty to each recruit. This arrangement gave such fresh
vigour to the corps, that the companies were soon up to their full strength.
1795. The French
unsuccessfully attempt to retake Corsica.
1795. Saturday 7th
March. The Berwick was captured by the French Fleet.
1795. Friday 13th
March. The Lively captured the Tourterelle.
1795. Saturday 14th
March. Hothams Victory off Genos, and the capture of two sail of the line.
1795. Sunday 29th
March. The Cerberus captured the Jean Bart.
1795. Tuesday 7th April. On the night of the 7th of April an expedition, consisting of thirty-three flat-bottomed boats carrying troops, accompanied by some gun-brigs, sailed from Havre to attack these islands; but meeting w r ith the Diamond and Hydra frigates, they were driven back and stood into Caen, where they were reinforced by seven heavy gun-brigs and forty sail of boats. After three weeks' blockade, this formidable flotilla reached the road of La Hogue, which is situated about half-way between Cape Bar fleur and the islands, and they waited until the neap tides, when the current would offer less opposition to their progress. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1795. Friday 10th
April. The Astrea captured the Gloire.
1795. Saturday 11th
April. The Hannibal captured the Gentille.
1795. Wednesday 6th May. At midnight, the guard-boat made the signal for the enemy's approach, and although the french officers were heard giving their orders, the night was so dark that none of the boats were visible. The attacking force consisted of fifty-two gun-brigs and flat-bottomed boats, having on board above 5000 men. At day-break on the 7th, the flotilla was seen drawn up in line opposite to the south-west front of the western redoubt, and a fire was instantly opened upon them from seventeen pieces of cannon, consisting of 4 four-pounders, 2 six-pounders, and 6 twenty-four pounder long guns, and 2 thirty-two pounder carronades. The brigs remained at the distance of three hundred yards, in order to batter the redoubt with their long guns, while the boats rowed up until within musket-shot of the battery; but the discharge of round, grape, and canister, poured such destruction among them, that they were soon compelled to seek their safety in flight. Six or seven boats were seen to go down, and one small flat was afterwards towed in, bottom upwards, on board of which some papers were found, stating that she had a crew of 144 persons, including 129 men of the second Boulogne battalion. The loss sustained by the British in this affair amounted to 1 marine killed, 2 marines and 2 seamen wounded; a loss much less in amount than might have been expected from the fire of upwards of 80 long guns, many of which were thirty-six, and none less than eighteen-pounders. According to the french account, their loss amounted to several hundred in killed and wounded. Owing to the calm state of the weather, the british squadron were unable to intercept the flotilla, and consequently they got back to the Hogue without further loss. A french squadron, consisting of the Hoche 74 guns, commodore Bompart, with eight frigates, having on board 3000 troops with a large train of artillery, sailed from Brest on the evening of the 6th of September, with an intention of invading Ireland. On the following morning they were discovered by the Ethalion, who continued to watch their movements; and by the time the french ships arrived on the Irish coast, a considerable british force was in pursuit. On the 11th of October, when off Tory island, the leading frigate got sight of the enemy; and on the 12th, at day -break, the British found themselves in a situation to prevent their escape. The french ships were formed in an irregular line a-head, thus: — Semillante 3fi, Romaine 40, Bellone 36, Immortalite 40, Loire 40, Hoche 74, Coquille 36, and Embuscade 36 guns. The british squadron consisted of the following ships: — Canada, 74 guns, captain sir J. B. Warren, 1 wounded. Captain William Patten, first-lieutenant Mark Oates, second-lieutenants Thomas Moore and Richard Bagnold. Foudroyant, 80 guns, captain sir J. T. Bayard, 9 wounded. Captain George Wolfe, first-lieutenant Richard Bunce, second-lieutenants Joseph Collins and Zachaeus Miller. Robust, 74 guns, captain Edward Thornborough, 10 killed, 40 wounded. Captain Richard Williams, first-lieutenant W. Cottle (mortally wounded), second-lieut. Charles Coleman. At 7 a.m. on the 12th, the Robust, followed by the Magnanime, edged away, and at 7h. 20m. they became closely engaged with the Embuscade and Coquille, and then passed on to the Hoche. The Foudroyant coming up, and discharging a few broadsides at the Loire, Immortalite, and Bellone, who had been keeping up a galling fire upon the Magnanime as she ranged a-head, and to leeward of the Robust; the three french frigates ceased their annoyance and made sail to the south-west. The Hoche, after sustaining the attack of the principal part of the british squadron, but more particularly of the Robust and Foudroyant, struck her colours at 10 h. 50 m. a. m; and out of 1237 men and boys, the Hoche lost 270 in killed and wounded. The Bellone, after receiving the fire of several ships, defended herself against the Ethalion for nearly two hours; nor did she surrender until her rigging and sails were cut to pieces, and her loss, out of 519 men, amounted to 20 killed and 45 wounded. The Embuscade, out of 486, lost 15 killed and 26 wounded; and the Coquille, having 18 killed and 31 wounded out of 507, also surrendered to the british squadron. The remaining five frigates, as they stood away to the westward, successively engaged the Anson, who had 2 men killed and 11 wounded, and her masts and rigging much cut up. On the 14th the Resolue, at 1 a. m., was fallen in with by the Melampus, and after a feeble resistance was captured. On the ]7th the Loire was engaged by the 32-gun frigate Mermaid, captain Jan.es N. Newman, and Kangaroo 18-gun brig, captain Edward Brace. After a spirited action, in which the Mermaid had her mizen-mast and main top-mast shot away, and was otherwise much damaged, with loss of 3 killed and 13 wounded; and having also disabled the brig, the Loire put before the wind and was soon out of sight, although her mast, sails, and rigging gave evidence of the effect produced by the animated fire of her opponent. Lieutenant Mortimer Timson of the marines was serving on board the Mermaid. The Loire had only escaped from one antagonist to fall into the hands of another, for at daylight on the 18th, having lost her main and fore top-mast, she was discovered by the 44-gun frigate Anson, captain P. C. Durham; who had lost her mizenmast, main-yard, and main cross-trees in her previous action with the french ship and her four companions. The Anson commenced the action at 10 h. 30 m., and the two disabled ships continued the contest until 1 1 h. 45 m. a. m., when the Kangaroo bore up and fired her broadside. Shortly afterwards the Loire's mizen-mast came down, and she surrendered. The Anson had 2 men killed; first-lieutenant Wm. A. Bell of the marines, and 12 wounded. The Loire, out of a complement of 624 men, had 46 killed and 71 wounded. Captain Durham speaks highly of first-lieutenant Deering of the marines. We have now disposed of five frigates of M. Bompart's squadron; a sixth, the Immortalite, when on her cruise to Brest on the 28th of October, was pursued bythe38-gun frigate Fisgard, captain T. B. Martin, and brought to action at 11 h. 30 m. a. m. So effectual was the fire of the french frigate, that in less than half an hour the Fisgard was rendered ungovernable, having her sails and rigging cut to pieces; but by active exertion she was again alongside of the enemy at half-past one o'clock. The firing was renewed with great fury and continued until 3 p. m.j when the Immortalite, with her mizen-mast over her side, and having six feet water in the hold, her gallant captain with 54 killed and 61 wounded out of a complement of 580, was compelled to haul down her colours. The Fisgard, out of 281 men and boys, lost 10 killed; lieutenant Mark Anthony Gerrard of the marines, and 23 wounded. The two remaining frigates, the Semillante and Romaine, reached the ports of l'Orient and Brest. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1795. Saturday 9th May.
The Melampus and squadron were in Gourville Bay.
1795. Sunday 17th May.
The Thetis and the Hussar captured the Raison and the Prlvoyante.
1795. Monday 25th May.
Thorn captured Courier National in the West indies.
1795. Monday 8th June.
The Kingfisher engaged a french convoy.
1795. Tuesday 9th June.
The Masquito captured a Privateer.
1795. Wednesday 17th
June. Cornwallis's retreat.
1795. Tuesday 23rd
June. Bridports Victory off O’Oient.
1795. Thursday 24th
June. The Dido and the Lowestoft engaged the Minerve and Artemise.
1795. Monday 25th May.
The Thorn captured the Courier National in the West Indies.
1795. Thursday 25th
June. The 300 Marines at Quiberon.
1795. Monday 29th of June. The Jason and Pique frigates, captains Charles Sterling and David Milne, when off the Penmarcks at 7 p. m. chased the french 40-gun frigate Seine, which had sailed from the Isle of France, and was making for the first french port. The pursuit continued throughout the day, and at 9 p. m. the Pique commenced firing her bow guns. At 11 p.m. she ranged up alongside, and a running fight continued for two hours and thirty minutes, when the british frigate had her main top-mast shot away, and consequently dropped astern. The Jason now coming up, took the ground; and the Pique, when on the larboard side of her consort, also stuck fast. Almost at the same instant the land near Pointe de la Trenche was seen a-head, and the french frigate was also aground, and totally dismasted. As the tide rose, the Jason swung with her stern towards the enemy's broadside, which cut up her rigging and sails, and she sustained the loss of her second-lieutenant and 6 men killed; her captain and 1 1 wounded. The Jason was soon able to bring her guns to bear; and on the approach of the Mermaid frigate, the Seine struck her colours, having sustained a loss of 170 killed and 100 wounded, out of a complement of 610 men. Every effort to get the Pique afloat proving unavailing, she was abandoned by her crew, whose loss amounted to 2 killed and 6 wounded. First-lieutenant R. A. Symes was serving on board the Jason. The 32-gun frigate Ambuscade, captain Henry Jenkins, mounting 32 long twelve-pounders, and 8 carronade twelvepounders — total 40 guns, with a reduced crew of 190 men and boys, was cruising off Bordeaux on the 14th of June at 7 a. m., when a sail was discovered running down before the wind. At 9 a.m., when the stranger had arrived nearly within gun-shot, she hauled to the wind and made sail to get away; but the Ambuscade immediately went in pursuit, and at 11 h. 30 m. she was sufficiently near to exchange shots with the french corvette Bai'onnaise, mounting 24 long eight-pounders, 6 long sixes, and 2 brass thirty-six pounders — total 32 guns, having a crew of 250 men and boys. The french ship, after shortening sail, commenced the action, which had continued an hour, when an unfortunate accident happened on board the Ambuscade: one of her main-deck guns burst, which did great damage, and wounded 11 men. The corvette, on seeing the confusion on board the british ship, made sail; but the Ambuscade was presently alongside to leeward. At this time, the Baionnaise being much cut up in her sails and rigging and having sustained a considerable loss in officers and men, with no chance of escape, laid the Ambuscade on board, carrying away with her bowsprit the british ship's starboard quarter-deck barricade, mizenshrouds, and mizen-mast, which in its fall unshipped the wheel. The Baionnaise then dropped under the Ambuscade's stern, but still remaining foul, by a grappling iron caught in the latter's rudder chain, the french troops from their bowsprit scoured the decks of the Ambuscade, whilst the british marines kept up a smart fire in return; but in a short time lieutenant Dawson, captain Jenkins and lieutenant Sinclair of the marines, were severely wounded; and they were scarcely taken below when Mr. Brown, the master, was killed. The only surviving lieutenant, Joseph Briggs, who had come from a sick cot to take part in the action, was wounded in the head, and the command of the ship now devolved on Mr. Win. B. Murray, the purser. At this moment an explosion of some cartridges on the rudder-head, occasioned by firing a gun from the cabin windows into the bow of the Bai'onnaise, produced a panic, which enabled the french crew from the bowsprit to reach the british quarter-deck, and after a short struggle the Ambuscade surrendered, with the loss of 10 killed and 36 wounded. The Baionnaise had 30 killed; her commander, captain Richer, and 30 men badly wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1795. June - December. Royal Marines in Quiberon. 1795. July. Sir Sidney Smith, when in command of the Diamond frigate, took possession of the two islands of St. Marcouf, situated off the river Isigny, on the coast of Normandy, and about four miles from the shore. The islands, which are close to one another, and each about 200 yards in length and 120 in in breadth, were mounted with several pieces of cannon, and garrisoned by a detachment of invalids and a party of marines, under lieutenants J. Maughan, — Ensor, and — Lawrence, with a proportion of seamen; and the whole under the command of lieutenant Charles P. Price, of the navy. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1795. In the early part of August. A squadron, consisting of the Monarch, Victorious, and Arrogant, of 74 guns, America and Stately, of 64 guns, with two brigs, having on board a detachment of the 78th regiment commanded by major-general Craig, anchored in Simon's Bay, Cape of Good Hope. The governorgeneral Sluysken, refusing to place the colony under the protection of his britannic Majesty, a debarkation took place of 450 men of the 78th regiment, with 300 marines, commanded by major Hill, having under him majors Ballinghall, Douglas, and Wingrove; captains Samuel Baldwin and Gilbert Gardner, and lieutenants C. W. Adair (adjutant), Wingrove, Burn, Clapperton, Glaze, Templeton, and Thomas Mould. Meanwhile the dutch militia had taken post on the adjacent heights and occupied a pass about six miles distant from the town, which they had well fortified. A thousand seamen were also landed and formed into battalions under captains Hardy of the Echo, and Spranger of the Rattlesnake. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1795. Friday 7th August. The lighter ships of the squadron stood in shore, and with the gun-boats and launches covered the advance of the troops so effectually, that at 4 p. m. major-general Craig, after a fatiguing march over heavy sandy ground, arrived at and took possession of the abandoned dutch camp. The advanced guard of the 78th, supported by the battalion, drove the Dutch from an advantageous post on a rocky eminence, and on the following day, the 8th, the enemy having augmented his force from Cape Town, and having several fieldpieces, advanced to regain the position they had lost; but after some skirmishing the Dutch were compelled to retire. The battalion of marines under major Hill obtained the commendation of major-general Craig, " for their steadiness and resolution" on this occasion. 1795. Friday 7th August - 16th September. During the ‘Napoleonic Wars’, Britain captured the Dutch Cape Colony’s, from the Dutch East India Company. 350 Marines landed under Major Hill and took part in the battle of Muizenburg, receiving the commendation of Major General Craig “for their steadiness and resolution” upon this occasion. The advanced guard of the 78th, supported by the Marines, drove the Dutch from their position on the heights, and on the Thursday 8th August repelled a counter attack supported by artillery. 1795. Saturday 22nd
August . Engagement of Iris and consorts with Dutch frigates.
1795. Tuesday 25th
August. Spider (cutter) captured a brig.
1795. Wednesday 26th
August. Cutting-out exploits at Alassio and Lanqueglia Bays.
1795. Friday 3rd July.
The Melampus and the Hebe captured the Vesuve.
1795. July. Nelson
Captures Elba.
1795. Sunday 12th July.
The Cumberland captured the Alcide off Hyeres.
1795. Friday 7th August
- 16th September. During the ‘Napoleonic Wars’, Britain captured the Dutch Cape
Colony’s, from the Dutch East India Company. 350 Marines landed under Major
Hill and took part in the battle of Muizenburg, receiving the commendation of
Major General Craig “for their steadiness and resolution” upon this occasion.
The advanced guard of the 78th, supported by the Marines, drove the Dutch from
their position on the heights, and on the Thursday 8th August repelled a
counter attack supported by artillery.
1795. Saturday 22nd
August. Engagement of the Iris and consorts with dutch Frigates.
1795. Tuesday 25th
August. Spider (cutter) captured a Brig.
1795. Friday 26th
August. Cutting out exploits at Alassio and Lanqueglia Bays.
1795. Monday 28th
September. Rose captured a privateer and sank another.
1795. Monday 28th September. The 32-gun frigate Southampton, captain James Macnamara, when cruising off Genoa, chased several suspicious sail, and at 10 p.m. brought to action the french 36-gun frigate Vestale. After exchanging several broadsides, the enemy's ship made oft under all sail, closely pursued by the Southampton, until the mizen of the latter fell over the side; and although great exertion was made to clear the wreck, and in erecting a jury-mast, the Vestale effected her escape, having 8 men killed, and 9 wounded. Lieutenant Archibald Campbell of the marines was serving on board the Southampton. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1795. Tuesday 29th
September. Southampton engaged Vestale.
1795. August. The
capture of the Cape Colony by Elphinstone.
1795. August - October.
Operations under Commodore Rainier at Ceylon.
1795. August -
December. The capture of Malacea, Chinsura and Cohin.
1795. Wednesday 16th
September. The Capture of Cape Town from the Dutch.
1795. Wednesday 7th
October. Action off St. Vincent. Censeur captured by the French.
1795. Saturday 10th
October. Mermaid captured Brutus.
1795. Tuesday 13th
October. Mermaid captured Republicaine.
1795. Wednesday 14th
October. Melampus and Latona engaged batteries at Groix.
1795. Thursday 15th
October. Melampus and consorts engaged Tortue and Nertide.
1795. Saturday 5th December. As the 74-gun ship Culloden, captain Thomas Troubridge, lay at -Spithead, the crew, bursting into open mutiny, unshipped the ladders; and having broken into the magazine, they raised a barricade ofhammocks across the deck between the bits, loaded the two second guns from forward with canister and grape, and pointed them towards the hatchway. The marines, with the exception of six, were immediately under arms, commanded by captain Thomas Currie, with first-lieutenant Hugh Holland, and second-lieutenant G. A. Li- vingstone. The seamen continued below during the night, arming themselves and preparing for defence; but on the morning of the 17th the petty-officers and some of the seamen were allowed to come upon deck. Notwithstanding the endeavours of admirals lord Bridport, Cornwallis, and Colpoys to induce the men to return to their allegiance, they continued to act in defiance of their officers until the 10th, when captain the hon. Thomas Pakenham succeeded in persuading them to return to their duty. On the 15th the ten ringleaders were tried by a court-martial, and on the 13th of January five of them suffered on board the Culloden at Spithead, and the others received the king's pardon. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Eighteen thousand Marines was the establishment of 1796. The first object of the main Army was against St. Lucia, upon which island, a debarkation was made on the 27th of April. A series of attacks took place against the enemy's posts, in which Brigadier General Moore, and the 27th Regiment, were particularly noticed. "During the services which have been carried on in the island of St, Lucia, all the courage and every exertion of the Army, would have proved ineffectual, if Rear Admiral Sir H. C. Christian, and the Royal Navy, had not stepped forward with the alacrity which had been so conspicuous in forwarding the most arduous part of the public service; to their skill and unremitting labour is, in a great measure, owing the success which has attended his Majesty's arms. It will afford the Commander in Chief the greatest satisfaction to be able to lay before his Majesty the eminent services which have, on this occasion, been performed by the Royal Navy; and Admiral Sir H. C. Christian will confer a particular obligation on Lieut. General Sir R. Abercromby and the Army at large, if he will communicate to the Royal Navy, and particularly to Captains Lane, Ryves, and Stephenson, and the other Officers who acted on shore; and to the Corps of Marines, the great obligation which they consider themselves under to them. St. Vincents and Grenada, disorganized by the bustling Victor Hughes, were again restored to order; in effecting which objects, the Marines were also auxiliary, in union with their brethren of the Navy. An expedition, that was destined for the recovery of the Cape of Good Hope, under Admiral Lucas, became a prey to the active vigilance of Sir George Elphinstone, who, with a cool judgment, and anxious to spare the effusion of blood, proposed terms of surrendering his squadron. By this exemplary address, eight ships of war were gained without a shot, or the loss of a man. Captain, now Lord Nelson, gave crouded displays of his zeal and courage upon various services in the Mediterranean during this year, by the cutting out some vessels from under the batteries of Loano, the capture of a Spanish frigate in La Minerve, and in obtaining possession of the Isle of Elba, without any loss. Porto Ferrajo, afterwards noted for its distinguished defence by a few Marines and some mixed troops, likewise capitulated to him, on the Captain, of 74 guns, having been placed against the grand Bastion. The able valour of Captain Macnamara, of the Southampton, in boarding and bringing off, from under a heavy fire of the batteries on Porquerollos, one of the Hieres islands, the corvette Utile, is beyond praise. Lieut. Lydiard behaved most spiritedly, and William Oirton, private Marine, was the only man killed on this brilliant service. Returning homewards, the Naval incidents of the year were repeated and animated. Carter mortally, of which he soon died, leaving behind him the merited character of a most excellent Officer and amiable man. The fortunate contest between the Unicorn, Captain Sir Thomas Williams, and La Tribune, began under an obvious disadvantage, and while it has fully established the fame of that Officer, it was likewise most honourable to Lieut. Hart of my Corps. The Seamen and Marines of La Margaretta were also much distinguished in Captain Martin's official dispatch, announcing the capture of La Tamise. Captain Trollope, in the Glatton, of 54, armed with heavy carronades, stands most highly on the records of this year, by his having encountered and beat a squadron carrying upwards of 200 guns, and in every respect nearly thrice his force. While the circumstances of the battle reflect a lustre upon all who fought, the unsubdued spirit of Captain Strangeways, of Marines, was truly heroic, and demands the grateful sympathy of his Country and his Corps. After having received a ball in his thigh, he was necessarily carried below, and on a tourniquet having been applied by the Surgeon, he insisted upon going again to his quarters, where he continued to animate his men until he fainted from loss of blood, when Captain Trollope was obliged to interpose his authority for his removal from danger. He afterwards fevered and died, forsaking by destiny a distressed widow and family to deplore his fall, to the tutelar care of Providence and the British nation William Hall, Corporal of Marines, was, besides, the only one wounded in this memorable action. Sir John Warren, by his reiterated exploits through the year, has very meritedly founded a name for spirit and zeal. Judging, from external evidences, their reception would have been worthy of Irishmen, had their invaders reached their shores. 1796. Tuesday 19th January. The revolutionary spirit which prevailed in Holland, rendered that country an easy conquest for the armies of France while at the same time she retained the nominal dignity of an independent state, under the style of the Batavian republic, it gave to the conquerors every advantage which they could have derived from possessing Holland as a province, without incurring the expense of maintaining her as an integral part of the french empire. England took the earliest opportunity of weakening the maritime power of the new ally of France; and on the 19th of January orders were issued for seizing all dutch vessels in the british ports. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Monday 15th
February. Ceylon capitulated without resistance.
1796. Monday 16th February. A small squadron, under rearadmiral Peter Rainier, with three transports conveying troops, arrived off the dutch island of Amboyna, the capital of the Molucca islands; and the troops having landed on the same afternoon, possession was taken of the colony without resistance. The squadron sailed for the islands of Banda on the 5th of March, and on the evening of the 7th the expedition arrived off Banda Neira. Early on the afternoon of the 8th the troops, with the marines from the squadron, were disembarked on the north side of the island, covered by the Orpheus frigate, whose fire having silenced the batteries, they were soon occupied by the troops; and on the same evening these islands surrendered to the british arms. 1796. Tuesday 16th
February - Sunday 8th March. The capture of Amboyna and Banda Niera.
1796. Tuesday 16th
February. Amboyna capitulated.
1796. Tuesday 8th March.Vice-admiral Hotham was lying in Leghorn roads, with a fleet of fifteen sail of the line and several frigates, when he received intelligence, on the 8th of March, that the french fleet had been seen off the island of Sainte Marguerite. On the 9th the british fleet put to sea, and the 10th the look-out ships got sight of the enemy. On the 13th the french fleet, consisting of thirteen ships of the line, was seen to windward, and the admiral made the signal for a general chase. The Inconstant being far in advance, captain F. T. Freemantle had the opportunity of distinguishing himself, by ranging up within musketshot of the 80-gun ship C^a-Ira (who had lost her fore and main topmasts) and engaging her for some time. During the day the Agamemnon, Bedford, and Egmont became engaged with the rearmost ships, but nothing of importance occurred. On the 14th, at o h. 30 m. a.m., when about seven leagues to the south-west of Genoa, the British finding themselves to windward of the enemy, the Bedford and Captain were ordered to attack the dismasted Ca-Ira, then in tow of the Censeur of 74 guns, and at some distance from the body of their fleet. Both the british ships were so roughly handled in their attempt, as to be compelled to withdraw from the contest, and the Captain was rendered so unmanageable that she was towed clear of her opponents. The wind having died away, it was with difficulty that the enemy's fleet wore round at 8 a. m; and then passing to leeward of the British, they became engaged with the Illustrious and Courageux, both which ships suffered severely; the former losing her main, mizen-mast, and fore-topmast, and the Courageux her main and mizen-masts. The french line then stood on, abandoning the Ca-Ira and Censeur to their fate; but neither of these ships surrendered until they were dismasted and incapable of further resistance, and sustained a loss of 400 men in killed and wounded. The troops serving in the fleet w r ere principally from regiments of the line: the only officers of marines were captain Hugh Dawes, lieutenants Henry Johnstone, Francis Lynn, and William Allen. Vice-admiral Hotham was lying in San-Fiorenzo bay on the 8th of July, with the fleet as stated above, to which must be added the Victory 100 guns, Bai'fleur 98, Gibraltar 80, Bombay Castle, Saturn, Cumberland, Culloden, and Audacious, of 74 guns, making a total of twentv-three sail of the line and two frigates, when the french fleet, consisting of seventeen sail of the line with several frigates, appeared off that harbour. Admiral Hotham immediately put to sea, and the British, before noon, were under all sail, steering westward in pursuit of the enemy. On the 13th, at day-break, when off Hyeres, the french fleet was discovered about five miles to leeward; upon which viceadmiral Hotham formed his ships in line of battle, and edged away, so as to cut off the enemy from the shore, then about five leagues distant. At 12 h. 30 m. p.m. a shift of wind brought the leading ships, which were the Victory, Culloden, and Cumberland, in a position to engage; and at 2 p.m. the Alcide 74, struck her colours. Shortly afterwards several other british ships had been distantly engaged, and were coming up fast with the enemy, when the signal was made to discontinue the action. The Victory had 2 midshipmen and 3 marines killed; 1 lieutenant, 1 midshipman, major Frederick Hill Flight and lieutenant William Darley, of the marines, and 11 men wounded; Culloden, 2 killed, and 5 wounded; Blenheim, 2 killed, 2 wounded; Captain, 1 killed and Defence, 1 killed and 6 wounded: making a total of 1 1 killed, and 27 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Wednesday 9th
March. Boats of Barfleur and consorts, re-captured vessels at Tunis.
1796. Thursday 10th
March. Phaeton and convoy captured Bonne Citoyenne.
1796. Sunday 13th March. The 32-gun frigate Lively, captain George Burl ton, when about thirteen leagues to the westward of Ushant, captured the 28-gun corvette Tourterelle, after a gallant defence, which lasted from 10 b. 40 m. a.m. until 1 h. 30 m. p.m., when, being much disabled, with 16 men killed and 25 wounded, she struck her colours. The Lively had only two men wounded. The officer of marines of the Lively was lieutenant B. Burke. The Astrea of 32 guns, captain lord Harry Paulet, having chased from a squadron under rear-admiral Colpoys cruising to the westward, on the 10th of April, at 10 h. 30 m. p.m., brought to close action the french 36-gun frigate Gloire, captain Beens, and after a defence of fifty-eight minutes, compelled the enemy to haul down her colours. The Asti'ea did not lose a man and had only 8 wounded. The Gloire lost 40 in killed and wounded. Second-lieutenant William Johnstone was the officer of marines on board the Astrea. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Thursday 17th
March. The storming of batteries at Herqui.
1796. Thursday 17th March. Diamond and convoy engaged at Port Spergni. Sir Sidney Smith, with that intrepidity in hazard so natural to him, destroyed a small convoy within the port of Herqui; which was not accomplished however, without landing some Seamen, under Lieut. Pine, and the Marines of the Diamond, under Lieut. Carter, who, in spite of a body of troops, pushed ashore, climbed the precipice in front of their batteries, and re-embarked, after having spiked the guns. Lieut. Pine was wounded, and Lieut. Carter mortally, of which he soon died, leaving behind him the merited character of a most excellent Officer and amiable man. 1796. Friday 18th March. The 38-gun frigate Diamond, captain sir William Sidney Smith, proceeded to attack a trench corvette and convoy in the port of Herqui, near Cape Frehel, which was defended by two batteries mounting 3 twenty-four pounders, situated on a high promontory. Lieutenant H. Pine and lieutenant Edmund Carter, of the marines, landed with a detachment and stormed the battery. The only loss sustained by the British in this gallant affair was lieutenant Carter, mortally wounded. 1796. Sunday 20th
March. Anson and consorts engaged with French convoy. Sir John Warren, with his
little squadron, engaged a very superior force, taking one frigate and four of
a convoy. Lieutenant. Williams, of Marines, appears mentioned by Sir Edward
Pellew as having rendered essential service on board the Indefatigable, in
capturing La Virginie on the 21st of April.
The fortunate contest between the Unicorn, Captain Sir
Thomas Williams, and La Tribune, began under an obvious disadvantage, and while
it has fully established the fame of that Officer, it was likewise most
honourable to Lieutemant. Hart. The Seamen and Marines of La Margaretta were
also much distinguished in Captain Martin's official dispatch, announcing the
capture of La Tamise. Captain Trollope, in the Glatton, of 54, armed with
heavy carronades, stands most highly on the records of this year, by his having
encountered and beat a squadron carrying upwards of 200 guns, and in every
respect nearly thrice his force. While the circumstances of the battle reflect
a lustre upon all who fought, the unsubdued spirit of Captain Strangeways, of
Marines, was truly heroic, and demands the grateful sympathy of his Country and
his Corps. After having received a ball in his thigh, he was necessarily
carried below, and on a tourniquet having been applied by the Surgeon, he
insisted upon going again to his quarters, where he continued to animate his
men until he fainted from loss of blood, when Captain Trollope was obliged to
interpose his authority for his removal from danger. He afterwards fevered and
died, forsaking by destiny a distressed widow and family to deplore his fall,
to the tutelar care of Providence and the British nation. William Hall,
Corporal of Marines, was, besides, the only one wounded in this memorable
action.e capture of La Tamise.
1796. Monday 21st of
March. The town and fort of Leogane, in the island of San Domingo, was attacked
by a detachment of Colonial and British troops under Major General Forbes with
two divisions, supported by the squadron, which consisted of the three ships of
the line HMS Leviathan, HMS Swiftsure, and HMS Africa, with the frigates HMS
Ceres and HMS Iphigenia, but the fort proving better capable of defence than
was anticipated, the troops were withdrawn on the following day and night,
without sustaining much loss. HMS Leviathan had 5 men killed, and 12 wounded,
and HMS Africa one killed, and 7 wounded, and both ships were so seriously
damaged, that they were under the necessity of going to Jamaica to refit
A more successful attack was afterwards made on the fort and parish of Bombarde, at a distance of fifteen miles. The only road leading to it, by which cannon could be conveyed, had been effectually blockaded by the enemy; never the less the troops, after some difficulty and opposition, surrounded the fort and compelled the garrison, consisting of 300 whites, to surrender; but the possession of the place cost the British 8 killed, and 18 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Spain having become a compulsory ally of France, during the last year, an expedition took place against the valuable island of Trinidad, on the North East coast of Terra Firma, in South America, which surrendered after a very trifling resistance, to the joint forces under Sir Ralph Abercrombie and Rear Admiral Hervey. Blended with this capture, were 4 sail of the line and one frigate, which offered no opposition to our fleet, but were destroyed by the enemy, excepting the St. Damaso of 70 guns. His masterly manœuvres, upon the 14th of February, rendered this encouraging advantage unavailing to the Spanish Fleet, which, by a bold and decisive push, he separated, and defeated. This immortal action was not only crowned with the glory of capturing 4 sail of the line, but it had also its influence upon the spirits of our enemy, in every subsequent combat on the sea. An uncommon display of personal intrepidity was evinced by Commodore Nelson, Captain Miller, and Lieutenant (afterwards Captain) Berry, who at the head of the boarders from his Majesty's ship Captain, assaulted and carried, sword in hand, the San Joseff and St. Nicholas. The battle raged from 10 in the morning, until the close of day, which screened this powerful armament from destruction. Major William Norris, Lieut. G. A. Livingstone, and Serjeant Watson, of Marines, finished their lives, and 6 privates were killed, besides 21 wounded, in a contest where all were distinguished. The Legislative thanks were bestowed upon every class of our victorious fleet, and all these honours which a grateful Country could give, were conferred upon her meritorious servants. The port of Cadiz was afterwards most effectually blockaded, and was twice bombarded, in one of which Captain John Oldfield, of Marines, was wounded. While I thus appear the humble advocate in recommending an ardency for early achievement, I would at the same time urge a gradation of recompence, or of honorary grants, suited to the feelings of every description of its agents. These have been of old standing, and have undergone many a change, alternately adapted to the fluctuating manners of society. Many a useful hint might be gleaned from the institutions of the Greeks and the Romans, and as human nature never alters, they might well be applied to ourselves. The French have studied and practised these doctrines with success. Louis the 11th rewarded the prowess and bravery of one of his soldiers, Launay Morvillier, by publicly taking the collar of a military order, from his own neck, and putting it on his. Under the republican system, this has been invariably observed, towards the meanest, by every convention, of whatever stuff it has been composed, and it has been one of the engines by which their numerous armies have been worked into enthusiasm. The boats of the Lively and La Minerve under Lieut. Hardy, in which, Lieut. Bulkeley, of Marines, most handsomely volunteered, boarded, and carried La Mutine brig of 12 six pounders and 2 thirty-six pound corronades, having 113 men, in the bay of Sancta Cruz, amidst the fire of all the Spanish batteries, and a sharp discharge from the French corvette. Only 15 were wounded in this hot affair. Lieut. Hardy was deservedly promoted, but his brave companions have no traces of the deed, but in their own minds. An unsuccessful essay upon Teneriffe on the 25th of July, under Commodore Nelson, fraught with many feats of unsurpassed bravery, ended in the re-embarkation of the seamen and Marines, by consent of the enemy, who were threatened by Captain Trowbridge, with the vengeance of our squadron, in the event of molestation. Owing to the judicious proposals made by that excellent Officer, boats were supplied by the Spanish Governor, to remedy the loss of our own from the violence of the surf; the wounded were kindly taken into the hospitals, and that generous foe even tendered such refreshments as his invaders might request. Commodore Nelson here lost his arm, which happily did not deprive his Country of the services of one of its most valuable subjects. An avenging power, in numberless examples, too striking to be overlooked, has followed those traitorous murderers, and has vindicated the justice of his injured laws. Contempt embittered by remorse have been the inseparable companions of all those guilty individuals. Driven from the shores where they sanguinely anticipated nothing but recompence and applause, many of those wretched outcasts, by retracing their steps towards their native land, have met a certain and disgraceful doom, others unable to bear the stings of a wounded conscience, and abhorring existence, have precipitated their own dissolution, while the remains of those unhappy wanderers still throw a wishful eye from, their lurking spots, back on the soil which gave them birth, but where a vigilant Police, that vicegerent of heaven's purposes, is ever awake to their crimes. Even the very ship which was the theatre of their lawless outrage, has also been involved in their accursed destinies, for she was sometime after gallantly cut out of Porto Cavallo, by Sir Edward Hamilton, at the head of a body of Seamen and Marines from the Surprize, although protected by 200 heavy cannon, and under circumstances of incredible carnage, with the loss of only one Englishman .A peculiar spirit of activity seemed to pervade our squadron upon the Jamaica station, during the year 1797. Above 60 vessels of different descriptions were taken or destroyed, under batteries where they rode in confident security, but which were uniformly inadequate to shelter them from determined valour. The zeal and directing genius of Captains W. H. Ricketts, and the unfortunate Pigot, were always well seconded by their Officers, their Sailors and Marines. The turbulent demon first appeared in the garb of justice, but after having gained its ends, he soon threw away the mask which covered his mutinous and corrupt heart. Those liberal concessions made by a considerate and grateful Country, appeared to stimulate, instead of suppressing revolt, and its contaminating principles diffused themselves over every quarter of the world. 1796. Wednesday 13th
April. Revolutionnaire captured Unite off Ushant.
1796. Sunday 17th
April. Boats of Diamond captured Vengeur.
1796. Wednesday 20th April. The 44-gun frigate Indefatigable, captain sir Edward Pellew, after a chase of fifteen hours, brought to action, at about midnight, the french 40-gun frigate Virginie and the contest was continued under all sail, during one hour and forty-five minutes, by which time the french frigate had lost her mizen-mast and main top-mast; nor was the Indefatigable much less disabled, having had her mizen top-mast and gaff shot away. The Amazon and Concorde arriving up, compelled the Virginie to surrender, having 15 men killed and 27 wounded. First-lieutenant Samuel Williams was serving on board the Indefatigable, which ship did not lose a man in the action. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Wednesday 20th
April. Inconstant captured Unite in the Mediterranean.
1796. Monday 25th
April. Agamemnon and squadron captured French vessels at Finale.
1796. Wednesday 27th
April. The capture of the Island of St. Lucia. 350 Marines were landed and the
Re official report read “The conduct of the Marines upon this, as upon all
other occasions, was perfectly correct.”
1796. Monday 27th April. Rear-admiral sir Hugh C. Christian arrived off Saint Lucie, with a quadron and several transports, having a large body of troops on board under the command of lieutenant-general sir Ralph Abercromby, which were landed at several points, under cover of the ships of war; and 800 seamen were also disembarked, to co-operate in the intended attack on Morne Fortunee. Morne Chabot, the first post attacked, was carried by one division of the force on the 28th, with the loss of 13 killed, and 49 wounded ; but the attempt on the batteries near the grand cul-de-sac on the 3rd of May, and on the post of the Vigie on the night of the 17th, although conducted with the greatest bravery, were both unsuccessful, and was attended with a loss of 12 killed, 56 wounded, and 34 missing at the first of these assaults ; and of one officer killed, 14 men wound- ed, and 65 missing at the latter. After a few attacks of outposts, the enemy retired to the fortress of Morne Fortunee, and having obtained a suspension of arms, the garrison, amounting to 2000 men, marched out with the honours of war, and laid down their arms. The total loss sustained in the reduction of this valuable colony amounted to 66 killed, 378 wounded, and 122 missing. The marines of the squadron, amounting to 320 men, assisted in these operations, and their promptitude and gallantry was acknowledged by lieutenant-general sir Ralph Abercromby in the handsomest terms. 1796. Saturday 30th
April. Agamemnon and squadron captured six vessels at Oneglia.
1796. April - May.
Operations resulting in capitulation of Barbados.
1796. Wednesday 4th
May. Spencer captured Volcan.
1796. Thursday 12th
May. Phoenix captured Argo.
1796. Tuesday 17th May. The 36-gun frigate Thetis, captain the hon. A. F. Cochrane, and 28-gun frigate Hussar, captain J. P. Beresford, when twenty leagues from Cape Henry, attacked five french frigates, armed en flute; and after an action of an hour, captured the Prevoyante mounting 24 guns, and Raison 18 guns. The Thetis had 8 men killed, and 9 wounded; the Hussar 3 men wounded. Lieutenant Paul Crebbin of the marines was serving on board the Thetis; and on board the Hussar, lieutenant James Atcherly. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Friday 27th May.
Suffisante captured Revanche.
1796. Friday 4th June. The 28-gun frigate Dido, captain George Henry Towry, and 32-gun frigate Lowestoffe, captain Robert Gambier Middleton, when near Toulon, discovered the french 40-gun frigate Minerve, and 36-gun frigate Artemise. At 8 h. 30 m. a.m. the Minerve wore round on the same tack as the Dido and opened her fire; shortly afterwards the Minerve bore up and ran the Dido on board, with her bowsprit locked in the mizen rigging of her little opponent; and after several attempts to board, which were defeated by the marines and pikemen of the Dido, the bowsprit of the Minerve snapped in two, carrying with it the wounded mizen-mast of the british frigate. The Minerve then passing a-head, received the fire of the LowestofTe, which brought down the french ship's fore-mast, also her main and mizen top-masts. About this time the Artemise fired an ineffectual broadside and hauled her wind under all sail. At 11 h. 45 m. a.m. the Minerve, on the fail of her mizen-mast, hailed to say they had surrendered. The Dido had 6 men killed, her first-lieutenant Richard Buckoll, and 14 wounded. The Lowestoffe had only 3 men wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.)
1796. Wednesday 8th June. When cruising at the entrance of the Channel, the 32-gun frigate Unicorn, captain Thomas Williams, and 36-gun frigate Santa Margarita, captain Thomas Byam Martin, chased the french 36-gun frigates Tamise (late Thames) and Tribune, with the Lege re corvette. At one p. m. the enemy opened a fire from their stern chasers with such destructive effect upon the sails and rigging of their opponents, that it was not until 4 p.m. that the Santa Margarita was enabled to close with the Tamise; and after a resistance of twenty minutes, compelled her to strike her colours, having 32 men killed, and 19 wounded. The Santa Margarita, on board which ship was second-lieutenant James Dyson of the marines, had only 2 men killed, and 3 wounded. 1796. Wednesday 8th -
11th June. The capture of the Island of St. Vincent, during the evening the
troops destined for the attack were safely disembarked, under cover of the 38
gun frigate HMS Arethusa, Captain Thomas Wolley, who also sent a detachment of
seamen to serve on shore with the troops. After some skirmishing and an
obstinate resistance, the enemy, composed chiefly of people of colour and
Charibs, capitulated on the terms proposed by General Abercromby, who, on the
11th, took possession of the island. The loss sustained by the British amounted
to 38 officers and privates killed, and 145 wounded.
1796. Thursday 9th June. The british fleet was cruising off Toulon, when a french corvette was descried working up towards the road of Hyeres; upon which, captain Macnamara of the 32gun frigate Southampton, was directed by sir John Jervis to endeavour to bring her out, and with this intent the british frigate steered for the Grande Passe, between the islands of Porquerolles and Posteros. At 6 p.m., the corvette having been discovered lying close to the shore, the Southampton stood boldly across Hyeres road, and at 8 h. 30 m. p.m. got within pistol-shot of the french ship-corvette Utile, of 24 guns, with a crew of 130 men. Captain Macnamara hailed and cautioned the commander not to make a fruitless resistance; but the latter instantly snapped his pistol at the speaker as the Utile fired her broadside, which was quickly returned by the guns of the Southampton. After the third broadside, captain Macnamara hauled athwart the hawse of the Utile, and having lashed the corvette's bowsprit to the main rigging of the British frigate, lieutenant Lydiard, heading the boarders, sprang upon the frenchman's decks, and after a determined resistance of ten minutes, during which the french captain gallantly fell at his post, the corvette surrendered. Lieutenant Archibald Campbell of the marines was serving on board the Southampton, whose loss on this occasion was confined to 1 marine wounded. The Utile's loss amounted to 8 men killed, and 17 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Saturday
11thJune. The capture of Grenada, was taken with ease after the locals knew
what had happened on St Vincent only 4 days earlier.
1796. Monday 13th June. At 1 a.m., the 36-gun frigate Dryad, captain lord Amelius Beauclerk, cruising off Cape Clear, discovered the french 40-gun frigate Proserpine, and pursued her until 9 p.m., when she closed on the lee and larboard quarter of her opponent. After a resistance of forty minutes, the Proserpine having sustained a loss of 30 men killed, and 45 wounded, struck her colours. Lieutenant Thomas Shearman was serving on board the Dryad, whose loss amounted to 2 men killed, and 7 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Wednesday 22nd June. Lord Bridport, with fourteen sail of the line and several frigates, when to the westward of Belleisle, and return- ing to his station off Ushant from escorting the expedition under sir J. B. Warren to Quiberon, discovered the french fleet under admiral Villaret, which had chased admiral Cornwallis, standing towards the land: all sail was made in pursuit, but in the afternoon, it fell nearly calm. At 3 a. m. on the 23rd, a light breeze sprang up from the south-west, and as the daylight appeared, the french fleet were seen right a-head in a cluster, except three or four ships, who were somewhat astern of their companions. At 6 a.m. the sternmost of the enemy opened their fire, and at 6 h. 15 m. the Queen Charlotte and Orion commenced action with the Alexandre and Formidable. The breeze freshening, brought up the remainder of the british ships, and the cannonade continued until 7 h. 57 m. a.m., when lord Bridport made the signal to discontinue the action; having taken possession of the Alexandre 74 guns (formerly british), Formidable 74, and Tigre 74. The loss sustained by the british fleet amounted to 31 killed, and 113 wounded. Lieutenant William Jephcott of the marines was killed on board the Sans Pareil. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Friday 27th June.
Inconstant saved British residents and consorts at Leghorn.
1796. June. Mermaid and
squadron captured Grenada.
1796. Thursday 7th
July. Quebec and convoy engaged two French frigates.
1796. Sunday 10th July.
Captain seized Porto Ferrajo.
1796. Friday 15th July.
HMS Glatton engaged a French squadron off Flanders.
1796. Sunday 17th July. The 50-gun ship Glatton, captain Henry Trollope, mounting 28 long eighteen-pounders on the main-deck, and 28 carronade sixty-eight pounders on the lower deck, being then on the coast of Flanders, discovered several ships under the land, which proved to be four frigates: one mounting 46 guns, one of 44 guns, one of 40, one of 28, with two corvettes of 22 guns each, and two brigs. At 8 p.m. the four frigates formed in line to await the attack; and at 10 p.m. the Glatton ranged up alongside of the commodore, the second from the van, who, on displaying the french colours, opened a brisk fire, and was immediately seconded by the other ships. Shortly afterwards the leading ship tacked, and after receiving a destructive broadside from the Glatton, stood away to the southward. In about twenty minutes after the commencement of the action, the french commodore tacked, to avoid running on the Brill shoal; and while in stays, received a heavy raking fire, which did considerable damage: the other french ships had previously gone on the other tack. After the Glatton got round, which was attended with some difficulty owing to the disabled state of her sails and rigging, she exchanged a few shot with one of the three ships to leeward; but before 11 p.m. the enemy withdrew from the contest, leaving the Glatton so much dismantled as to be incapable of pursuit. No men were killed on board the Glatton, and the only wounded were captain Henry Strangeways of the marines, and a corporal. This gallant officer, although mortally wounded by a musket-ball in the thigh and compelled to quit the deck to have a tourniquet applied, insisted on returning to his quarters, where he continued to animate his men, until, being faint from loss of blood, he was carried below. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Friday 22nd July. The 32-gun frigate Aimable, captain Jemmet Mainwaring, when cruising off the island of Guadaloupe, sustained a gallant action with the french 3fi-gun frigate Pensee, which, after some manoeuvring, commenced at 8 h. 35 m. a.m., and continued until 9 a.m., when the enemy bore away, firing her stern chase-guns until out of range of her dull sailing opponent. The Aimable had only two men wounded, but the Pensee is reported to have sustained a loss of 90 men in killed and wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Friday 22nd -
23rd July. Amiable engaged Pensee, which escaped.
1796. Monday 8th
August. Mermaid engaged Vengeance and batteries.
1796. Wednesday 17th
August. The surrender of Dutch Squadron at Simon's Bay.
1796. Monday 22nd -23rd
August. Galatea and convoy destroyed Andromaque.
1796. Thursday 25th
August. Raison engaged Vengeance.
1796. Sunday 28th
August. Topaze captured Elizabeth.
1796. Friday 9th September. The Arrogant of 74 guns, captain Richard Lucas, on board of which ship were, captain George Ball and first-lieutenant Robert Johnston, of the marines; with the Victorious 74, captain William Clark; captain of marines, major Frederick H. Flight, first-lieutenant William Darley, and lieutenant Thomas Buck; when off Pulo Way, isle of Sumatra, sustained an action with six french frigates under rear-admiral Sercey. The firing commenced at 7 h. 25 m. a.m., and lasted until 10 h. 55 m., at which time the enemy's squadron bore up to the westward under a crowd of sail. The Arrogant was very seriously cut tip and lost 7 killed and 27 wounded. The Victorious, who had only 485 men at quarters, having a lieutenant and 90 men away in prizes, lost 17 men killed, her captain and 55 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.)
1796. Friday 23rd
September. Pelican engaged Medee.
1796. Thursday 13th October. The 32-gun frigate Terpsichore, captain Richard Bo wen, when cruising off the port of Carthagena, observed the Spanish 34-gun frigate Mahonesa running down towards her. Having approached within hail at 9 h. 30 m. a.m., the Spanish frigate rounded to on the weather-beam of the Terpsichore and commenced an action which continued with great spirit for an hour and twenty minute 2 when the enemy endeavoured to make off. At this time the Terpsichore was much disabled in her masts, spars, and rigging; but in less than twenty minutes the british frigate had refitted, was again alongside her opponent, and ready to recommence the contest; when the Mahonesa struck her colours, having lost 30 men killed, and as many wounded. Second lieutenant John Orton of" the marines was serving on board the Terpsichore, which ship had none killed, and but four men wounded. Having repaired her damages at Gibraltar, the Terpsichore was again at sea in search of an opponent, when on the 12th of December, at day-break, being twenty leagues to the westward of Cadiz, an enemy's frigate was discerned lying to, about four miles on the weather-quarter. Sail was immediately made in chase, which continued until 9 h. 30 m. p.m. on the 13th, when the enemy's ship, (which was the french 36-gun frigate Vestale), hauled up her courses and hove to. At 10 p.m. the Terpsichore ranged close up on her weather-quarter, and both ships opened their fire, which continued until 11 h. 4 m. p.m., when the Vestale struck her colours, having lost her captain and 27 killed, and 37 men wounded. The Terpsichore could only muster at quarters 166 men and boys, having away in prizes two lieutenants, three midshipmen, and 41 men: her loss in the action amounted to four seamen killed, lieutenant George Bowen and 17 men wounded. During the night of the 13th, the french crew rose on the small party in possession of the prize and carried her into Cadiz. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.)
1796. Monday 24th
October. Sta. Margaritta captured Buonaparte.
1796. Tuesday 25th
October. Sta. Magaritta captured Vengeur and prize.
1796. October -
November. Corsica re-taken by the French.
1796. Wednesday 16th
November. In consequence of some differences arising with regard to the
Regiments of the line doing duty as Marines in the fleet, they were ordered to
be disembarked, and many of the men were permitted to enlist in the Marines at
an additional bounty of five guineas, and on 16th November the levy money was
increased to fifteen pounds, which allowed ten guineas and a crown bounty to
each recruit, this arrangement gave such fresh vigour to the Corps, that the
companies were soon completed to their full strength.
1796. Friday 2nd
December. Crescent and Sphinx at Foul Point, Madagascar.
1796. Friday 2nd
December. Hazard captured Musette.
1796. Saturday 3rd
December. Lapwing captured Dedeux and destroyed Vaillante.
1796. Monday 12th
December. Terpsichore captured Vestale.
1796. Friday 16th December. An expedition had been for some time in preparation in the different french ports for the invasion of Ireland, and the fleet was finally to assemble at Brest; from which anchorage they were to proceed to Bantry Bay. On the 16th of December this armament put to sea, consisting of seventeen ships of the line, thirteen frigates, six corvettes, with transports — in all forty-four sail, having 600 troops on board of each line of battle ship, and in each frigate 250; so that with the number on board the other vessels, the army amounted to 18,000 men; and in addition to the troops, which consisted of both cavalry and infantry, the fleet carried a quantity of field artillery, with stores and ammunition. It blew hard from the eastward, and during the night the Seduisant of 74 guns was wrecked on the Stevenet rock in the passage Du Raz, when about 700 men perished. The remainder of the fleet arrived ofF Dursey island on the 21st, and part of the ships anchored at the eastern extremity of Bear island, where they continued until the 25th; when a heavy gale drove them from their anchors and compelled them to put to sea. They remained scattered on the coast for some days, and then made the best of their way back to Brest; as did the remainder of their men-of-war, with the exception of the Droits de l'Homme and some frigates, of which we shall have presently to give a favourable account. The Droits de l'Homme of 74 guns, commodore La Crosse, having separated from her companions, steered for l'Orient; and on the 13th of January 1797, when off the Penmarcks, was discovered through the thick weather which prevailed by the Indefatigable 44, captain sir Edward Pellew, and the Amazon 38, captain Robert Carthew Reynolds. At 4 h. 15 m. p.m. a squall carried away the fore and main top-masts of the french ship, and she continued steer- ing towards the shore under her courses and mizen top-sail; whilst the Indefatigable and Amazon took positions upon either bow, pouring in an occasional raking fire until 4 h. 30 m. a.m. on the 14th, when the appearance of land close to leeward caused the frigates to haul off from the threatened danger, and the Droits de l'Homme to make a similar effort. During the whole of this long engagement the sea ran extremely high; the Indefatigable had four feet water in the hold, and all her masts were in a wounded state. The Amazon had also suffered severely from the enemy's fire in her masts and rigging, and she had 3 men killed and 15 badly wounded. On board the Indefatigable there were none killed, but 18 men were wounded. As daylight appeared, the french 74 was seen lying on her broadside in Audieone bay, with the sea beating over her. The Amazon, on perceiving the danger, wore to the northward, and soon afterwards struck the ground and was wrecked; but her crew, with the exception of six persons, got safe to the shore. Lieutenants O'Connor and Wilson of the marines were favourably mentioned by Sir Edward Pellew, for their exertions on this trying occasion. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1796. Monday 19th December. Commodore Nelson, in the 38-gun frigate Minerve, captain George Cockburn, with the 32-gun frigate Blanche, captain d'Arcy Preston, when near PortoFerrajo, fell in with two large Spanish frigates; and whilst the Blanche wore and attacked the one to leeward, the Minerve hauled up, and at 10 h. 40 m. brought to close action the 40-gun frigate Sabina. After a brave resistance of two hours and fifty minutes, the Spanish ship struck her colours, with the loss of her mizen-mast, and having 10 men killed, and 45 wounded. The Minerve had 7 killed; lieutenant Noble and 32 wounded. Shortly afterwards, another Spanish frigate was seen approaching; upon which the Minerve, casting off her prize, brought the stranger to action, and after engaging for half an hour, compelled her to haul off: at this moment the approach of the Principe de Asturias and two frigates, induced the british frigate to look to her own safety, whilst her prize, the Sabina, fell into the enemy's hands. In a few minutes after the Minerve poured her first broadside into the Sabina, the Blanche was close alongside the frigate to leeward, and after some sharp firing, the Ceres hauled down the Spanish colours, with the loss of 7 men killed, and 15 wounded; but like her consort, she was recaptured by the Spanish squadron. The Blanche sustained neither damage nor loss in the action. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.)
1796. Monday 19th
December. Blanche engaged Ceres.
1796. December.
Theobald Wolfe Tone a leading Irish revolutionary ordered the dispatch of a
force of 14,000 French veteran troops under the Command of General Hoche which
arrived off the coast of Bantry ay in Ireland. After eluding the Royal Navy,
unremitting storms, indecisiveness of its leaders and poor seamanship all
combined to a failed landing. The French fleet was forced to return to France.
Theobald Wolfe Tone was later to remarked, "England has had its luckiest
escape since the Armada.”
1796. December. Horatio
Nelson had obtained the rank Commodore and was too senior to command a ship. He
was transferred to HMS Captain which became his flag ship. The squadron he
commanded covered the evacuation of British family’s from Leghorn, Corsica and
Elba.
1796. The vote for the
sea service affording no extension to the Corps, an earnest memorial was
addressed to Earl Spencer and in consequence of that application nine companies
were added, with a Second-Lieutenant to each company, which was increased to 8
Sergeants, 8 Corporals, 8 Drummers, and 113 Privates each. In November, six
more companies were added, and seven additional privates to every company,
which then consisted of 120 men. At the same time three Colonels and
Second-Commandants were added to the establishment of the corps.
1797. Sunday 8th
January. Indefatigable and Amazon destroyed Droits de l'Homme.
1797. Tuesday 31st
January. Andromache captured an Algerine corsair.
1797. Monday 13th February. At this period the navy was so much augmented, that the supplies voted were for 120,000 men for the sea service, including 20,000 marines. On the 13th of February admiral sir John Jervis, with fifteen sail of the line, was steering towards Cadiz; when the Minerve frigate, captain George Cockburn, bearing the broad pendant of commodore Nelson, brought intelligence that the Spanish fleet had been seen at the mouth of the Straits, consisting of twenty-seven ships of the line and twelve frigates, under the command of don Josef de Cordova, having sailed from Carthagena on the 12th of February. On the 14th, at daylight, several ships were discovered through the haze to windward of the fleet, and before 9 a.m. twenty sail of the line were visible from the Victory's mast-head. About 11 a.m. the fog had cleared away, and the Spaniards were seen grouped together under all sail, with the wind on the starboard quarter, running down to form a junction with six ships of the line to leeward, who were close hauled on the same tack, striving hard to close with the main body of their fleet. With the intention of cutting off the lee division of the enemy, and at the same time to be prepared to receive the nineteen bearing down to windward, who at 11 a.m. began trimming in succession on the larboard tack, the british admiral formed his fleet in line of battle astern of the Victory, and steered to the south-west, keeping the six detached ships of the enemy on the lee or larboard bow, directing his course for the opening between the two divisions of the enemy, whilst the latter were still endeavouring to form a junction. At 11 h. 30 m. the van ships w r ere distantly engaged, and about this time two Spanish threedeckers and a two-decker stood across the head of the british line, and joined the ships to leeward thus, augmenting the Spanish lee division to eight, and reducing their force to windward to sixteen sail of the line. At 8 m. past noon, after passing the sternmost of the enemy's weather-ships, the leading british ship, the Culloden, tacked; and about the same time the Spanish lee division also went about, and stood towards the head of the british line, still on the starboard tack. The Spanish vice-admiral steered to cut the british line a-head of the Victory, but the latter was too rapid in her advance, and compelled the Spanish three-decker to tack close under her lee, raking her whilst in stays with such destructive effect, as induced her to bear away in great confusion, followed by the second three-decker and five other ships; but the Oriente gallantly kept upon the larboard tack, and passing along the british line, succeeded in joining her van. At 1 p. m., just as the rear ship of the British, still on the starboard tack, had reached beyond the leading ships of the spanish weather-division, then passing in the contrary direction, the advanced ships of the enemy bore up together, as a last effort to join their friends to leeward. Commodore Nelson in the Captain, the third ship from the rear of the british line, apprehensive that the weather-division of the enemy would form a junction with those to leeward before the ships in the british van could possibly reach them, immediately wore round, and passing between the Diadem and Excellent, ran athwart the bows of the Spanish ships as far as the sixth from the rear; and at 1 h. 30m. p.m., when the Culloden had arrived up from the british van and commenced firing, the Captain was engaged with the Santissima Trinidada ; for the Spanish admiral, frustrated in his attempt of running to leeward, had with his fleet hauled up on the larboard tack. The Blenheim, Prince George, and Orion, had now taken part in the action, and at 2 h. 26 in. p. m. the Excellent opened her fire on the Salvador del Mundo, as she passed on the latter's weather bow; and then having stood on to the San Ysidro, ranged up on her lee-beam and engaged her until 2 h. 53 m. p. m., when the Spanish colours were hauled down. The Excellent then passed on a-head and engaged the 80-gun ship San Nicolas, who had been contending with the Captain; and in hauling up to avoid her new antagonist, the San Nicolas ran foul of the San Josef, whose mizenmast had been shot away. The Captain now re-opened her fire upon the San Nicolas, and then laid her on board, hooking with her larboard cathead the starboard quarter-gallery of the Spanish 80, and with her spritsail yard, the latter's mizen-rigging. Commodore Nelson immediately boarded, and following a soldier of the 69th regiment, entered the upper gallery window; but by the time he reached the quarter-deck, captain Berry was in possession of the poop, and the Spanish ensign was hauling down. At this time the San Nicolas was foul of the San Josef and had opened a fire of small arms from her stern at the British on the forecastle of the captured ship; upon which commodore Nelson directed his men to board the first-rate, and they were preparing- for the assault, when a Spanish officer looked over the quarter-deck rail, and said they had surrendered. The Excellent, on quitting the San Nicolas, took a position under the lee of the Santissima T rinidada, who was then warmly engaged by the Orion and Irresistible. After losing her fore and mizen-masts, the fire of this formidable ship ceased, and the Spanish colours disappeared; but the opportune arrival of eleven ships saved the crippled four-decker from further molestation. This was at about 4 p. m., and shortly afterwards the feritish admiral, observing the approach of these ships, ordered the frigates to take the prizes in tow, and for the ships of the fleet to form in close line a-head in the wake of the Victory. All firing had ceased before 5 f. m., when the British found themselves in possession of the San Josef and Salvador del Mundo of 1 12 guns, the San Nicolas of 80, and the San Ysidro of 74 guns. This conquest had been accomplished by fifteen ships of the line against twenty-six Spaniards, with the trifling loss on the part of the British of 73 killed and 227 wounded; and the only ship that lost a spar was the Captain, whose fore top-mast had fallen over the side. The names of the officers of marines serving in the fleet are stated in the following order of battle, giving the killed and wounded on board of the respective ships— 1797. Tuesday 14th
February. Sir John Jervis's Victory off Cape St. Vincent.
1797. Monday 17th -
18th February. Trinidad surrendered without resistance.
1797. Tuesday 28th
February. Terpsichore engaged Santissima Trinidada.
1797. Friday 17th
February. The British capture Trinidad from Spain. A fleet of 18 warships under
the Command of Sir Ralph Abercromby invaded and took the Island of Trinidad.
Within a few of days the last Spanish Governor, Don José María Chacon
surrendered the island to Abercromby.
1797. Thursday 9th March. The 36-gun frigate San Fiorenzo, captain sir Harry Neale, and 36-gun frigate Nymphe, captain John Cooke, being the in-shore squadron off Brest, bore down and attacked the french 40-gun frigate Resistance, and 22-gun corvette Constance, and after a slight opposition, both the latter ships surrendered. Neither of the british ships suffered any loss, whilst the Resistance had 10 killed and 9 wounded; and the Constance 8 killed and 6 wounded. First-lieutenant John Campbell was serving on board the Nymphe, and first-lieutenant R. Carruthers on board the San Fiorenzo. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1797. Monday 13th
March. Viper captured Virgen Maria del Carmen.
1797. Monday 13th
March. Plymouth captured Amitie.
1797. Wednesday 22nd -
23rd March. Hermione destroyed vessels at Porto Rico.
1797. Wednesday 29th
March. Kingfisher captured General.
1797. Saturday 1st
April. Hazard captured Hardi.
1797. Thursday 6th April. Major Andrew Burn, being the senior officer of marines in the fleet, was promoted to the rank of lieutenant-colonel.
On the 6th of April, in the night, the boats of the 32-gun frigate Magicienne, and 44-gun frigate {en flute) Regulus, commanded by the lieutenants of those ships, on which service lieutenants Philip Luscombe Perry and George Frazer of the marines assisted, entered the harbour of Cape Roxo, in the island of San Domingo, where they captured, sank, and burnt, thirteen sail of square-rigged vessels; and they destroyed two batteries of two guns each at the entrance of the harbour. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.)
1797. Sunday 16th
April. Thunderer and Valiant destroyed Harnionie.
1797. Thursday 20th
April. Cutting out affair at Port au Paix.
1797. Wednesday 26th
April. Irresistible and Emerald captured two Spanish frigates.
1797. Saturday 22nd
April. Magicienne, Regulus, and Fortune at Carcasse Bay.
1797. April. A mutiny
of the Royal Navy took place at Spithead off Portsmouth.
1797. Saturday 20th
May. Oiseau engaged a Spanish frigate.
1797. Sunday 28th May. The Lively and Minerve frigates, captains Benjamin Hallowell and George Cockburn, discovered an armed brig anchored in the road of Santa Cruz. On the following day it was determined to attempt her capture by the boats, under the orders of lieutenant Thomas Masterman Hardy, on which service lieutenant Robert Bulkley of the marines was a volunteer. At 2h. 30 m. p. m. the boats made a resolute attack upon the brig as she lay at anchor, and although opposed by a sharp fire of musketry, they boarded and carried her and under a heavy fire from the batteries on shore, as well as from a large ship lying in the roads, the french brig Mutine, mounting 14 guns, was safely brought alongside the frigates by 4 p. m. The British had none killed, but lieutenant Hardy and 15 men were wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1797. Monday 29th May.
Boats of Lively and Minerve cut out Mutine.
1797. May. A second
mutiny took place at the Nore, a sand bank off the Kent coast in the Thames
where the fleet usually anchored.
1797. Monday 3rd June -
5th July. The Bombardment and assault of the Spanish port of Cadiz was a part
of a protracted naval blockade by the British Royal Navy, which comprised of a
siege and the shelling of the city as well as an amphibious assault on the port
itself. The battle involved Horatio Nelson and John Jervis pitted against the
Spanish Jose de Mazarredo and Fererico Gravina. It was a Spanish victory
although both sides suffered an economic loss. The British casualties amounted
to one killed and 20 wounded that included Captain Thomas Francis Fremantle, 3
boats were sunk, and the Victory's launch driven ashore.
1797. Thursday 15th June. “I write this from Gravesend at which place we arrived yesterday having received a route in the morning at six o'clock, to march immediately. 1797. Friday 23rd June. The Leicester and Nottingham Journal. It was the Lieutenant of Marines that was shot by a woman on board the IRIS, and not a Midshipman as was first understood. A disturbance having arisen on board the ship, the Marines as usual were called up to quell it. 1797. Friday 23rd June. The Leicester and Nottingham Journal. The following is an extract of a letter from an officer of the Warwickshire Militia to a friend in Birmingham. 1797. Early July. A british fleet of twenty-one sail of the line, under admiral sir John Jervis, blockaded the Spanish fleet of twenty-six ships of the line in the harbour of Cadiz. On the 3rd of that month the town was bombarded by the Thunder, supported by the armed boats of the fleet, who were attacked by the Spanish gun-boats; but these were driven back under the guns of Cadiz, with the loss of two mortar boats and the commandant of the flotilla, who was captured after a personal conflict with rear-admiral Nelson. A second bombardment took place on the 5th by three bomb-vessels, covered by the Theseus, Emerald, and Terpsichore. The cannonade produced considerable effect both on the town and the shipping, and the british and Spanish gun-boats again encountered each other. The loss did not exceed 3 killed; captain Thomas Oldfield of the marines, and 15 men wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1797. Monday 3rd - 5th
July. Cadiz bombardad by Nelson.
1797. July. Attack on
Santa Cruz by Nelson.
1797. Thursday 6th
July. Three Marines Lee, Coffy and Branham who had been found guilty by court
Marshall for attempting to excite a mutiny in Stonehouse Barracks. While
another Marine, M Gennis was convicted of a similar crime and sentenced to 1000
lashes (although he only received 500) and then transported to Botany Bay for
life. The other three were lead out on to Plymouth Hoe and at 2.30pm on the 6th
made to kneel in front of their coffins wearing a blind fold. At a given signal
the firing squad carried out the order, and both Coffy and Branham fell
immediately, but it seems that not one shot out of the sixteen fired had struck
Lee, as he remained on his knees by the coffin. Until a Marines discharged his
musket through the front of his head. He then fell, and another musket was
fired through the side of his head and he died instantly. All four were in
their thirties and of Irish decent. Marine Lee was found to belong to the
‘United Irishmen’ organisation. He was also an Attorney by profession and seems
to have been the conspirator, and all who joined him used to meet on the Long
Room Hill at Stonehouse to be sworn in as partakers in the plot. The ring
leaders had enlisted in to the Marines, probably with the view of spreading
disaffection in their ranks. It was also believed that the 58th Regiment and
the crews of two ships then in an insubordinate state were also implicated.
1797. Sunday 16th July.
Anson and Sylph destroyed Calliope.
1797. Thursday 20th July. The three frigates, with the cutter and mortarboat, together with the boats of the squadron, stood towards the shore; but a gale of wind coming on, they were prevented from landing. On the 22nd, it having been determined to make an attack on the heights on the north side of the bay, and then carry the fort by storm, at 9 p. m. the frigates anchored inshore off the east end of the town and landed their men; but finding the heights too strongly guarded, the British re-embarked in the course of the night, and without loss. On the 24th the Leander joined the squadron, and at 5 p. m. the line of battle ships anchored about seven miles to the north-eastward of the town, and the frigates within two of the shore, as if intending to land in that direction; but this was a feint, and the mole-head was to be the rendezvous for the boats. At 11 p.m. about 700 men embarked in the boats, 180 in the Fox cutter, and 75 on board a large boat which had been captured, numbering, with a small detachment of artillery under lieutenant Baynes, about 1100 men: the detachments of seamen were under their respective captains, and the whole commanded by the rear-admiral in person. Every precaution had been taken to keep the boats together, but the rough state of the weather, and the extreme darkness of the night, rendered this arrangement impracticable. 1797. A complaint
(Taken from 'Britain's Sea Soldiers: Vol 1 by Cyril Field RMLI.)
1797. Saturday 22nd -
Tuesday 25th July. Horatio Nelson led a doomed assault on the Spanish island
Santa Cruz de Tenerife was an amphibious assault by the Royal Navy on the
Spanish port and city in the Canary Islands. Launched by Rear-Admiral Horatio
Nelson the assault was defeated, and the remains of the landing party withdrew
under a truce with the loss of several hundred casualties. Nelson himself had
been wounded in the arm, which was subsequently partially amputated: a stigma
that he carried to his grave as a constant reminder of his failure. The ship's
surgeon, James Farquhar, wrote in his journal: "Compound fracture of the
right arm by a musket ball passing through a little above the elbow; an artery
divided, the arm was immediately amputated." It is claimed that within 30
minutes, Nelson was again issuing orders to his men. On Tuesday 1st August
Farquhar noted: "Admiral Nelson, amputated arm, continued getting well
very fast. Stump looked well; no bad symptoms whatever occurred.” British
losses were 250 dead, 128 wounded, 300 captured, many drowned and 1 cutter
sunk.
1797. July. An order in Council, fixed the pay of Marines at the following
rates: Sergeants. Corporals. On board £-12-0s-10p and on shore at,
£1-6s-1p.
1797. July 22nd - 24th
July. Attack on Santa Cruz by Nelson.
1797. Tuesday 25th July. About 1 h. 30 m. a.m. on the 25th, the Fox cutter, attended by the rear-admiral's boat and some others, had reached within half gun-shot of the mole head, undiscovered; when, on the alarm being given, a fire was opened from more than 30 pieces of cannon and a body of troops stationed along the shore, which so injured the Fox, that she immediately went down with 97 brave fellows, including lieutenant Gibson. A shot struck the rear-admiral on the right elbow, just as he was in the act of drawing his sword, and so disabled him, that he was conveyed back to his ship another shot sank the boat in which captain Bowen had embarked, whereby 8 seamen perished. In spite of all this opposition the British effected a landing, and immediately stormed and carried the mole-head, defended by 300 men and 6 twenty-four pounders. Having spiked these guns our men were about to advance, when a destructive fire was opened upon them from the citadel and the houses near the mole-head, which occasioned the principal part of the loss sustained in this unfortunate enterprise. Captain Troubridge with his division not being able to reach the mole, had pushed on shore under a battery close to the southward of the citadel, as did captain Waller and a few other boats but the surf ran so high that many of the boats put back, while those that did not return were instantly filled with water, which destroyed the men's ammunition. Captain Troubridge having collected a few men, advanced with captain Waller to the principal square of the town, the appointed place of rendezvous; and not meeting the other officers with their detachments, he sent a serjeant with two of the inhabitants to summon the citadel. After waiting an hour, without receiving an answer to his message, captain Troubridge marched to join captains Hood and Miller, who with a small body of men had made good their landing to the southwest of the spot where he had disembarked. By day-break, captain Troubridge's party consisted of no more than 180 seamen with small arms, 80 pikemen, and 80 marines, making a total of 340; and with this force he was meditating an assault. But as they soon found that the streets were commanded by field-pieces, and that 8000 armed Spaniards, with 100 Frenchmen, were approaching them from every point, and considering that the boats were all stove, and that no possibility existed of receiving a reinforcement, captain Troubridge sent captain Hood with a flag of truce to the governor, offering to capitulate on terms, that the british troops should be allowed to re-embark with their arms, take their boats, if saved, or to be provided with others ; and in case of compliance, he engaged that the ships should no further molest the town, nor attack any one of the Canary islands. Notwithstanding the surprise which the governor expressed on receiving such a proposal, and under such desperate circumstances, he nevertheless acceded to these conditions: captain Troubridge accordingly marched his men to the mole-head and embarked them in boats furnished by the Spaniards. The governor liberally supplied the retreating invaders with a ration of biscuit and wine and removed the british wounded into the hospital; moreover, he intimated to rear-admiral Nelson that he was at liberty to send on shore and purchase such refreshments as his squadron might require. Thus, terminated an expedition, which although so fatal and unsuccessful, furnished abundant proof of the valour and intrepidity of british seamen and marines. The melancholy loss sustained included captain Richard Bowen, lieutenants John Weatherhead, Theseus ; George Thorpe, Terpsichore ; William Earnshaw, Leander ; and John Gibson, Fox ; lieutenants of marines Raby Robinson and William Basham ; 23 seamen, and 14 marines killed : the rear-admiral (right arm amputated), captains Freemantle and Thompson, lieutenant Douglas, 1 midshipman, 85 seamen, and 15 marines wounded ; 97 seamen and marines drowned, and 5 missing : total, 1 14 killed and drowned, 105 wounded, and 5 missing, — a loss exceeding the killed, and not far short of the total of the killed and wounded in the battle which obtained the glorious victory off Cape St. Vincent. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1797. Thursday 10th
August. Arethusa captured Gaite.
1797. Friday 11th
August. Sylphe and consorts destroyed gunboats at Sable d'Olonne.
1797. Monday 14th
August. The battle of Cape St Vincent was one of the opening battles of the
Anglo-Spanish War of 1796 to 1808, as part of the French Revolutionary Wars.
During which a British fleet under the command of Admiral Sir John Jervis
defeated a larger Spanish fleet under Admiral Don José de Córdobay Ramos near
Cape St. Vincent in Portugal. After the battle Admiral Lord St. Vincent wrote:
“A very considerable Corps of Marines should be kept up, and I hope to see the
day when there is not another foot soldier in the kingdom, in Ireland or in the
colonies”. While Nelson also voiced his opinion: “When I become First Lord of
the Admiralty, every fleet shall have perfect battalions of Marines, with their
artillery, and commanded by experienced field officers, they will be prepared
to make a serious impression on the enemy’s coast.” 1 Major, 1 Lieut., 1
Sergeant, and 5 rank and file killed, 21 wounded.
1797. Tuesday 15th
August. Alexandrian captured Coq.
1797. Monday 21st
August. Penguin captured two French brigs.
1797. Sunday 27th
August. Jason and Triton captured part of a French convoy.
1797. Monday 28th
August. Pomone destroyed Petit Dia'le.
1797. Sunday 17th
September. Pelican destroyed Trompeur.
1797. Early October. Admiral Duncan, with the major part of his ships, were refitting in Yarmouth roads, leaving a small squadron, under captain Trollope, to watch the dutch fleet in the Texel. On the 9th, the Active cutter appeared at the hack of Yarmouth sands, with the signal flying for an enemy: all was bustle and confusion, and before noon admiral Duncan, with eleven sail of the line, put to sea, directing his course with a fair wind straight across to his old station, and was joined on the next day by the remaining ships belonging ito his fleet. On the afternoon of the 10th, the advanced ships were sufficiently near to count twenty-two sail of vessels at anchor in the Texel, but these were chiefly merchant-men; and on receiving information from captain Trollope of the course of the enemy, the admiral stood along shore to the southward. On the 11th July, at 7 a.m., the look-out ships made the signal for the enemy in sight to leeward; and at 8 h. 30 m. a.m. the dutch squadron was discernible in the quarter pointed out, consisting of four ships of 74 guns, seven of 64 guns, four of 50 guns, one of 44 guns, one of 40 guns, and two ships of 32 guns ; making fifteen ships of the line and four frigates, commanded by vice-admiral De AY inter, who hauled to the wind on the larboard tack on discovering the british fleet ; and squaring their main-yards, the Dutch resolutely awaited the approach of their opponents. The british ships were so scattered, that admiral Duncan, at 11 h. 10 m., brought to on the starboard tack, to enable the dull sailers to take their allotted stations; but find ing that the enemy were drawing fast in-shore, he made the following signals: " Each ship to engage her opponent — to bear up — and, for the van to attack the enemy's rear." At 11 a.m. admiral Duncan made the signal to pass through the enemy's line and engage to leeward, which was replaced by the signal for close action. At about half-past noon the M onarch, bearing the flag of vice-admiral Onslow, passed under the stern of the Jupiter, the fourth ship from the rear, and then ranged close up to leeward, leaving the Haerlem to the Powerful. The Monmouth and Russell were soon in action, followed by the remaining ships of the larboard division. It was about a quarter of an hour after the Monarch had broken the dutch line, that the Venerable, frustrated in her attempt to pass astern of the Vryheid by the advance of the States-general, ran under the stern of the latter, whilst the Triumph closed with the next ship in the line, the Wassanaer. Meanwhile, the Venerable had ranged close on the lee side of the Vryheid, with whom the Ardent was warmly engaged on the opposite side, and a-head by the Bedford, as the latter cut through the line astern of the Devries. The ships in the centre of the enemy's line, not being immediately engaged, advanced to the succour of their admiral; and from their fire, the Venerable and Ardent, as well as the other ships of the british van, received considerable injury. The Hercules having caught fire on the poop, bore up out of the line, and shortly after the flames were extinguished she surrendered, for it was stated that in their alarm they had thrown their powder overboard. The Venerable had received so much damage as to be obliged to haul off; upon which the Triumph, after compelling the Wassanaer to surrender, closed with the Vryheid, and this nobly defended ship, after being engaged by four powerful opponents, with her three masts over the side, dropped out of the line and struck her colours. The action ceased with the surrender of admiral De Winter's ship, at which time the British were in possession of the Vryheid and Jupiter, of 74 guns; Devries, Gelykheid, Haerlem, Hercules, and Wassanaer, of 64 guns; Alkmaar and Delft, of 50 guns, and the frigates Monnikendam and Ambuscade. The remainder of the dutch ships bore away towards the land, then only five miles distant; and as the british fleet was in nine fathoms water, they hastened to secure their prizes, to enable them to get clear of the shore, which was the land between Camperdown and the village of Egmont. The british fleet consisted of the following ships, which sustained the casualties severally enumerated. 1797. Wednesday 4th
October. Alexandrian captured Epicharis.
1797. Wednesday 11th
October. The battle of Camperdown was the most significant action between
British and Dutch forces during the French Revolutionary Wars and resulted in a
complete victory for the British, who captured eleven Dutch ships without
losing any of their own. Although they suffered 203 killed and 622 wounded.
While the Dutch suffered 540 killed, 620 wounded.
1797. Wednesday 25th
October. Indefatigable captured Hyene.
1797. Sunday 12th
November. Cerberus captured Epervier.
1797. Monday 13th
November. Boats of fairy captured Epervier, a lugger.
1797. Tuesday 14th
November. Cerberus captured Renard.
1797. Wednesday 20th December. At 10 a.m., the 36-gun frigate Phoebe, captain Robert Barlow, being in latitude 50° north, longitude 8° west, discovered and chased the french 36-gun frigate Nereide on her weather bow. The pursuit continued all day, and at 6 p.m. both ships having been taken aback, bore up; and at 9 p. m. the Nereide commenced firing her stern chasers, which did considerable damage to the Phcebe's sails and rigging. At 9h. 10m. p.m., just as the Phoebe was in a situation to commence the attack, the Nereide hove in stays, and as soon as the Phcebe could reduce her sails she came round, and the two frigates exchanged broadsides in passing on opposite tacks. At 10 p.m. the Phcebe got alongside her opponent, and both ships having backed their main top-sails, commenced the action in right earnest, the Nereide placing herself within musket-shot to windward of her opponent. In a short time, the french frigate fell on board of the Phoebe, but the latter bore away clear of her; having again hauled up, she renewed her fire, and both ships continued to engage until 10 h. 45 m. p.m., when the Nereide hauled down her light, and hailed that she surrendered. Out of a crew of 330 men, she had 20 killed and 55 wounded; whilst the Phoebe, out of 261 men and boys, had only 3 killed and 10 wounded. Lieutenant Robert D. Stuart, and his detachment of marines, obtained the favourable report of captain Barlow. 1797. Thursday 21st
December. Phoebe captured Nereide.
1797. Friday 29th
December. Anson captured Daphne.
1797. ‘Marines and Mutiny’ (Being well aware of the justifiable and massive pride our members have for our glorious corps and the sensitivities of some, it is with some trepidation I submit this article. 1798 - 1799. The Fourth
Anglo Mysore War was a conflict in South India between the Kingdom of Mysore
and the British East India Company at that time run by the Earl of Mornington.
1798. Twenty thousand Marines constituted the force of 1798. 1798. Wednesday 3rd
January. George taken by Spanish privateers.
1798. Friday 5th
January. Pomone sank Cheri.
1798. Monday 8th
January. Kingfisher captured Betsy
1798. Sunday 14th
January. Sibylle and Fox at Caista Roads, Manilla.
1798. Yuseday 16th
January. Boats of Babel captured Desiree.
1798. Monday 22nd
January. Sibylle and Fox at Samboangon.
1798. Tueasday 23rd
January. Melampus captured Volage.
1798. Saturday 3rd
February. Speedy engaged Papillon.
1798. Friday 16th February.
Boats of Alfred captured Scipion.
1798. Sunday 25th February.
Marquis of Coburg sunk Revanche.
1798. Wednesday 21st
March. A desperate action was fought between the Mars and La Hercule, of nearly
equal force, both ships touching during the space of one hour and a half.
English valour at last prevailed, but with a heavy loss. Captain Alexander
Hood, who blended in himself all the talents and virtues of his ancestors, fell
in the moment of victory; and Captain Joseph White, of Marines, shared his
fate, while discharging the duty of a gallant Officer.
Quote, "Much do I lament in not being able to
commemorate the names of five brave privates of my Corps, who, with an habitual
intrepidity, attempted to board the enemy, but dropping into the sea, were
crushed between the sides of the contending ships." Alexander Gillespie.
1798. Thursday 22nd -
23rd March. Phaeton, Canada, and Anson engaged Charente.
1798. Sunday 8th - 9th
April. Diamond and Hydra in Caen River.
1798. Tuesday 17th April. Recovery captured Revanche. 1798. Saturday 21st April. During the early part of the year, the french government kept England in a state of alarm by the threat of an invasion; but while troops were assembling on the northern shores of France for the purpose of putting this plan into execution, a more serious and secret expedition was preparing at Toulon, which sailed from that port on the 19th of May under the command of general Buonaparte, as we shall presently relate.
The Mars, captain Alexander Hood, having distanced her companions, continued the pursuit of a ship of the line, which at 7 h. 30 m. p. m. evinced an intention to escape through the passage Du Raz. At 8h. 30 m. p.m., the Bee du Raz bearing north by east two or three miles, the french 74-gun ship Hercule, captain L'Heritier, finding it im- possible to work up against the strong current, came, to an anchor, and furled sails. At 9h. 15 m., the Mars having closed with the Hercule, both ships commenced the action at the same time, and captain Hood finding that the current would not admit of remaining under weigh, the Mars ranged a-head, let go her anchor, and then dropped alongside of her opponent at 9 h. 30 m. p. m. The cannonade continued until 10 h. 30 m., at which time, the Hercule having failed in two attempts to board, and being very much shattered, a french officer hailed that they had surrendered. The loss sustained by the Mars, out of a crew of 634 men and boys, amounted to her commander, captain Joseph White of the marines, and 20 killed, and 8 missing; 2 lieutenants, 1 midshipman, and 57 wounded. The Hercule had 290 men killed and wounded. The subalterns of marines on board the Mars, were first-lieutenant Christopher Epworth, second-lieutenants J. H. Hawkins and Walter Taite. 1798. Saturday 21st
April. Mars captured Hercule.
1798. Tuesday 24th
April. Pearl engaged two French frigates.
1798. Thursday 30th April. James Scott, Sergeant of Marines and John Easty noted that two Marines were missing. Easty wrote, about one o’clock in the afternoon Edward odges, Michell Towlien, Marines which belonged to rose hill and was doing Duty they went out Shooting and was Lost in the woods. 1798. Saturday 2nd May: James Scott recorded that a greyhound, which Tolan and Odgers had taken with then, returned to camp at Rosehill. 1798. Saturday 5th May.
Badger and Sandfly repulsed 52 gun brigs at Marcon.
1798. Wednesday 6th May: Scott wrote that he had abandoned all hope that Tolan and Odgers would be found, because of bad weather. 1798. Monday 7th May.
Victorieuse captured Brutus.
1798. Monday 7th May.
The Defence and Battle of the Islands of St. Marcou took place near the
Cotentin peninsula on the Normandy coast of France in May 1798 during the
French Revolutionary Wars. During 1795 a British garrison was set up on the
islands, which operated as a resupply base for Royal Naval ships cruising off
the coast of Northern France. Their strength was that of 500 Marines a few
sailors and 17 guns. Wanting to remove the British presence on the islands and
simultaneously test the equipment and tactics then being developed in France
for a projected invasion of Britain, the French launched a massed amphibious
assault on the southern island using over 50 landing ships and thousands of
troops. Although significant Royal Naval forces were in the area, a combination
of wind and tide prevented them from intervening and the island's 500-strong
garrison was left to resist the attack alone. The British suffer 1 killed and 4
wounded, while the French suffered 900 killed, 3000 wounded, 500 captured and 7
boats destroyed.
1798. Sunday 13th May. The 36-gun frigate Flora, captain R. G. Middleton, chased the french brig-corvette Mondovi, mounting 16 guns with a crew of 68 men, into the harbour of Cerigo, in the island of that name in the Archipelago; and on the same evening the boats of the frigate, under the orders of lieutenant William Russell, attacked the Mondovi, in face of a heavy fire from the brig and the boats which commanded the entrance of the harbour. She was nevertheless gallantly boarded and brought out with no greater loss on the part of the British than one marine killed; lieutenant Richard Parry of the marines (who was a volunteer on this service), and seven wounded. The Mondovi lost 1 killed, 4 drowned, and 8 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines. 1798. Saturday 19th
May. Disembarkation at Ostend.
1798. Sunday 27th May.
Plymouth (Uniform). Light Infantry Officers ordered to wear on their shoulders
‘a Bugle, Horn and wings’.
1798. Tuesday 29th May. When the signal was made for the fleet to weigh, it was reluctantly complied with, and such ships as did get under sail soon returned to Yarmouth roads. Soon afterwards, but in the course of the day, with the exception of the Venerable and Adamant, who proceeded off the Texel, the whole returned to Yarmouth roads. Admiral Duncan, on finding himself deserted by his squadron, turned the hands up on board the Venerable, and thus addressed his crew, " The british navy has ever been the support of that liberty which has been handed down to us by our ancestors, and which I trust we shall maintain to the latest posterity; and that can only be done by unanimity and obedience. This ship's company, and others who have distinguished themselves by their loyalty and good order, deserve to be, and doubtless will be, the favourites of a grateful country. They will also have, from their inward feelings, a comfort which will be lasting, and not like the floating and false confidence of those who have swerved from their duty. " It has often been my pride, with you, to look into the Texel, and see a foe which dreaded coming out to meet us: my pride is now humbled indeed My feelings are not easily to be expressed; our cup has overflowed and made us wanton. The all-wise Providence has given us this check as a warning, and I hope we shall improve by it: on him, then, let us trust, where our only security can be found. I find there are many good men among us; for my own part, I have had full confidence in all of this ship, and once more beg to express my approbation of your conduct. May God, who has thus far conducted you, continue to do so; and may the british navy, the glory and support of our country, be restored to its wonted splendour, and be, not only the bulwark of Britain, but the terror of the world. But this can only be effected by a strict adherence to our duty and obedience; and let us pray that the Almighty God may keep us in the right way of thinking. God bless you all" These transactions were warmly reprobated by the seamen at Portsmouth and Plymouth; who, admonishing their fellow-seamen at the Nore, condemned their proceedings as a scandal to the name of the british sailor; and they exhorted them to turn to their duty, and to be satisfied with the concession already obtained. But this warning proved ineffectual: the committee of delegates on board the Sandwich commissioned captain the earl of Northesk, whom they had in confinement on board the Montague, to lay their petition before the king in the name of the fleet. This address was loyal and respectful to his Majesty but reflecting severely on his ministers; and they threatened, in case of a refusal of their demands, to put imme- diately to sea. Not receiving an answer to their message, and learning tiat their proceedings were highly disapproved of by the nation at large, the mutineers, despairing of success, struck the red flag, and restored a free passage of the trade to the metropolis. Every ship was now left at its own command, and they all gradually returned to obedience; although on board of some, violent struggles took place between the loyal and the disaffected parties. The principal ringleader of the mutiny, Richard Parker, was imprisoned, and after a trial on board the IN eptune which lasted three days, he was sentenced to death. He suffered with great intrepidity, acknowledging the j ustice of his sentence, and expressing his hope that mercy might be extended to his associates; but it was considered necessary to make public examples of the most guilty, who were accordingly tried, condemned, and executed. Others were sentenced to be severely flogged, wdiilst several remained under sentence of death until after the victory obtained by admiral Duncan off Camperdown, when his Majesty sent a general pardon to those unhappy men. The mutiny at Portsmouth and Plymouth may be attributed to he popular maxim, of the inherent right of all men to require an equitable treatment; and if denied them, to obtain it by force if other means proved insufficient. The unjust treatment of sailors in the navy was undeniable: it was a subject of ordinary discourse, and the impartial public loudly participated in their claims for redress. There certainly was a reasonable pretext for the combinations at Portsmouth and Plymouth, but the formidable revolt at the Nore was not impelled by necessity, nor provoked by unjust aggression or neglect. It was impatience of authority, progressive in its demands, intent on civil discord and convulsion; and was rather the influence of malcontent incendiaries, than the genuine spirit of the English sailor. As soon as the determination of taking the ships to the Nore was made known, the officers of the Agamemnon declined doing duty, and retired to the ward-room, where they remained unmolested. Unhappily, there was a yielding timidity, that was soon taken advantage of by the daring leaders of this combination. Captain Fancourt declined calling on the marines to act; for the late Captain Edward Pelham Brenton of the navy, who was then a lieutenant of the Agamemnon, states, " that the captain, when urged to avail himself of the assistance of the marines, refused to do so, because some of the men would be shot, and he could not endure seeing them lying suffering on the deck; but with a little patience, there would be unanimity again" The marines would as zealously have obeyed their officers as they did on board the enerable and Adamant, had the opportunity been afforded them; and we find that, in the sequel, when there was some disaffection among the mutineers, the marines again showed their readiness to support the officers in regaining the command of their ships. The commissioners, in their consideration of this representation, resolved to recommend to his Majesty, " that none of the allowance made to the marines, when on shore, shall be stopped on their being embarked on board his Majesty's ships. We have also resolved, that all seamen, marines, and others serving in his Majesty's ships shall have the full allowance of provisions, without any deduction for leakage or waste." " E. Nepean, Esq." 1798. Wednesday 30th -
31st May. Hydra and consorts destroyed Confiante.
1798. May to September.
The Irish Rebellion was an uprising against British rule in Ireland. The
Republican Revolutionary group were heavily influenced by the ideas of the
American and French Revolutions, and were the main organising force behind the
rebellion.
1798. Saturday 16th
June. Boats of Aurora destroyed two vessels.
1798. Tuesday 19th
June. Aurora engaged off Adeira.
1798. Friday 22nd -Thursday 28th June. Only three vessels were spoken, and from these no intelligence could be obtained, nor was there any appearance of the enemy as the harbours of Alexandria opened to their view. A retrograde movement was now resolved upon, taking a more northerly course, and it was not until the 4th of July that the British made the coast of Natalia. The fleet continued beating to windward until the 16th, when the weather becoming more favourable, it anchored on the 19th in the harbour of Syracuse; and having obtained provisions and water, put to sea again on the 25th. It is remarkable that the two fleets crossed each other's track on the 22nd of June but as the weather was hazy, and the British sailed in close order, having no frigates to spread as look-out ships, the enemy was not discovered. It is equally striking, that as the british squadron quitted the shore on its departure from Alexandria, it was actually seen from the Pharos tower on the morning of the 30th, the very day on which the French, in the evening, made their appearance on the coast of Egypt. On leaving Syracuse, the rear-admiral directed his course to the Morea for as the enemy had not been seen in the Archipelago, nor in the Adriatic, and not gone down the Mediterranean, no other conclusion remained but that Egypt had been their destination. On the 28th the Culloden was despatched to Coron, whence she brought intelligence that the french fleet had been seen about four weeks since on the coast of Candia, steering south-east. The british ships now pursued that course, and on the 1st of August, at 10 a. m., the minarets of Alexandria made their welcome appearance but although the french flag was flying on the walls of the city, the enemy's fleet was not discovered. This disappointment was of short duration, for at 1 p. m. the Zealous signalled that seventeen ships of war, thirteen or fourteen of them in line of battle, were at anchor in a bay upon her larboard bow. The british fleet instantly hauled up, steering to the eastward under top-gallant sails, with a fine breeze at north-north-west. The enemy's fleet, which had been signalled by the Zealous, consisted of one ship of 120 guns, three of 80 guns, nine of 74 guns, and four frigates. On first taking up this anchorage, vice-admiral Brueys held a council of war, composed of the flag-officers and captains, to determine whether, in case of attack, the fleet should engage at anchor or under sail. All the officers, except rear-admiral Blanquet, approved of the fleet's remaining at anchor; but he maintained, that it was only when a fleet could be supported by strong forts crossing each other in their fire, that any advantage could be gained by anchoring; and as the majority was against his opinion, the rear-admiral requested that the Franklin might be placed as one of the seconds to the commander-in-chief. Ihis request was complied with, and the ships were formed in line a-head in the following order: Guerrier 74, Conquerant 74, Spartiate 74, Aquilon 74, Peuple-Souverain 74, Franklin 80, Orient 1 20, Tonnant 80, Heureux 74, Mercure 74, Guillaume Tell 80, Genereux 74, Timoleon 74, with the four frigates forming an inner line. The van ship bore from Aboukir island south, distance a mile and three quarters, and between each line of battle ship the distance was about 160 yards; so that the line occupied a space of about a mile and five-eighths, but the line was not a straight one; from the Orient, the centre ship, the van bore north-west, the rear ship south-east by south, and the Guerrier and Timoleon from each other about north-west half north, and south-east half south ; hence the line formed an obtuse angle, having its projecting centre towards the sea. Besides the bomb-vessels, which were stationed on the flanks of the line, a battery was erected on Aboukir island, mounting 4 twelve-pounders, a few pieces of lighter calibre, and 2 thirteen inch mortars. As soon as the french admiral was convinced that the British intended an immediate attack, he directed the necessary preparations for battle, and ordered each ship to lay out an anchor on the south-east, and to send a stream cable to the next ship astern of her, making a hawser fast to it, in order to spring her broadside towards the enemy. The british ships at 4 p.m. were ordered to prepare to anchor by the stern, and shortly afterwards the admiral made the signal to attack the enemy's van and centre thus, occupying the attention of only one half their line, while it was intended to place a british ship on the bow and quarter of every french ship of the seven brought into action. At 5 h. 30 m., the fleet being nearly abreast of the shoal, the signal was made to form in line of battle ahead and astern of the admiral, as most convenient ; and at 6 p. m. captain Hood, in the Zealous, by careful sounding, led the fleet, which on rounding the shoal brought the wind on their starboard beam, in the following order : — Goliath, Zealous, Orion, Audacious, Theseus, Vanguard, Minotaur, De-fence, Bellerophon, Majestic, Leander, with the Culloden at some distance to the northward, and beyond her the Alexander and Swiftsure, using every exertion to close with the squadron. Soon after the british ships had thus formed, they hoisted their colours, with jacks in various parts of the rigging. At about 6h. 20 m. p.m., the french line having also hoisted their colours, the Conquerant and the Guerrier opened their fire upon the Goliath and Zealous, then in line close to each other, and at some distance a-head of the other ships. At 6h. 30 m. the Goliath crossed the head of the french line, and after pouring her broadside into the bows of the Guerrier, bore up for that ship's inner bow; but the anchor did not bring the ship up until abreast of the larboard quarter of the second ship, the Conquerant, and she then commenced a warm action with the latter. The Zealous, following the Goliath, brought up abreast of the inner and larboard-bow of the Guerrier, which was precisely the position captain Foley intended the Goliath to have taken, and in less than five minutes her fire brought down the Guerrier's fore-mast, just at the moment the sun was sinking into the horizon; and this auspicious commencement of the battle was greeted with three cheers from the british fleet. The Orion, after firing at the Guerrier in passing, rounded the Zealous on her starboard side, and passed the Goliath on the same side, intending to bring up abreast of the fourth ship, the Aquilon; but the Serieuse frigate having presumed to fire at the Orion, the latter opened upon her so effectually with her starboard guns, that the frigate, after being dismasted, drifted upon the shoal and sank : the Orion then dropped her anchor, and brought up, head to wind, abaft the Peuple-Souverain. Previous to the delay occasioned by the interruption of the Serieuse, the Theseus and Audacious had previously anchored; the former, steering close a-head of the Guerrier, and passing between the Zealous and Goliath, into whose opponents she successively fired in passing, anchored by the stern in line a-head of the Goliath, and abreast of the Spartiate. In the mean time the Audacious had anchored on the outside of the line, and on the starboard bow of the Conquerant. Having detailed the proceedings of the leading ships, and explained the manner in which they took up their respective positions, it must be evident that this advantageous manoeuvre arose from pure accident, and was never premeditated by the victorious leader of the attacking squadron : it was entirely owing to the circumstance of the Goliath not bringing up in the situation assigned to her, and which incident induced captain Hood to place the Zealous in the position intended for the leading british ship. The two succeeding ships availed them selves of the opportunity which presented itself, of doubling in upon the van of the enemy; and by thus bringing their whole force upon the van and centre, the British were enabled to subdue a considerable portion of their opponents, and then fall upon the rear of the french line; which, until that moment, had been incapable of taking any part in the action. The Vanguard, after receiving the fire of the van-ships as she edged away, anchored within eighty yards of the starboard beam of the Spartiate, at about 6 h. 40 m. p. m; and a few minutes afterwards the Minotaur, placing herself a-head of the Vanguard, brought up abreast of the Aquilon. At about 7 p.m. the Defence anchored on the starboard side of the Peuple Souverain, whilst the Bellerophon and Majestic passed on with the intention of attacking the ships in the centre and rear; and shortly after 7 p. m. the Bellerophon dropped her stern anchor abreast of the Orient. Soon afterwards the Majestic brought up abreast of the Tonnant, from whose heavy fire the british ship suffered severely, and lost her gallant captain. To return to the proceedings in the van: the Guerrier continued to defend herself until 9 p.m., although exposed to the constant fire of the Zealous, who had placed herself in a position of comparative safety; and after being assailed by the raking broadsides of three other ships, and having lost her three masts, with more than 350 men killed and wounded, the Guerrier was taken possession of by the Zealous, whilst the latter had only seven men wounded. The Conquerant, unable to contend against her three opponents, was the first ship that surrendered: her fore and mizen-masts were shot away, and her main-mast in a falling state; and she sustained a heavy loss in killed and wounded. Of her principal opponents, the Goliath had 21 killed and 41 wounded; whilst the Audacious, from her secure position on the larboard bow, had only 1 killed and 35 wounded. The Spartiate, after sustaining the fire of the Theseus, Vanguard, and Minotaur, and from the quarter-guns of the Audacious, and having lost all her masts, struck her colours about the same time as the Guerrier. The Vanguard was exposed to the raicing fire of the Aquilon as she sprung her broadside, until the Minotaur gave the french ship full occupation; and from the united fire of the Aquilon and Spartiate, the Vanguard sustained a loss of 30 killed, and 76 wounded. The Aquilon, assailed by the Minotaur on her starboard side, and by the Theseus on the inner side of the line, was soon reduced to the same dismasted state as her three companions a-head; and at 9 h. 25 m. p.m. she struck her colours. The Minotaur had 23 killed and 64 wounded: and the Theseus 5 killed and 30 wounded. The Peuple-Souverain lost her fore and main-masts by the close fire of the Defence and raking broadsides of the Orion, as the latter lay on the french ship's larboard quarter. The cable of the Defence having been shot away, she re-anchored abreast of the Orient. The Defence had only 4 killed and 11 wounded; while the Orion sustained a loss of 13 killed and 29 wounded. The Bellerophon, from being exposed to the formidable broadside of the Orient, lost her mizen-mast, and then her main-mast at about 8 p.m. At about 8 h. 20 m. p.m., being entirely disabled, she cut her stern cable, and setting her sprit-sail, wore clear of the fire of her powerful opponent: but she had scarcely filled her fore top-sail, than her shattered fore-mast fell over her larboard bow. In drifting along the french rear, she received a broadside from the Tonnant, and some distant shots from the Heureux. The loss sustained by the Bellerophon amounted to 49 killed, and 14S wounded. The Majestic anchored so close to the Tonnant, that her captain was killed by a musket-ball, about half an hour after the firing commenced. About 8 h. 30 m., finding she was drifting athwart the hawse of the Heureux, the Majestic slipped her stern cable, and letting go her best bower, brought up head to wind, having the Heureux on her starboard quarter; and shortly afterwards the Tonnant, after slipping her cable in consequence of the fire on board the Orient, brought up on the larboard bow of the british ship. About 8 p.m., just as the Bellerophon had withdrawn from the contest, the Swiftsure brought up by the stern, about half a ship's length from the spot the former had quitted, and opened a fire from her foremost guns at the starboard bow of the Orient, and her aftermost at the quarter of the Franklin ; whilst the Leander, who had recently arrived, (on account of her detention in rendering the Culloden assistance,) kept under weigh in the vacant space left by the Peuple-Souverain when she quitted the line, and poured a raking fire into the bows of the Franklin with impunity. Shortly afterwards the Alexander came rapidly up, passed through the opening which the Tonnant had left, and dropped her bow anchor, so as to bring her broadside to bear on the larboard quarter of the three-decker. About 9 p.m. a fire broke out on the poop of the Orient, which after spreading along the decks, and ascending the rigging with terrific rapidity, reached the magazine; and about 10 p.m. this superb ship blew up with a tremendous explosion. The vibration shook the ships severely, but the flaming mass very fortunately flew over the Swiftsure, whilst a few fragments fell on board the Alexander. This melancholy catastrophe was so impressive, that it was full ten minutes before the mighty strife was renewed. By this time the wind, as if just recovering from the trance into which all nature had been hushed, freshened up; and as the breeze ruffled the water's surface, it seemed to bring reanimation to the appalled senses of the combatants. The Franklin was the first to recommence hostilities by firing her lower deck guns at the Defence and Swiftsure, who returned the fire with powerful effect, as they lay close on her starboard bow and quarter. This gallantly fought ship, without a second ahead or astern, continued to defend herself until her main and mizen-masts went by the board; and being incapable of further opposition, she struck her colours about midnight. At this time no other french ship but the Tonnant continued the cannonade, while the Swiftsure, owing to the position of the Alexander, could make little or no return to the Tonnant's gall ing fire. The Majestic was still the principal opponent of this formidable ship, whose heavy fire brought down her main and mizen-masts at 3 a.m. on the 2nd; and shortly afterwards the Tonnant's three lower masts were shot away, but even this circumstance did not compel her to strike her colours. At 4 a.m., just as the day broke, the firing recommenced between the Tonnant, Guillaume Tell, Genereux, and Timoleon on one side, and the Alexander and Majestic on the other. This renewal of the action brought the Theseus and Goliath to the spot, when the Artemise frigate fired a broadside and struck her colours, but she shortly afterwards caught fire and blew up. In the mean time the four french ships had dropped so far to leeward, as to be almost out of gun-shot of the British. The Goliath, Theseus, Alexander, and Leander stood towards the Heureux and Mercure, who had run themselves on shore to the southward of the bay and compelled them to surrender; but whilst attending to these ships, the Genereux and Guillaume Tell, with the frigates Justice and Diane, took the opportunity of getting under weigh, and effected their escape; receiving the fire of the Zealous in passing, which they returned, without doing any injury except to the sails and rigging. The Tonnant and Timoleon were lying ashore mere wrecks, but both kept their colours flying until the approach of the Theseus and Leander on the morning of the 3rd, when the Tonnant surrendered; and shortly afterwards the Timoleon, having been set on fire by her crew, exploded. Thus, terminated this memorable battle, leaving in the hands of the British two ships of 80, and seven of 74 guns; whilst only two of the line and two frigates made their escape. he following is a statement of the british ships, in the order in which they led into action on the 1st of August 1798, showing the number of killed and wounded; also, the names of the officers of marines serving on board the respective ships: — Goliath, 74 guns, captain T. Foley, 21 killed, 41 wounded. Lieutenants Charles Harvey and William Bulkley. This glorious victory obtained rewards for the officers of every class. The rear-admiral was created a peer of Great Britain by the title of baron Nelson of the Nile and of Burham Thorpe, with a pension of £2000 per annum from the Parliament of England, and £1000 from that of Ireland. The senior lieutenants of each ship, and many inferior officers, were promoted; but the only reward conferred upon the marines was the brevet rank of major on the senior officer serving in the squadron, — captain Thomas Oldfield. The 50-gun ship Leander sailed from before Alexandria on the 6th of August, with the despatches from rear-admiral sir Horatio Nelson to the commander-in-chief on the Mediterranean station; and on the 18th, when within six miles of the west end of Goza de Candia, discovered a large ship coming towards her with a fine breeze from the southward, whilst the Leander lay becalmed. The stranger was the french 74-gun ship Genereux, which had escaped from the battle of the Nile, mounting 80 guns, with a crew of 936 men and boys; while the Leander mounted 51 guns of smaller calibre, and had only 282 men and boys on board. At 9 a.m. the Genereux ranged up within half gun-shot on the Leander's larboard and weather quarter, both ships being under a press of sail; but finding an action inevitable, the Leander took in her canvas, and hauled up to bring her broadside to bear. On a shot being fired by the Genereux, a vigorous cannonade commenced on both sides, the ships nearing each other until 10 h. 30 m. a. m., when the french ship struck the Leander on her larboard bow and dropped alongside. A spirited and well-directed fire from the marines on the poop of the Leander, commanded by serjeant James Dair, (no officer having arrived on board since the death of lieutenant Raby Robinson, who was killed at Tenerifie,) and from the small-arm men of the quarter-deck, prevented the enemy in their attempts to board. A light air springing up, the Genereux forged a-head and disentangled herself from the Leander, now lying with her mizenmast over the starboard quarter, her fore top-mast over the larboard bow, and both her lower yards on the booms. In this crippled condition the Leander, by the aid of her sprit-sail, wore under the stern of her antagonist, and raked her with great effect. The cannonade continued without intermission until 3 h. 30 m. p.m., when the Genereux, by the aid of a light breeze, was enabled to station herself on the larboard bow of her opponent. The Leander was now totally ungovernable; not a stick standing, save the bowsprit and the shattered remains of the fore and main-masts, and the ship's hull was cut to pieces. In this defenceless state the Leander, on being hailed by her opponent, signified she had surrendered. Her loss amounted to 35 killed and 57 wounded, out of a reduced crew of 282 men and boys. Of this number serjeant James Dair and 7 marines were killed, and 9 privates wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1798. Tuesday 26th -
27th June. Seahorse captured Sensible.
1798. On the 26th of June the 36-gun frigate Sensible, on her passage from Malta to Toulon with despatches, was fallen in with by the 38-gun frigate Seahorse, captain Edward James Foote, who, after a chase which continued from 4 p. m. until 4 a.m. on the 27th, came up with the trench frigate, and a close action was maintained for about eight minutes; when the Sensible, having lost 18 men killed, her captain and 36 wounded, hauled down her colours. Lieutenant Francis Wemyss was serving on board the Seahorse. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1798. Friday 29th June.
Pique and Jason captured Seine.
1798. Wednesday 11th
July. Boats of Regulus captured three vessels.
1798. Sunday 15th July. At 9 a. m., the Lion of 64 guns, captain Manley Dixon, when near Carthagena, fell in with four Spanish 34-gun frigates, who were formed close in order of battle, on the larboard line of bearing. The third from their van, the Dorotea, having her fore top-mast gone, the Lion bore down and made this ship her principal object of attack. The other three frigates tacked in succession and passed the Lion very gallantly within musket-shot, receiving the broadside of the british ship as they passed. Captain Dixon continued to pursue the Dorotea, who kept up a galling fire from her chase guns. The three frigates having again tacked, made a second attempt to support their friend but they were repulsed by a broadside from the Lion as she closed with the Dorotea, who still nobly defended herself, whilst her consorts made a third and ineffectual attempt to rescue her. The Lion now wore round on the same tack as the Dorotea, who, being abandoned by her friends, with her mizen-mast over the side, and having sustained a loss of 20 men killed and 23 wounded, hauled down the Spanish colours. The Lion suffered considerably in her masts and rigging, but she had only 2 men wounded. The officers of marines were lieutenants Philip Patriarche and John C. Hoskins. For some months past great exertions were made in the southern ports of France in equipping the expedition intended for the invasion of Egypt, and on the 19th of May this formidable armament sailed from Toulon. It consisted of thirteen sail of the line, eight frigates, two Venetian sixty-fours, six fri gates en flute, with various smaller vessels; numbering together seventy-two vessels of war, and when joined by vessels from other ports, a total of 400 transports. This immense fleet, whose crews amounted to 10,000 men, conveyed 36,000 troops, and the whole force was under the command of Napoleon Buonaparte. The fleet first steered for Genoa and having been joined by the transports in that port, stood across to Cape Corse, and remained in sight of the eastern coast of Corsica until the 30th. It then sailed along the island of Sardinia, in expectation of the convoy from Civita Vecchia but after waiting until the 7th of June, the fleet proceeded without the looked-for reinforcement. On the 8th the expedition quitted the coast of Sicily, and on the 9th, when in sight of the islands of Goza and Malta, was joined by the Civita division of transports. The troops effected a landing on the 10th, and on the 12th the islands of Malta, Goza, and Comino surrendered by capitulation. After a stay of four days, Buonaparte quitted Malta on the 19th of June, leaving general Vaubois with 4000 troops in possession of the island. The expedition steered a direct course to the eastward, the advanced frigates detaining and destroying every vessel they fell in with, to prevent the circulation of in- telligence respecting the probable destination of the fleet; and on the morning of the 1st of July, the minarets of Alexandria were discerned by the leading ships. Learning that an english squadron had appeared on the coast, Buonaparte expedited the landing of part of the army; and on the 2nd, after an action in which the French had many killed and wounded, including general Kleber among the latter, they obtained possession of Alexandria. In the course of the next day the remainder of the troops were disembarked, and the ships of the line and four frigates proceeded to the bay of Aboukir; where we take leave of them for a short time, to introduce a subject of greater interest. Rear-admiral sir Horatio Nelson having returned to England to recruit his health, after the unsuccessful and disastrous attack on Santa Cruz, arrived off Cadiz in the Vanguard on the 29th of April, and on the 2nd of May repaired to Gibraltar, where, being joined by the Orion and Alexander, seventy-fours, two frigates and a sloop, he sailed thence on the 9th. On the 22nd, in a heavy gale, the Vanguard carried away her main and mizen top-masts, and then her fore-mast, and consequently proceeded to the harbour of St. Pietro, in Sardinia, in company with the two other line of battle ships. Having got up a jury fore-mast, the Vanguard and her companions put to sea on the 27th, and steered for the rendezvous off Toulon, which they reached on the 31st. On the 5th of June the Mutine brig apprized sir Horatio that ten ships of the line were on their way to join him; and on the evening of the 7th this reinforcement placed themselves on the orders of the rear-admiral, making his force thirteen sail of the line, one of 50 guns, and a brig. The squadron, after being some days detained by a calm, steered towards the island of Corsica, where it arrived on the 12th, and then pursued its course along the shore of Tuscany, with a fine breeze at north-west. On the 17th they stood into the bay of Naples, and learning that the French had coasted the island of Sardinia, and probably proceeded to Mlta, the rear-admiral again got under sail; but the light airs during the two succeeding days so retarded the progress of the squadron, that it was not until the morning of the 20th that it entered the straits of Mes-ina. Receiving intelligence of the French being in possession of Malta and Goza, and that their fleet was lying at anchor at the latter place, the British were soon clear of the straits, and the island of Malta was now their destination. At day-break on the 22nd it was ascertained from a ragusian brig, which had the day before passed through the french fleet, that the enemy quitted Malta on the 18th, with the wind at northwest; it was therefore conjectured that Alexandria was their destination, and accordingly the british fleet immediately bore up, and steered south-east under all sail. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1798. Thursday 26th
July. Brilliant engaged Vertu and Regenre.
1798. Wednesdat 1st
August - Friday 3rd August. The Battle of the Nile took place. France had
declared war on Britain during 1793, where upon several Naval battles took
place between the two countries. One of the most famous victories was the
battle of the Nile. The Lieutenant of Marines in Nelson’s flagship wrote,
“Fought the French fleet at anchor off Alexandria, consisting of 13 sail of the
line and several frigates, took 10 sail of the line and burnt one three decker
and one frigate and sunk one frigate. Captain Faddy of the Marines and six
privates killed and seven wounded.” The total British losses were 218 killed
and 677 wounded, while the French losses were very high and estimated at around
3 to 4000 casualties, with a further 3000 captured, 2 ships of the line and 2
frigates were destroyed, and 9 ships of the line captured.
1798. Saturday 4th
August. Boats of Melpomene and Childess captured Aventurier.
1798. Tuesday 7th
August. Espoir captured Liguria.
1798. Tuesday 7th
August. Indefatigable captured Vaillante.
1798. Sunday 12th
August. Hazard captured Neptune.
1798. Saturday 18th
August. Leander captured by Gentreux.
1798. Wednesday 22nd
August. Naiad and Magnanime captured Decade.
1798. Wednesday 2nd
September. The Siege of Malta was a two year blockade by the British of the
French occupied garrison of Valletta the largest city on the Island. That had
been captured by a French expeditionary force during earlier during 1998. The
garrison held over 3,000 men under the command of Claude Henri Belgrand de
Vaubois and was besieged for over two years, eventually surrendering on
Wednesday 2nd September 1880.
1798. Friday 7th
September. Phaeton and Alison captured Flore.
1798. Saturday 22nd September. During the night the 32-gun frigate Hermione, captain Hugh Pigot, was cruising off the west end of Porto Rico, when a most daring and unexampled mutiny broke out on board of her. It appears that captain Pigot had threatened to flog the last man off the mizen top-sailyard, after reefing top-sail and the men well knowing from his determined character that he would keep his word, each hastened to get into the top, and in their eagerness to escape punishment, two poor fellows, missing their hold, fell on the quarter-deck, when both were killed. The circumstance being reported to the captain, he brutally replied, " Throw the lubbers overboard." This tyrannical conduct, coupled with a succession of acts of oppression, produced such increasing discontent, that on the following night the men loudly expressed their dissatisfaction, and on the first-lieutenant going among them to inquire the cause of the disturbance, the wretches cut his throat with a tomahawk, and then threw him overboard. The captain, hearing a noise, ran on deck, but was driven back with repeated wounds; and his coxswain and three other seamen, having followed him into his cabin, forced him out of the windows. In a similar manner the mutineers proceeded with eight other officers, cutting and mangling their victims in the most cruel manner; and the only officers that escaped were the master, gunner, carpenter, and one midshipman (David O'Brien Casey). We have gone somewhat into the details of this revolting act of cruelty to show, that although the tyrannous conduct of captain Pigot had driven the men to desperation, yet the marines were not unmindful of the trust reposed in them; and the following evidence of the captain's steward, extracted from the minutes of the court-martial, testify that, even under such aggravating circumstances, a marine was still faithful to the trust reposed in him. " On the 21st of September, about 11 p.m., I left the cabin, after extinguishing the light, and went to my hammock under the half-deck, where I had lain but a few minutes, when I heard a confused noise of people round the main-mast. The next thing I heard was, the bulk-head of the cabin burst through, and a number of people rushing in. I immediately jumped out of my hammock, and saw the sentinel at the cabin door, bleeding. I entreated him, for God's sake, to tell me what the matter was. He said that some of the people had broke into the cabin, and were murdering captain Pigot, begging me at the same time to keep out of the way, as they had been asking for me." This clearly proves that the marine was firm to his duty, and by resisting the mutineers in their attempt to enter the cabin, he probably fell a victim to his loyalty. The captain, three lieutenants, purser, surgeon, captain's clerk, one midshipman and lieutenant of marines, were murdered. The ship was carried into La Guyra, a port of the Spanish main; and was recaptured by the boats of the Surprise, as related in our account of the transactions of 1799. . (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1798. Friday 12th -
14th October. A larger French force consisting of 3,000 men, and including
Wolfe Tone attempted to land in County Donegal near Lough Swilly. Later it
became known as the battle of Donegal They were intercepted by a larger Royal
Naval squadron, and finally surrendered after a three hour battle without being
able to land in Ireland. It was the last action of the Irish Rebellion of 1798.
The battle also brought to an end the French trying to land soldiers in
Ireland. Wolfe Tone was tried by a court-martial in Dublin and found guilty. He
asked for death by firing squad, but when this was refused, Tone cheated the
hangman by slitting his own throat in prison on Monday 12th November, and died
a week later.
1798. Friday 12th
October – Sunday 14th October. Warrens Victory Off Ireland. Captain R. Williams
of the Marines lowered a boat and took possession of the French ship La Hoche
with 50 officers of ranks on board going to join the rebel forces in Ireland,
and also the notorious Wolf Tone, at whose subsequent trail in Dublin he was a
principle witness. A pair of large engravings of this action were published by
an officer of Marines who was present on board HMS Canada.
1798. Tuesday 16th
October. Kangaroo engaged Loire.
1798. Wednesday 17th
October. Mermaid engaged Loire.
1798. Thursday 18th
October. Anson and Kangaroo captured Loire.
1798. Saturday 20th
October. Fisgard captured Immorlalite.
1798. Wednesday 24th
October. Sirius captured Furie and Waakzamheid.
1798. Sunday 28th
October. The fortified island of Goza, about five miles to the North-west of
Malta, belonging to the Knights of that Order, surrendered to Captain Ball, of
the Alexander. When Captain, later Major Cresswell, along with a party of
Marines, took possession of it.
1798. Sunday 28th -
29th October. Cesar and consorts engaged four French frigates.
1798. October. Malta.
300 Marines served on shore during the blockade of Valetta under Major Weir who
raised an efficient Regiment of Maltese. Castle of Gozo occupied by Captain J.
Creswell and detachment Marines.
1798. Wednesday 7th
November – 14th November. The reduction of Minorca. Captain Minto with Marines
of HMS Centaur and HMS Leviathan.
1798. Monday 3rd
December. Victorieuse and consorts at Trinidad.
1798. Friday 7th
December. Perdrix captured Armee d'Italie.
1798. Friday 14th
December. Aminscale captured by Bayonnaise.
1798. During the
disturbances that took place in various parts of the kingdom, the loyalty of
the troops was unshaken, and the example of devotion to their Sovereign which
was first shown by the Marines at Chatham, then commanded by Lieutenant General
Innes, was eagerly followed by the soldiers of the line in that garrison. The
public journals were daily filled with the loyal resolutions of various Corps,
and the seditious designs of the secret agitators entirely frustrated. Sergeant
Pinn of the Chatham division particularly distinguished himself upon this
occasion, and as a recompense for his excellent conduct the Lieutenant General
granted him his discharge, but as this was done without the sanction of the
Board of Admiralty the general was tried by a court martial for a breach of the
Articles of War. Although there was no positive sanction of the Board for the
step he had taken, yet it appeared in evidence that the Earl of St. Vincent,
(then the first Lord,) in a conversation with General Innes upon the subject,
had approved of the measure, consequently the court pronounced an honourable
acquittal. His Royal Highness the Duke of York, commander of the forces, wrote
to Lieutenant General Innes, expressing his high approbation of the loyalty and
example shown by the Chatham division, and the Lords Commissioners of the
Admiralty also conveyed their satisfaction of their loyalty and zeal.
1798. Its recorded that
tobacco was introduced in the navy, mostly for chewing, but was known and used on
shore long before this time.
1799. Twenty thousand Marines formed the establishment of 1799. An event truly brilliant in itself, and most important in its results, claim a merited precedence in my narrative of the transactions of this year. I mean, the noble defence of St.
Jean d'Acre, in the land of Palestine. Yielding to the habitual sentiments of my mind, I am always led to exult in any occasion, upon which the energies of the Soldier, but more especially of my corps, have been conducive to the protection, or the aggrandisement of commerce. It constitutes the very vitals of our Country and demands the fostering care of every member of it. The world is well apprised of the ambitious views which directed the expedition of Bonaparte to Egypt. Although his army had been cut off from all intercourse with France ever since the decisive battle of Aboukir, still the inventive resources of his genius had established within a few months, a little independent Empire guided by social institutes, and a regulated police. Versatile and accommodating in his principles, they always veered with his interests, and he knew human nature too well not to make them subservient to the religious prejudices of these superstitious natives, over whom he had usurped a government. Wherever hostility appeared, it was successively overcome, and his dominion over Lower Egypt might be said to have been complete at the opening of 1799. Sir Sidney Smith was selected to arrange and animate a plan for chacing this encroacher from his strong holds, who sailed from England for Constantinople, vested both with diplomatic as well as military powers, in the Autumn of 1798. Upon the 10th of that month Bonaparte, in person, left Cairo to head his troops, whom he joined at El Arisch on the 17th; which village and its castle, were completely gained on the 25th. Ghazah likewise surrendered, and Jaffa, that theatre of his indelible crimes, was carried by storm upon the 7th of March. After the most incredible hardships, and many a harassing contest with the numerous Mamelukes, the French Army ascended the heights which command St. Jean d'Acre, upon the morning of the 18th of March, and commenced its investment. On the 18th he chaced and captured the looked for flotilla off Cape Carmel, afterwards landed the ammunition it contained, and mounted the heavy cannon upon the ramparts of the Syrian bulwark and capital. Its works were much strengthened under the able eye of Colonel Philippeaux, and never were a few critical hours better applied than those which preceded the investment of St. Acre. The greater part of the Marines of the Tygre, Theseus, and Alliance were disembarked, under the command of Lieutenant Colonel (now Sir John) Douglas, who was vested by Sir Sidney with the Brevet Commission of Colonel, in order that the Turkish Forces, and the Seamen, who were also landed, might be under his orders. The squadron having been driven from its anchorage in the Bay, encouraged the French to push on their approaches to the counterscarp, a part of which they destroyed, and also made a lodgment in the North East angle of the wall, whence they began to undermine the tower. To avert its effects a sortie was deemed, advisable on the 7th of April, in which the British Seamen and Marines were to dash into the mine, while the Turks were to attempt the republican trenches to the right and left. Colonel Douglas led this attack, in three columns, at the head of each of which were the Marines, just before the break of day, and it would, most probably, have been a surprize, if the undisciplined clamour of their Mahometan Allies, had not proclaimed their approach to the enemy. I must here pause to render justice to the memory of one of the mildest and bravest of men, who unfortunately fell upon that day. This was the effusion of a brave enemy. I will superadd the animated address of Sir Sidney Smith to a meeting of the Anniversary of the Naval Asylum, on the 2d of June 1802, and with it shall close this tributary theme. Lieut. Beattie, of Marines, was wounded in this ever-memorable sortie, which reflected a bright lustre upon all that composed it. The ravelins upon which the Marines worked, within ten yards of the enemy's approaches, were in a progress of completion between the 2d and 8th of May, and were each night assailed by the French, who were as often repulsed, in nine different attempts to storm, with immense slaughter. The gallantry of my Corps, in all, exceeds praise. Many sorties were made to incommode their covering works, and most unprecedented were the bodily fatigues and mental anxiety of all. Fifty-one days of vindictive and unceasing contest, save those short intervals necessary to recruit exhausted nature, had elapsed, when the garrison beheld their long-expected reinforcements under Hassan Bey.Foiled in every essay to carry the place, Buonaparte saw with grief and disappointment this flotilla, which was to blast all his ambitious schemes, and to relieve his now almost worn-out opponents. With a desperate ardour, impelled by wounded pride, he lost not a moment to prepare and advance to the assault, in the sanguine idea that by one bold effort he might consummate his ardent wishes before Hassan's troops could land. At ten, on the night of the 7th of May, the carnage began. Mr. Scroder, Master's Mate of the Theseus, from an 18 pounder in the Light House Castle; a 24, under Mr. Jones, Midshipman of the Theseus, mounted in the north ravelin, and two 68 pound carronades, under the direction of Mr. Bray, carpenter of the latter ship, which threw shells from two germes in the Mole, added to the Turkish musquetry, committed dreadful havoc amongst the French columns in moving on to the attack. Much might be said were I to diverge upon the many chequered events of the night and the following day. The morning's dawn displayed the enemy's standard flying on the outer angle of the Tower, which their intrepidity had carried, having ascended on its ruins. Here they made a lodgment by two traverses across the ditch, constructed and filled with sand bags, and the bodies of their dead. The dispirited and reduced state of the Army before Acre, in consequence of these heavy losses, urged Buonaparte to withdraw the division of Kleber, from the fords of the Jordan. Much was anticipated from this Corps, from its recent good conduct near to Nazareth. It was early destined to ascend that breach, in which so many of their countrymen had fallen victims. But the gallant sortie of a Turkish regiment, anxious to wipe away the stigma of indiscipline, cut out sufficient work for them, and carried the third parallel of the enemy. Their forward zeal exposed them to some loss in pushing on to the second trench; but they found sufficient employ for Kleber, who, instead of proceeding against the breach, was obliged to devote all his efforts to regain his works. A second army, collected from Rhodes and other islands, attacked the French at Damietta, under Sir Sidney and Colonel Douglas, destroyed their magazines there, and had erected cannon against the French redoubt; but Turkish disobedience and insubordination subjected this mass to a disaster similar to that of Aboukir. "To the Commander of his Britannic Majesty's Fleet, to our much-esteemed and beloved friend Sir Sidney Smith, our best greeting. May your destiny be ever prosperous, and your health flourishing. Cardinal Ruffo, learning the evacuation of Naples, and the defeats of the French armies by the Russian General Suwarrow, put in motion his army towards that Capital; part of which he gained upon the day of St. Anthony's feast. Exceeding his powers, a treaty which he had concluded with the Members of the Republican Government, and the Patriots in the Forts, was cancelled by his Sicilian Majesty, and the transports in which they were embarked for Toulon, were blockaded by the British squadron. Lieut. Hart 1799. Sunday 3rd - 22nd February. The 32-gun frigate Daedalus, captain Henry L. Ball, on the East India station, fell in with the french 36-gun frigate Prudente, (but mounting only 30 guns). At 10 minutes past noon the Daedalus bore up across the stern of the french frigate within pistol-shot, and after raking her, luffed up to leeward; and thus, close alongside, the two ships engaged with great spirit. In about a quarter of an hour the mizen-mast of the Prudente fell over her quarter; she nevertheless continued the action until 1 h. 21 m. p.m., when being much cut up in masts and sails, the french frigate hailed to say they had surrendered. Out of a crew of 301 men and boys, she lost 27 killed and 22 wounded. The Daedalus suffered but little, and had only 2 killed and 12 wounded, out of a crew of 212. Lieutenant Edward Jolliffe of the marines was serving on board the Daedalus. On the 9th of June the 32-gun frigate Success, captain Peard, chased a Spanish polacre into the harbour of La Seloa, near Cape Creux. Three boats were detached under the command of lieutenant Facey, assisted by lieutenant Stupart and lieutenant John Davison of the marines, to bring out the polacre, which proved to be the Bella Aurora, mounting 10 carriage guns, with a crew of 110 men, surrounded by a boarding netting, and upported by a battery and a body of men at small arms on the shore. Notwithstanding this formidable preparation, she was gallantly boarded and brought out; but this bold enterprise was attended with a serious loss to the British, who had 4 seamen killed, and lieutenant Stupart with 8 men badly wounded. For his services on this occasion lieutenant Facey was promoted to the rank of commander. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1799. Saturday 4th
January. Wolverine engaged Ruse and Furet.
1799. Sunday 3rd - 22nd
February. Bulldog and Perseus bombarded Alexandria.
1799. Wednesday 6th
February. Argo captured Santa Teresa.
1799. Saturday 9th
February. Daedalus captured Prudente.
1799. Friday 22nd
February. Espoir engaged Spanish flotilla and captured Africa.
1799. Friday 22nd February. The 38-gun frigate Sibylle, captain Edward Cooke, in the bay of Bengal, sustained a severe action with the french 40-gun frigate Forte. About 1 a.m. the Sibylle bore up and poured her broadside into the stern of her opponent, then luffed close alongside of her to leeward, and a furious night action was maintained within musket-shot for more than an hour. As the Forte endeavoured to make her escape at 2 h. 30 m., the action was renewed by the Sibylle, which brought down the three masts of the enemy's ship, and she then surrendered, with the loss of her captain and 65 killed, and 80 wounded. The Sibylle (who had only 9 private marines on board) had 5 killed and 17 wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1799. Thursday 28th
February. Sybille captured Forte.
1799. February.
Salerno. Marines of Zealous assisted Neapolitans to repulse 3,000 French
troops.
1799. Monday 18th
March. Telegraph captured Hirondelle.
1799. Monday 18th March. Captain Troubridge arriving at Palermo with four ships of the line, was immediately detached by lord Nelson to blockade the port of Naples; and on the 2nd of April the squadron anchored off the island of Procida, of which they took possession, and hoisted the Sicilian colours: on the following day Ischia, Capraia, and all the other of the Ponza islands, followed the example of Procida. The squadron rejoined lord Nelson on the 17th, and between that date and the 13th of June, his lordship had collected a fleet of sixteen sail of the line under his immediate command. On the departure of captain Troubridge, the blockade of the port of Naples devolved upon captain James Foote, in the 38-gun frigate Seahorse, having under his orders the Perseus bomb, with two brigs. In the mean time, the immense austro-russian army under general Suwarrow, which had entered Italy since the middle of April, was now bearing down all opposition in the neapolitan territory. Cardinal Ruffo defeated the French near Naples on the 5th of June, and the fortified rock of Rivigliano capitulated to the Seahorse on the 14th. On the 15th the important fortress of Castel-a-mare surrendered on the following terms: "That the garrison should march out with the honours of war; and that such of them as chose, be allowed to avail themselves of the protection of the british flag." The little squadron proceeded on the 17th to attack Castel del Uovo, which with Castel Nuovo constituted the principal sea defence of the capital. The latter is situated in the heart of the city and has a communication with the palace; whilst the Castel del Uovo runs out into the bay and is joined to the land by a narrow pass with a drawbridge: these two forts, and that of St. Elmo on the western side of the city, were the only strongholds possessed by the French in the immediate neighbourhood of Naples. Captain Foote, after sending a summons to the commandant in Castel del Uovo, had commenced the attack of that fortress when on the 19th he was requested by cardinal RufFo to cease hostilities while the flag of truce was flying, as negotiations had taken place on the part of the russian minister, count Micheroux. On the 20th the captain received from the cardinal a plan of the capitulation, already signed by him and the chief of the Russians and required the signature of captain Foote that officer complied with the request, but at the same time expressed his opinion that the terms were too favourable to the republicans. On the 22nd the capitulation of the forts of Nuovo and del Uovo was signed in form by the cardinal RufFo, by the russian as well as turkish commanders, and by captain Foote as commanding british officer in the bay of Naples ; whilst colonel Mejan, the french commandant at fort St. Elmo, had previously approved the terms, which stipulated that the two garrisons, consisting of about 1500 individuals, chiefly Neapolitans and revolutionists, should march out with the honours of war; that they should have the choice of embarking in cartels for Toulon, or of remaining at Naples; and that until such cartels were prepared, the garrisons should keep possession of their forts ; whilst four hostages were to be detained at fort St. Elmo, until the arrival of the individuals at Toulon had been ascertained. It necessarily required some days for assembling the transports to convey the garrisons to their destination, and in the mean time the flags of truce remained hoisted as well at the two forts, as on board the british and neapolitan ships of war in the bay. Whilst matters were in this state, on the 24th lord Nelson, with sixteen sail of the line and a 64-gun ship, arrived in sight, and the Foudroyant made the signal to annul the flag of truce then flying on board the squadron of captain Foote. On the same afternoon a conference was held on board the flag-ship, at which were present sir William and lady Hamilton, and cardinal RufFo the latter insisted that the inviolability of the treaty ought to be held sacred; but lord Nelson considered that as the treaty had been entered into with rebels, it ought not to be carried into execution without the approbation of his Sicilian Majesty. Upon this decision of the british admiral, the cardinal indignantly retired from the conference. On the 26th the garrisons of the forts of Nuovo and del Uovo, in obedience to the ninth article of the treaty, set at liberty the state prisoners as well as the english prisoners of war; and then the garrison, as stipulated in the third article; marched out with the honours of war, and grounded their arms. The principal part embarked on board fourteen transports to be conveyed to Toulon, conformably with the fifth article; but in reality, to be held as prisoners until the king of the two Sicilies, then at Palermo, determined how they should be disposed of. Thus, the treaty was violated by the order of lord Nelson; for had his fleet by any fortunate chance been prevented entering the bay until the 27th or 28th, those unhappy victims of violated faith would have been on their way to Toulon, and british honour preserved inviolate. On the 8th of July Ferdinand the Fourth and his queen arrived from Palermo, but the monarch was entirely under the influence of lady Hamilton and his ministers, and through their perfidy the unhappy wretches on board the prison-ships (cartels that had been), underwent the greatest sufferings. " It is now," says a letter from one of these miserable victims of misguided policy, " twenty-four days that we are lying in this road, unprovided with everything necessary to existence: we have only bread to eat, and we drink nothing but putrid water, or wine mixed with sea-water, and have nothing but the bare planks to sleep upon. Our houses have been pillaged, and the greater part of our relations have been either imprisoned or massacred." An apologist for lord Nelson styles him "commander-in- chief," and considers that in such capacity, as representative of the king of England, he might annul treaties. Lord Nelson was only third or admitting that the eail St. Vincent had resigned second in command, but even the sovereign power did not extend to the enemies of his country, without whom as parties, a treaty could not exist. If captain Foote, in signing the treaty, had exceeded his orders, he should have been tried and punished; but even then, the faith of the nation having been once solemnly pledged, it ought not not to have been compromised. Since the surrender of the castles of Nuovo and del Uovo, the french troops had evacuated the city of Naples, but a detachment amounting to about 800 men, under major-general Mejan, still remaining in the fort of St. Elmo, it was resolved to attack this fortress with the british and portuguese marines, who had been landed from the squadron under the command of captain Troubridge of the Culloden. The battalion of marines amounted to about 800 men, comprising the following officers: — The commandant of fort St. Elmo having expressed his determination to defend the place entrusted to his charge to the last extremity, captain Troubridge resolved to storm the fort as soon as two practicable breaches could be made. On the 3rd of July a battery, mounting 3 thirty-six pounders, and 4 mortars, was opened within 700 yards of the walls, and on the 5th another battery of 4 thirty-six pounders. On the same day the Russians opened a battery of 4 thirty-six pounders against the angle opposite to the point attacked by the British, to which 4 more mortars were subsequently added. On the Uth, the three-gun battery being entirely destroyed, and the guns dismounted by the fire of the besieged, captain Hallowell was directed to construct another battery of 6 thirtypounders within 180 yards of the walls. Some trees intervened between the battery and the fort, which it was necessary to remove before the fire could be opened with effect; and although this was a service of great danger, it was gallantly performed under the cheering example of the british officers. A second battery of 1 eighteen-pounder and 2 howitzers, was getting ready, when an officer appeared on the walls with a flag of truce. A capitulation being agreed upon, the garrison marched out with the honours of war, and, in this instance, were honourably conveyed to Toulon. The loss sustained by the british, russian, and neapolitan forces, amounted to 5 officers and 32 rank and file killed; 5 officers and 79 rank and file wounded. The fort of Capua, a small town on the river Volturno, and distant about fifteen miles from Naples, became the next object of attack. On the 20th captain Troubridge, with the seamen and marines and portuguese troops, marched from Naples, and encamped before Capua on the morning of the 22nd. On the same day a bridge of pontoons was thrown across the Volturno, to facilitate the communication between the different corps, and batteries of guns and mortars were constructed within 500 yards of the works. On the 25th a battery of 4 twenty-four pounders opened upon the fort, which was replied to by a fire from 11 guns. On the 26th fresh trenches were opened, and new batteries commenced within a few yards of the glacis, when the garrison proposed terms of capitulation, which were rejected; but others, sent back by captain Troubridge, were acceded to by the french commandant. On the morning of the 29th, the french garrison, numbering 2800 officers and men, under brigadier-general Girardon, marched out with the honours of war, and were conveyed to Toulon. The fort was mounted with 108 pieces of ordnance, exclusive of ten that were unserviceable. The neighbouring fort of Gaeta surrendered on the 31st, and the french garrison, amounting to 1498 officers and men, were allowed to march out with their arms and personal effects, and they were to be sent to a french port. Here again the poor unhappy neapolitan insurgents were handed over, without any effort to protect them, to those who would soon become their executioners. The fort of Gaeta mounted 72 pieces of cannon, including 58 brass twenty-four and eighteen-pounders, with 13 heavy mortars; and the magazines contained an immense quantity of powder and other garrison stores. On the 29th and 30th of September, 200 seamen and marines landed at Civita-Vecchia, and assisted by a detachment of neapolitan troops, took possession of that town, as also of Corneto and Talfa. Since the 17th of July, Leghorn had been evacuated, and the persevering exertions of the British in a great degree assisted in freeing Naples, Rome, and Tuscany from the dominion of the French 80. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1799. March - May.
Tigre Theseus and Alliance at Acre.
1799. Wednesday 20th
March to 21st May 1799. The Defence of Acre (The Otteman Empire, against the
French and Turks). Sir Sidney Smith shelled Bonaparte outside Saint John
d'Acer, forcing him to lift the siege.
1799. Tuesday 26th
March. Plymouth (Uniform). The Light Infantry Companies where directed to wear
the new round Hats Bound in Black Tape, White Band and Looping, and Green
worsted Tuft, to distinguish them from the Battalion Companies whose hats had
Black Looping and red and White Tuffs. The grenadiers wore the same as the
light Infantry, but had White Tuffs. But the Flank Companies did not last much
longer as they were definitely abolished by an Admiralty Order of the 1st
November 1804.
1799. Tuesday 30th
March. Sparrow and Trent at Porto Rico.
1799. Tuesday 30th March. The boats of the 36-gun frigate Trent, commanded by lieutenant Nathaniel Belchier, with lieutenant M'Gee of the marines, attacked a Spanish ship and three schooners, anchored under protection of a battery of 5 guns in a bay about seven leagues to the northward of Cape Roxo, in the island of Porto Rico. Lieutenant M'Gee, with the marines and some seamen under lieutenant Belchier, landed and stormed the battery, which they carried in gallant style, after killing 5, and wounding several of the Spaniards who defended it. The ship and one of the schooners was brought out during the time occupied by the party on shore in spiking the guns. This exploit was effected with no greater loss than 3 men wounded. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1799. Friday 9th April.
San Fiorenzo and Amelia engaged three French frigates.
1799. Tuesday 13th April.
Amaranthe captured Vengeur.
1799. Saturday 4th May.
Fortune and gunboats captured by Salamine.
1799. Tuesday 7th May’ The fifty-first day of the siege, the long-expected reinforcement from Rhodes made its appearance in the offing, consisting of some turkish corvettes, and above twenty transports with troops on board. The approach of this reinforcement induced Buonaparte to order a vigorous attack, in the hope of getting possession of the town before the troops could disembark: the fire from the french batteries suddenly increased considerably, whilst the flanking fire from the British afloat was less effectual, owing to the epaulments and traverses of great thickness, which the enemy had thrown up to protect themselves. The attacking columns of the enemy suffered severely from the fire of a brass eighteen-pounder, under the R direction of Mr. Schroder, master's mate, and a twenty-four pounder in the north ravelin under Mr. Jones, midshipman; these being within grape range, added to the turkish musketry, did great execution. Two djerms lying in the mole, mounting 2 sixty-eight pounders, worked under the able direction of Mr. James Bray, carpenter of the Tigre, threw shells into the centre of the attacking column with evident effect, and checked its advance; nevertheless, the besiegers gained ground, and effected a lodgement in the second story of the north-east tower, the upper part of which was entirely battered down, and its ruins formed the ascent from the ditch by which they mounted. As the day appeared on the 8th, the french standard was seen flying on the outer angle of the tower; and the enemy, having covered themselves by this lodgement, and the approach to it by traverses across the ditch, the fire from the besieged became of less effect, and even the flanking fire from the gunboats did but little execution. Those traverses were constructed by the French under the fire from the fortress during the preceding night and were composed of sand-bags with the bodies of the dead built in with them and were so high that their bayonets only were visible above them. At this crisis the troops of Hassan Bey were in the boats, and half way to the shore: an effort was therefore necessary, to preserve the place until this reinforcement could take their stations on the walls. Sir Sidney now landed with the ships' boats at the mole, and led the seamen, armed with pikes, to the breach, where they found a few Turks hurling stones on the heads of the assailants, who falling down the slope, impeded the progress of the rest. Fresh parties of the French ascended to the assault, the heap of ruins between the two contending forces serving as abreast-work for both; and here the muzzles of their muskets touched, and the spear-heads of the standards locked. Djezzar Pacha was sitting in his palace, rewarding those who brought him the heads of his enemies, and distributing musket cartridges with his own hands; but hearing that sir Sidney and his brave companions were on the breach, the old man hastened thither and pulled them down with violence, saying, that if any harm happened to his english friends, all would be lost. This amicable contest occasioned a rush of Turks to the spot, which fortunate occurrence gained time for the arrival of the first division of Hassan Bey's troops. Sir Sidney, having overcome the pacha's repugnance to the admission of any troops but his Albanians into the gardens of the seraglio, and as this spot was now an important post, as occupying the terre-pleine of the rampart, the commodore introduced 1000 men of the Chifflic regiment, armed with bayonets and disciplined after the European method. The garrison, animated by the appearance of such a reinforcement, were soon in sufficient numbers to defend the breach. Sir Sidney then proposed to the pacha to allow the Chifflic regiment to make a sally and take the assailants in flank: the Turks rushed out with much bravery, but not being calculated for such a movement, they were driven back with great loss, whilst the town gate was efficaciously protected by the sixty-eight pounders of the Tigre. The sortie had the effect of obliging the besiegers to show themselves above their parapets, and consequently exposed to the flanking fire of the British, which brought down numbers; while those remaining were killed or dispersed by the grenades thrown among them. After this repulse, the enemy commenced a new breach, by an incessant fire directed to the southward of the lodgement: every shot knocking down whole sheets of the wall, which was much less solid than that of the tower, and on which they had expended so much time and ammunition. At this moment, the group of french generals, which the shells from the sixtyeight pounders had frequently dispersed, was assembled on Richard Cosur-de-Lion's mount, and Buonaparte was distinguishable in the centre of them; his gesticulations indicated a renewal of the attack, and as an aide-de-camp was despatched to the camp, it showed he only waited a reinforcement. Sir Sidney immediately directed the ships of Hassan Bey to take their stations in the shoal w r ater to the southward, and made the Tigre signal to get under weigh, and join the Theseus to the northward. A little before sunset a dense column appeared advancing slowly to the breach, which they mounted unmolested, and then descended from the ramparts into the pacha's garden. Here, in a few minutes, the most advanced of the Frenchmen lay headless trunks, — the sabre, with the dagger in the other hand, proving more than a match for the bayonet. The rest of the assailants precipitately retreated, and their leader, general Lannes, who was seen daringly encouraging his men to mount the breach, was carried off wounded by a musket-ball, while general Rambeaud was among the killed. In the dusk of the evening the british uniform was mistaken for the french by the newly arrived Turks, and in consequence of this confusion many a sabre blow was parried by the british officers; and major Douglas, with Messrs. Ives and Jones, nearly lost their lives while forcing their way through a torrent of fuo-itives. At length the pacha's exertions restored confidence; and both parties being worn out with fatigue, an end was put to this contest, which had lasted twenty-five hours. In this splendid defence the British had 1 seaman killed, 7 wounded, and Mr. Lamb, midshipman, with 3 seamen, drowned. Sir Sidney now addressed a circular to the princes and chiefs of the Christians of Mount Lebanon, and also to the sheiks of the Druses, exhorting them to cut off the supplies from the french camp. Two ambassadors were immediately sent by the Syrians, and active measures were taken to prevent any supplies arriving overland; while Buonaparte's career further northward was effectually stopped by a warlike people, inhabiting a country now become impenetrable by their determined resistance. General Kleber's division, just arrived from the fords of the Jordan, was intended for the next attempt to mount the breach of Acre. To frustrate that movement, another sortie was resolved upon; and during the night of the 19th the turkish Chifflic regiment, led by its lieutenant-colonel Soliman Aga, rushed out of the gates, and gained the third parallel of the besiegers; and their impetuosity carried them to the second trench, where, although they lost some of their standards, four of the enemy's cannon were spiked before they retreated. By this movement Kleber's division, instead of mounting the breach, had full occupation during three hours' conflict, nor did the French recover their works without sustaining a heavy loss. Since their last failure, the french grenadiers refused to mount the breach over the dead bodies of their unburied countrymen consequently a flag of truce was sent into the town by an Arab dervise, with a letter to the pacha proposing a cessation of arms for the purpose of burying the dead, the stench of which had become intolerable, and threatened the existence of every person on both sides. While the answer was under consideration, a discharge of shot and shells announced another assault; but, fortunately, the garrison was prepared to receive them, and the assailants only contributed to increase the number of the dead bodies under the walls. Sir Sidney rescued the Arab from the indignation of the Turks, by conveying him on board the Tigre, whence he was sent back to the french general with a message that must have made the army sensible of the well-merited reproof. The French, having abandoned all hopes of success, raised the siege of Acre on the 20th; and on the 21st of May they made a precipitate retreat, leaving twenty-three pieces of cannon (after burning their carriages) in the hands of the besieged. The army reached Cantoura on the afternoon of the 21st, the ruins of Ctesarea on the 22nd, and Jaffa on the 24th here it rested three days, and reached Gaza on the 30th. On the 1st of June it entered the desert, and halted on the 2nd at El- Arish, where Buonaparte left a garrison: the main body then continued its march, arriving at Cairo on the 14th. Berthier states the loss of the french army, during the last four months, at 700 men who died of disease, 500 killed in the different actions, and about 1800 wounded; it is probable, however, that it greatly exceeded this statement. The british seamen and marines rejoined their ships, and sir Sidney with his little squadron quitted the bay of Acre on the 12th of June.Lord Nelson having urged the Sicilian government to place the island in the best possible state of defence, a large body of troops assembled; and preparations were made under his lordship's auspices to fit out the gun-boats, and mount the batteries with 65 twenty-four pounders, which had been brought from Naples. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1799. Wednesday 12th
May. Courier engaged a French privateer.
1799. Thursday 30th May. While the 74-gun ship Impetueux, captain sir Edward Pellew, was lying in Bantry Bay in company with several sail of the line under admiral sir Alan Gardner, the seamen refused to assist in obeying the signal to unmoor, insisting upon having a boat to convey a letter to the admiral, complaining of tyranny and hard usage. Finding all endeavours to persuade the men to return to their duty of no avail, sir Edward ordered captain Wm. Henry Boys to get his detachment under arms, and the marines, who had previously withstood every attempt of the conspirators to seduce them from their duty, now displayed that unwavering loyalty and prompt obedience, for which in the most trying circumstances this valuable force has always been distinguished. The sailors finding themselves firmly opposed, ran below, exclaiming, " Put out the lights, and remove the ladders," but sir Edward and the officers, following them closely, seized the ringleaders and dragged them aft to the quarter-deck. This decisive conduct had the desired effect, and the ship's company returned to their duty. Sir Edward Pellew, in his letter to rear-admiral sir Charles Cotton, bart., applying for a court-martial on the mutineers, observes, " I cannot in justice close my letter without informing you, sir, of the alert and manly conduct of the marines, in support of the King's service on this occasion." (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1799. Thursday 6th
June. The cutting out of La Selva.
1799. Wednesday 9th
June. Boats of Success cut out Belle Aurore.
1799. Saturday June 26.
Alemene captured Conrageux.
1799. The strength of
the Marines at that time was 22,716 men.
1799. Thursday 11th
July. Naples and the siege of Port St. Elmo. 800 Marines under Colonel
Strickland.
1799. Sunday 18th July.
Alemene and boats captured two Spanish vessels.
1799. Monday 29th July
– 4th August. The taking of Capua and Gaeta.
1799. Monday 9th
August. Speedy and boats captured Spanish armed vessel.
1799. Wednesday 11th -
12th August. Attack on Schiermonikoog.
1799. Friday 13th -
30th August. Operations in the Texel.
1799. Saturday 14th
August. Fox, Dadalus and boats destroyed Kosseir.
1799. Thursday 19th
August. Surinam taken.
1799. Friday 20th
August. Clyde captured Vestale.
1799. Thursday 26th
August. Tamar captured Republicaine.
1799. Monday 13th
September. Arrow and Wolverine captured Draak and Gier.
1799. Monday 20th
September. Camel and Rattlesnake engaged Freueuse.
1799. Wednesday 2nd
October. The battle of Alkmaar was fought between forces of the French Republic
and her ally, the Batavian Republic under the command of general Guillaume
Marie Anne Brune, and an expeditionary force from Great Britain and her ally
Russia, commanded by Prince Frederick, Duke of York and Albany in the vicinity
of Alkmaar during the Anglo-Russian Invasion of Holland. Although the battle
ended in a tactical draw, the Anglo-Russians were in a position at the end of
the battle that favoured them slightly in a strategic sense. This prompted
Brune to order a strategic withdrawal the next day to a line between
Monnickendam in the East and Castricum in the West. There the final battle of
the campaign would take place on Sunday 6th October.
1799. Sunday 3rd
October. Speedy chased Spanish coasters on shore.
1799. Tuesday 5th
October. Ferret engaged Spanish privateer.
1799. Sunday 10th -
11th October. Jupiter engaged Prencuse.
1799. Friday 11th
October. The defence of Lemmer Town, West Friesland. The garrison consisted of
157 Seamen and Marines. At 5 am a small advance party of French and Batavians
attempted to storm the north Battery. They were entrapped between two fires
surrounded by the seamen armed with pikes and surrendered. The main body of the
enemy 670 strong soon after assaulted the village, but after a sharp fight of
four hours and a half were driven off with a loss of 5 and 11 wounded. The
officers present 1st Lieut. Marmaduke WY bourn and L2nd Lieutenants. J. Howell,
Jas. Higginson and Rd. Gardner.
1799. Tuesday 12th
October. Trincomalee engaged Iphigenie and both sank.
1799. Friday 15th
October. Ethalion captured Thetis.
1799. Sunday 17th
October. Boats of Echo cut out Buonaparte.
1799. Sunday 17th
October. Triton and consorts captured Santa Brigida.
1799. Wednesday 20th
October. Cerberus engaged five Spanish frigates.
1799. Sunday 24th
October. Orpheus captured Zeelast and Zeevraght.
1799. Monday 25th
October. Boats of Surprise cut out Hermione.
1799. Friday 29th -
31st October. Boats of Tigre engaged off Damietta.
1799. Monday 21st October. Captain Edward Hamilton, with the beats of the 32-gun frigate Surprise, containing 100 officers and men, put off from the ship at 8 p.m., to attempt the capture of the Spanish frigate Hermione (formerly british), mounting 44 guns, moored head and stern between two strong batteries situated at the entrance of the harbour of Puerto Cabello. Towards midnight the boats beat off the Spanish guard-boat when about three-quarters of a mile from the Hermione, who opened a fire from her bow guns, on hearing the alarm. The boats immediately dashed on; and about half-past midnight captain Hamilton with eight or ten followers got on board the Hermione and took possession of the forecastle without much resistance. Mr. McCullen in the gig boarded on the larboard bow and joined the captain's party; but the two cutters, under the first-lieutenant and boatswain, were beaten back in their attempt the gangways. The second-lieutenant in the launch was directed to cut the bower, and the carpenter in the jolly-boat the sterncable; and then both boats, after reinforcing the boarding-party with some men, were to go a-head and tow the ship. Captain Hamilton, after leaving the gunner with 12 men on the starboard gangway, proceeded with the surgeon's party to the quarter-deck, which was obstinately defended for a quarter of an hour with great loss on both sides; captain Hamilton, the gunner, and several men being severely wounded. At this moment, the first-lieutenant with M. la Tour du Pin, acting lieutenant of marines, boarded with their respective divisions, and the boats under the second-lieutenant took the ship in tow, whilst the men ordered to go aloft, loosed the top-sails. The quarter-deck being in possession of the British, whose force was increased by the marines and others, no time was lost in attacking the main-deck. Captain Hamilton and the gunner were so severely wounded, as to be incapable of further duty; but M. de la Tour du Pin and the surgeon leading the men down the after-ladder so quickly after the Spaniards, gave them no time to prepare for a regular defence; and after a severe struggle and dreadful slaughter on the part of the Spaniards, who were also fired at from the upper-deck, the survivors of the frigate's crew called for quarter. In passing the batteries the captured ship sustained a heavy fire, but fortunately without any loss; and at 2 a. m. she was out of gun-shot, and in entire possession of the British. In effecting this desperate service, not a man of the attacking party was killed, and only 12 wounded; whilst the Spaniards, out of a crew of 365, had 119 killed and 97 wounded. A garrison of seamen and marines, amounting to 157 men, having been placed at Lemmertown, in West Friesland, under captain Boorder of the Espiegle sloop of war, were attacked on the 11th of October at 5 a.m. by the advanced party of French and Batavians, consisting of an officer with 30 rank and file, who attempted to storm the north battery. The British soon got them between two fires, and so effectually surrounded them, that they laid down their arms with the loss of 2 killed. The prisoners had scarcely been secured, when the main body, amounting to 670 men, attacked the British, who after a contest of four hours and a-half, routed the enemy in every direction, with the loss of 5 killed and 9 wounded. The marines continuing the pursuit, killed and wounded more than 40; and if the allied forces had not broken down a bridge in their retreat, they would have lost their colours and two field-pieces. Captain Boorder, in his official letter, says, " Lieutenants Wyburn, Howel, Higginson, and Gardner of the marines, behaved with honour to themselves and credit to their country; and their men distinguished themselves in the most gallant manner." (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1799. Saturday 6th
November. Speedy engaged twelve Spanish vessels.
1799. Monday 22nd
November. Courier captured Guerriere.
1799. Wednesday 24th
November. Solebay captured Egyptienne and three others.
1799. Friday 3rd
December. Racoon captured Intrepide.
1799. Saturday 11th December. The french 40-gun frigate Preneuse was pursued by the Tremendous 74, and 50-gun ship Adamant, who were cruising off Port Louis, Isle of France; and finding it impossible to escape from the Adamant, she ran ashore on the west side of the river Tombeau, near to some batteries, and about three miles from Port Louis. The frigate cut away all her masts, and at 3 h. 30 m. p.m., in conjunction with the batteries, fired upon the Adamant, who was working up towards her. At 5h. 30 m. the Adamant commenced engaging, and after 15 minutes the Preneuse signified she had surrendered. At 7 p. m. three boats were sent to destroy the french frigate, under the orders of lieutenant Edward Grey, accompanied by lieutenants Walker and Symes, and by lieutenant John Owen of the marines. At 8 p. m. the french batteries opened their fire of shot and shell at the boats, and at the Adamant as she was working up towards the object of attack. About 9 p. m., just as the boats were getting alongside of the Preneuse, two launches filled with men pulled from her to the shore, whilst lieutenant Grey and his party, under a heavy fire from the batteries, gallantly boarded the frigate; and having removed captain L'Hermite, with 14 officers and the few men that remained on board, she was set on fire and destroyed, and the boats returned without sustaining any loss. The appearance of a british squadron on the coast of Egypt in the latter part of October, assisted by some russian and turkish frigates, induced Buonaparte to strengthen Damietta, Rosetta, and particularly Alexandria ; and having appointed general Marmont governor of the latter city, the general-in-chief busied himself in forming schemes that had for their object the junction of the Red and Mediterranean seas, by means of a canal through the isthmus of Suez : and in order to ascertain the practicability of such a plan, Buonaparte resolved to proceed thither himself, first sending a detachment of troops to take possession of the town and neighbourhood. On the 2nd of November, general Bon set out on that expedition; and on the 8th the advanced division, under Eugene Beauharnois, entered the seaport of Suez, which is a small town situated at the northern extremity of the western arm of the Red Sea, distant about 30 leagues from Cairo, and nearly the same from the Mediterranean. Buonaparte was prevented following general Bon by the plague breaking out among his troops, and by the information he had just acquired of the hostile intentions of Turkey. Buonaparte quitted Cairo on the 25th of December, and on the 27th arrived at Suez, attended by the members of the " Institute of Egypt." Immediately proceeding to reconnoitre the town, harbour, and the neighbouring coast, he afterwards crossed the Red Sea by means of a ford, only practicable at low water, in order to reach a spot, which the Arabs still call the " Fountain of Moses," and where, according to the traditions of the country, lie the rocks which, on being touched, produced water to the followers of the prophet. In their way back to Suez, the general and his escort nearly suffered the fate of Pharoah and his army : the ford, which had been crossed with such ease in the morning, being now covered by the rapid rise of the tide, the travellers were compelled to descend to the bottom of the gulph ; and here, owing to some mistake about the depth of the water, Buonaparte was under the necessiy of being carried on the shoulders of his guide, and it was not without difficulty that they succeeded in effecting" their escape. After various surveys of the locality of Suez, Buonaparte was unexpectedly called back to Cairo; for the officer, who a month previous to his departure for Suez had been sent to Achmet Djezzar, had returned without obtaining an audience. Indignant at this treatment, the general sent the following letter to Djezzar: — " I do not desire to make war if you are not my enemy, but you must explain yourself. Your continuing to afford refuge to Ibrahim Bey and allowing him to remain on the frontiers of Egypt, will be considered by me as an act of hostility, and I shall in that case march to Acre. If you arc disposed to live in peace with me, you will remove Ibrahim forty leagues from the frontiers of Egypt and let there be a free commerce between Damietta and Syria. On those terms I shall respect your sovereignty and allow a free commerce by land between Egypt and Syria." This letter met with no better fate than the message sent by colonel Beauvoisins consequently Buonaparte determined on immediate preparations for fulfilling his promise to Djezzar; believing that by such proceeding he would gain favour with the grand Signior, to whom the pacha of Acre had long been a rebellious subject. The arrival of a body of troops in the castle of El-Arish, situated just within the frontiers of Egypt, quickened the movements of Buonaparte, who marched from the neighbourhood of Cairo in the early part of January 1799, with an army of 13,000 men, accompanied by 37 field-pieces, and 11 howitzers, to effect the conquest of Syria; and generals Regnier, Kleber, Bon, Lannes, and Murat had commands under Buonaparte in this expedition. The remainder of the army, about 17,000 men, was scattered over the different provinces of Lower Egypt; and by the 18th of February the whole of the army destined to invade Syria had assembled before El-Arish. Commodore sir Sidney Smith, who jointly with his brother, Mr. Spencer Smith, had been invested with the rank of minister-plenipotentiary to the Sublime Porte, and had recently been at Constantinople arranging a plan of active co-operation with the Turks in Egypt, arrived off Alexandria on the 3rd of March in the 74-gun ship Tigre, and superseded captain Troubridge; who on the 7th sailed in the Culloden, leaving the Theseus 74, and Alliance frigate (en flute) on the station. On the same evening an express arrived from Djezzar with an account of the invasion of Syria by Buonaparte, and of his having that very day carried Jaffa by storm. In consequence of this intelligence, the commodore on the following day despatched the Theseus to Acre, with colonel Phelipeaux, a french royalist officer of engineers: the Tigre meanwhile remained off Alexandria, to observe the enemy's movements. The removal of most of the vessels in the old port to the eastern or new harbour, gave intimation that some naval expedition was in preparation ; and this supposition being confirmed by a neutral vessel which had sailed from Alexandria on the 9th, it determined the commodore to detach the Marianne gun-vessel on the following day to reconnoitre the coast to the eastward, and to join him in the road of Cai'ffa; a port about eight miles south-east of Acre, whither the Tigre immediately proceeded. Having been joined by the Marianne on the 15th off Caiffa, the Tigre anchored in the bay of Acre, where the Theseus had arrived two days before. On the 16th sir Sidney landed, and commenced putting the town of Acre, with its rotten and ruined walls, in the best possible state to resist the attacks of a European army: and thus encouraged, the pacha and the garrison determined to make a vigorous defence. The Theseus was detached on the 17th to reconnoitre the coast to the southward, while sir Sydney proceeded with the boats of the Tigre to the anchorage of Cai'ffa, near the promontory of Mount Carmel, in order to intercept the maritime portion of the french expedition ; but as the their advance-guard, mounted on asses and dromedaries, were discovered by the sea side, sir Sydney returned to the Tigre, and sent the launch with a 32 pounder carronade, under lieutenant John Bushby, to the mouth of the river Kerdanneh, to defend the fort. On the 18th, at day-break, the launch opened a fire on the french troops, which compelled them to retire precipitately to the skirts of Mount Carmel. The main body, finding the route near the sea thus exposed, approached by the Nazareth road, but not without being harassed by the Samaritan Arabs; and being driven by the fire from the british ships, directed at the trenches, from making an attack along the coast to the northward, the French invested the town of Acre to the north-east, where the defences were much stronger. On the 18th a french flotilla, consisting of a corvette and nine sailing gun-vessels, were seen from the Tigre, who after a chase of three hours captured seven gun-vessels, mounting together 34 guns, laden with battering cannon and every kind of siege equipage, which they had brought from Damietta. The french guns intended for the attack of Acre were now landed for its defence, and the captured gun-boats were manned and sent to co-operate in harassing the enemy and cutting off his supplies. For five successive days and nights the gun-vessels were occupied in annoying the French and rendering assistance to the Turks. On the 21st an unsuccessful attempt was made to cut out of the port of Caiffa four djerms, or lighters, which had put in there on the 18th from Alexandria, having on board supplies for the french army; and at 10 a. m. the boats of the two line of battle ships, covered by some of the gun-vessels, proceeded to the attack. In this gallant though unfortunate attempt, 4 midshipmen and 8 seamen were killed; 1 midshipman and 26 seamen wounded, 8 of whom, with twelve others, were taken prisoners. Among the officers who distinguished themselves on this occasion, we find the name of lieutenant Charles Frederick Burton of the marines. On the 20th of March, the French before Acre opened their trenches against the front or saliant angle, on the east side of the town, and a constant cannonade was kept upon that point until the 1st of April; when the breach which the enemy had made in the tower appearing to them practicable, and conceiving that the counterscarp had suffered from a mine they had sprung, the french troops resolutely advanced to the assault. On both these points they were deceived; whilst the Turks, stimulated by the heroic example of the british seamen and marines, continued to pour down a shower of stones and grenades upon the assailants, and drove them back with considerable loss. The violence of the weather, and the unsheltered state of the anchorage, compelled the Theseus and Tigre to put to sea; and on their return, which was on the 6th of April, it was discovered that the French had pushed their approaches to the counterscarp, and even to the ditch of the north-east angle of the town, and were mining the tower, so as to increase the breach which they had made by the fire of their field-pieces. Although the fire from the guns captured from the enemy, and which had been admirably mounted under the direction of colonel Phelipeaux and captain Wilmot of the Alliance, appeared to slacken the efforts of the enemy, yet much danger was apprehended from the mine. A sortie was therefore determined upon, and the seamen and marines of the squadron were to force their way into the mine, while the turkish troops attacked the enemy's trenches on the right and left. Just before day-break on the 7th of April, the columns moved forward to the attack, but the impetuosity and noise of the Tuiks rendered abortive the attempt to surprise the besiegers; yet, in other respects, the Mahometans performed their part to admiration. Lieutenant J. W. Wright received two balls in his right arm, whilst leading the seamen pioneers; he nevertheless proceeded to the bottom of the mine, and pulling down the supporters, destroyed as much as could be effected in its present state. Major Douglas and the marines were highly distinguished in this enterprise; and they ably supported the seamen in the desperate service, bringing off the wounded under a tremendous fire from the enemy. The loss sustained by the British was 1 major of marines, Thomas Oldfield, and 2 privates killed; lieutenant John W. Wright of the navy, lieutenant George Beatty of the marines, 2 midshipmen, 1 serjeant, 6 privates of marines, and 12 seamen wounded. The return of the detachment to the garrison was ably covered by the fire of the Theseus, in the excellent position she had taken for that purpose: the Turks, as proofs of their prowess, brought in 60 frenchmen's heads, and a number of muskets and intrenching tools. General Berthier, who commanded a division of the enemy, affords the best testimony of the merits of the marines upon this occasion; and we therefore, without comment, give an extract from a letter of that gallant officer, dated from the french camp :-— " On the 18th Germinal (7th of April), the enemy at break of day attacked our left and centre ; each column was headed by british marines belonging to the ships, and their colours were seen waving with those of the Djezzar, and the batteries were all manned by Englishmen. The enemy attempted to surprise our advanced posts, but their design was seen through: we received them with a brisk fire from our parallels, and all that appeared were either killed or wounded. The enemy ultimately retired without gaining an inch towards destroying our works. The central column acted with more obstinacy, and their object was to penetrate to the entrance of our mine; they were commanded by major Thomas Oldfield, who advanced boldly towards the entrance of the mine at the head of some of his intrepid countrymen. They attacked like heroes, and were received by heroes, — death only checked their bold career: the remainder retreated and took refuge in the fortress. The approaches of our parallels remained covered with the dead bodies of English and of Turks. The body of major Oldfield was carried off by our grenadiers, who brought him to head-quarters; but he had expired before their arrival. His sword, to which he had done so much honour, was also honoured after his fall: it remains in the hands of one of our grenadiers. He was buried amongst us and has carried with him the esteem of the whole french army." This eulogium from an enemy, and a soldier whose proud renown is associated with that of Napoleon, is the noblest epitaph that the brave could aspire to. Sir Sidney Smith, at a meeting of the anniversary of the Naval Asylum, held on the 2nd of June 1802, offered a tribute to the memory of this gallant soldier. After speaking of the many virtues of captain Miller, sir Sidney thus enlarges upon the merits of his departed friend, major Oldfield, — "The next is major Oldfield of the marines. I will tell the company where the body of this brave man was contended for, and they will judge where, and how, he died. It was in a sortie of the garri- son of St. Jean d'Acre, when attacked by general Buonaparte, that major Oldfield, who commanded a column, was missing. On our troops advancing, he was found — his body was found at the mouth of one of the enemy's mines, and at the foot of their works: our brave men hooked him by the neck- cloth as he lay dead, to draw him off; the enemy at the same time pierced him with a halbert, and each party struggled for his body. The neck-cloth gave way, and the enemy succeeded in dragging to their works this brave man; and here I must do them the justice which such gallant foes are justly entitled to: they buried him with all the honours of war! " The garrison of Acre continued to make occasional sorties, under the protection of field-pieces in the ships' boats, until the evening of the 1st of May; when the French, after several hours' cannonade from 23 pieces of artillery, including 9 battering twenty-four and eighteen-pounders brought by admiral Perree's squadron, and which reached the besieging army on the 27th of April overland from Jaffa, made a fourth desperate attempt to mount the breach, which was now much extended. The Tigre and Theseus were stationed on either side of the town, so as to flank the walls; whilst the gun-boats were moored in the best manner for opening on the enemy's trenches. Opposed by this destructive fire, the french troops, notwithstanding their determined bravery, were repulsed with a heavy loss. On the part of the British, captain David Wilmot of the Alliance was killed by a musket-shot, as he was mounting a howitzer on the breach; a midshipman and 4 seamen were also slain, and lieutenant William Knight with 8 men wounded: in addition to this loss they had to regret the death of olonel Phelipeaux, from excessive fatigue and anxiety. The French continued to batter in breach with progressive effect, although they had been repulsed with great slaughter in their several attempts to storm: nor were they more successful in their attacks on the two ravelins that had been erected by sir Sidney to flank the nearest approaches of the besiegers, which were only a few yards distant. The frequent sorties from the garrison impeded the enemy in their covering works, and these were only suspended during the intervals which were caused by the excessive fatigue on both sides. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1799. Friday 17th
December. Amiable engaged Sirene and Bergere.
1799. Monday 20th
December. Boats of Queen Charlotte re-captured Lady Nelson.
1799. Friday 24th -
30th December. Tigre took El Arisch.
1799. Sunday 26th December. Viper captured Furet. 1799. Notwithstanding the losses which France had sustained during the past year, there were great preparations in the french arsenals for the equipment and increase of her navy and measures were taken for the immediate construction of sixteen ships of the line, and eighteen heavy frigates. The naval force of Great Britain continued on the same establishment as the preceding year; and the parliamentary vote was for 120,000 seamen, including 20,00d marines. (Volume 1 Historical Records of the Royal Marine Forces by Paul Harris Nicolas Lieut. Royal Marines.) 1799. The Scotch Brigade Marines. It has been said that war is the logical continuation of diplomacy, but it could be argued more reasonably that war is the logical extension of competition in trade. We have been referred to, rather contemptuously, as a nation of shopkeepers, and the bayonet can be seen as a complement of the clerk's quill. |